Addted table of content and links
[gender-roles-text-analysis.git] / 786-0.txt
1
2
3 HARD TIMES
4 AND
5 REPRINTED PIECES {0}
6
7
8 * * * * *
9
10 By CHARLES DICKENS
11
12 * * * * *
13
14 _With illustrations by Marcus Stone_, _Maurice_
15 _Greiffenhagen_, _and F. Walker_
16
17 * * * * *
18
19 LONDON: CHAPMAN & HALL, LD.
20 NEW YORK: CHARLES SCRIBNER’S SONS
21
22 1905
23
24
25
26
27 CONTENTS
28
29 _BOOK THE FIRST_. _SOWING_
30 PAGE
31 CHAPTER I
32 _The One Thing Needful_ 3
33 CHAPTER II
34 _Murdering the Innocents_ 4
35 CHAPTER III
36 _A Loophole_ 8
37 CHAPTER IV
38 _Mr. Bounderby_ 12
39 CHAPTER V
40 _The Keynote_ 18
41 CHAPTER VI
42 _Sleary’s Horsemanship_ 23
43 CHAPTER VII
44 _Mrs. Sparsit_ 33
45 CHAPTER VIII
46 _Never Wonder_ 38
47 CHAPTER IX
48 _Sissy’s Progress_ 43
49 CHAPTER X
50 _Stephen Blackpool_ 49
51 CHAPTER XI
52 _No Way Out_ 53
53 CHAPTER XII
54 _The Old Woman_ 59
55 CHAPTER XIII
56 _Rachael_ 63
57 CHAPTER XIV
58 _The Great Manufacturer_ 69
59 CHAPTER XV
60 _Father and Daughter_ 73
61 CHAPTER XVI
62 _Husband and Wife_ 79
63 _BOOK THE SECOND_. _REAPING_
64 CHAPTER I
65 _Effects in the Bank_ 84
66 CHAPTER II
67 _Mr. James Harthouse_ 94
68 CHAPTER III
69 _The Whelp_ 101
70 CHAPTER IV
71 _Men and Brothers_ 111
72 CHAPTER V
73 _Men and Masters_ 105
74 CHAPTER VI
75 _Fading Away_ 116
76 CHAPTER VII
77 _Gunpowder_ 126
78 CHAPTER VIII
79 _Explosion_ 136
80 CHAPTER IX
81 _Hearing the Last of it_ 146
82 CHAPTER X
83 _Mrs. Sparsit’s Staircase_ 152
84 CHAPTER XI
85 _Lower and Lower_ 156
86 CHAPTER XII
87 _Down_ 163
88 _BOOK THE THIRD_. _GARNERING_
89 CHAPTER I
90 _Another Thing Needful_ 167
91 CHAPTER II
92 _Very Ridiculous_ 172
93 CHAPTER III
94 _Very Decided_ 179
95 CHAPTER IV
96 _Lost_ 186
97 CHAPTER V
98 _Found_ 193
99 CHAPTER VI
100 _The Starlight_ 200
101 CHAPTER VII
102 _Whelp-Hunting_ 208
103 CHAPTER VIII
104 _Philosophical_ 216
105 CHAPTER IX
106 _Final_ 222
107
108 LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS
109
110 PAGE
111 _Stephen and Rachael in the Sick-room_ 64
112 _Mr. Harthouse Dining at the Bounderbys’_ 100
113 _Mr. Harthouse and Tom Gradgrind in the Garden_ 132
114 _Stephen Blackpool recovered from the Old Hell Shaft_ 206
115
116
117
118
119 BOOK THE FIRST
120 _SOWING_
121
122
123 CHAPTER I
124 THE ONE THING NEEDFUL
125
126
127 ‘NOW, what I want is, Facts. Teach these boys and girls nothing but
128 Facts. Facts alone are wanted in life. Plant nothing else, and root out
129 everything else. You can only form the minds of reasoning animals upon
130 Facts: nothing else will ever be of any service to them. This is the
131 principle on which I bring up my own children, and this is the principle
132 on which I bring up these children. Stick to Facts, sir!’
133
134 The scene was a plain, bare, monotonous vault of a school-room, and the
135 speaker’s square forefinger emphasized his observations by underscoring
136 every sentence with a line on the schoolmaster’s sleeve. The emphasis
137 was helped by the speaker’s square wall of a forehead, which had his
138 eyebrows for its base, while his eyes found commodious cellarage in two
139 dark caves, overshadowed by the wall. The emphasis was helped by the
140 speaker’s mouth, which was wide, thin, and hard set. The emphasis was
141 helped by the speaker’s voice, which was inflexible, dry, and
142 dictatorial. The emphasis was helped by the speaker’s hair, which
143 bristled on the skirts of his bald head, a plantation of firs to keep the
144 wind from its shining surface, all covered with knobs, like the crust of
145 a plum pie, as if the head had scarcely warehouse-room for the hard facts
146 stored inside. The speaker’s obstinate carriage, square coat, square
147 legs, square shoulders,—nay, his very neckcloth, trained to take him by
148 the throat with an unaccommodating grasp, like a stubborn fact, as it
149 was,—all helped the emphasis.
150
151 ‘In this life, we want nothing but Facts, sir; nothing but Facts!’
152
153 The speaker, and the schoolmaster, and the third grown person present,
154 all backed a little, and swept with their eyes the inclined plane of
155 little vessels then and there arranged in order, ready to have imperial
156 gallons of facts poured into them until they were full to the brim.
157
158
159
160 CHAPTER II
161 MURDERING THE INNOCENTS
162
163
164 THOMAS GRADGRIND, sir. A man of realities. A man of facts and
165 calculations. A man who proceeds upon the principle that two and two are
166 four, and nothing over, and who is not to be talked into allowing for
167 anything over. Thomas Gradgrind, sir—peremptorily Thomas—Thomas
168 Gradgrind. With a rule and a pair of scales, and the multiplication
169 table always in his pocket, sir, ready to weigh and measure any parcel of
170 human nature, and tell you exactly what it comes to. It is a mere
171 question of figures, a case of simple arithmetic. You might hope to get
172 some other nonsensical belief into the head of George Gradgrind, or
173 Augustus Gradgrind, or John Gradgrind, or Joseph Gradgrind (all
174 supposititious, non-existent persons), but into the head of Thomas
175 Gradgrind—no, sir!
176
177 In such terms Mr. Gradgrind always mentally introduced himself, whether
178 to his private circle of acquaintance, or to the public in general. In
179 such terms, no doubt, substituting the words ‘boys and girls,’ for ‘sir,’
180 Thomas Gradgrind now presented Thomas Gradgrind to the little pitchers
181 before him, who were to be filled so full of facts.
182
183 Indeed, as he eagerly sparkled at them from the cellarage before
184 mentioned, he seemed a kind of cannon loaded to the muzzle with facts,
185 and prepared to blow them clean out of the regions of childhood at one
186 discharge. He seemed a galvanizing apparatus, too, charged with a grim
187 mechanical substitute for the tender young imaginations that were to be
188 stormed away.
189
190 ‘Girl number twenty,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, squarely pointing with his
191 square forefinger, ‘I don’t know that girl. Who is that girl?’
192
193 ‘Sissy Jupe, sir,’ explained number twenty, blushing, standing up, and
194 curtseying.
195
196 ‘Sissy is not a name,’ said Mr. Gradgrind. ‘Don’t call yourself Sissy.
197 Call yourself Cecilia.’
198
199 ‘It’s father as calls me Sissy, sir,’ returned the young girl in a
200 trembling voice, and with another curtsey.
201
202 ‘Then he has no business to do it,’ said Mr. Gradgrind. ‘Tell him he
203 mustn’t. Cecilia Jupe. Let me see. What is your father?’
204
205 ‘He belongs to the horse-riding, if you please, sir.’
206
207 Mr. Gradgrind frowned, and waved off the objectionable calling with his
208 hand.
209
210 ‘We don’t want to know anything about that, here. You mustn’t tell us
211 about that, here. Your father breaks horses, don’t he?’
212
213 ‘If you please, sir, when they can get any to break, they do break horses
214 in the ring, sir.’
215
216 ‘You mustn’t tell us about the ring, here. Very well, then. Describe
217 your father as a horsebreaker. He doctors sick horses, I dare say?’
218
219 ‘Oh yes, sir.’
220
221 ‘Very well, then. He is a veterinary surgeon, a farrier, and
222 horsebreaker. Give me your definition of a horse.’
223
224 (Sissy Jupe thrown into the greatest alarm by this demand.)
225
226 ‘Girl number twenty unable to define a horse!’ said Mr. Gradgrind, for
227 the general behoof of all the little pitchers. ‘Girl number twenty
228 possessed of no facts, in reference to one of the commonest of animals!
229 Some boy’s definition of a horse. Bitzer, yours.’
230
231 The square finger, moving here and there, lighted suddenly on Bitzer,
232 perhaps because he chanced to sit in the same ray of sunlight which,
233 darting in at one of the bare windows of the intensely white-washed room,
234 irradiated Sissy. For, the boys and girls sat on the face of the
235 inclined plane in two compact bodies, divided up the centre by a narrow
236 interval; and Sissy, being at the corner of a row on the sunny side, came
237 in for the beginning of a sunbeam, of which Bitzer, being at the corner
238 of a row on the other side, a few rows in advance, caught the end. But,
239 whereas the girl was so dark-eyed and dark-haired, that she seemed to
240 receive a deeper and more lustrous colour from the sun, when it shone
241 upon her, the boy was so light-eyed and light-haired that the self-same
242 rays appeared to draw out of him what little colour he ever possessed.
243 His cold eyes would hardly have been eyes, but for the short ends of
244 lashes which, by bringing them into immediate contrast with something
245 paler than themselves, expressed their form. His short-cropped hair
246 might have been a mere continuation of the sandy freckles on his forehead
247 and face. His skin was so unwholesomely deficient in the natural tinge,
248 that he looked as though, if he were cut, he would bleed white.
249
250 ‘Bitzer,’ said Thomas Gradgrind. ‘Your definition of a horse.’
251
252 ‘Quadruped. Graminivorous. Forty teeth, namely twenty-four grinders,
253 four eye-teeth, and twelve incisive. Sheds coat in the spring; in marshy
254 countries, sheds hoofs, too. Hoofs hard, but requiring to be shod with
255 iron. Age known by marks in mouth.’ Thus (and much more) Bitzer.
256
257 ‘Now girl number twenty,’ said Mr. Gradgrind. ‘You know what a horse
258 is.’
259
260 She curtseyed again, and would have blushed deeper, if she could have
261 blushed deeper than she had blushed all this time. Bitzer, after rapidly
262 blinking at Thomas Gradgrind with both eyes at once, and so catching the
263 light upon his quivering ends of lashes that they looked like the antennæ
264 of busy insects, put his knuckles to his freckled forehead, and sat down
265 again.
266
267 The third gentleman now stepped forth. A mighty man at cutting and
268 drying, he was; a government officer; in his way (and in most other
269 people’s too), a professed pugilist; always in training, always with a
270 system to force down the general throat like a bolus, always to be heard
271 of at the bar of his little Public-office, ready to fight all England.
272 To continue in fistic phraseology, he had a genius for coming up to the
273 scratch, wherever and whatever it was, and proving himself an ugly
274 customer. He would go in and damage any subject whatever with his right,
275 follow up with his left, stop, exchange, counter, bore his opponent (he
276 always fought All England) to the ropes, and fall upon him neatly. He
277 was certain to knock the wind out of common sense, and render that
278 unlucky adversary deaf to the call of time. And he had it in charge from
279 high authority to bring about the great public-office Millennium, when
280 Commissioners should reign upon earth.
281
282 ‘Very well,’ said this gentleman, briskly smiling, and folding his arms.
283 ‘That’s a horse. Now, let me ask you girls and boys, Would you paper a
284 room with representations of horses?’
285
286 After a pause, one half of the children cried in chorus, ‘Yes, sir!’
287 Upon which the other half, seeing in the gentleman’s face that Yes was
288 wrong, cried out in chorus, ‘No, sir!’—as the custom is, in these
289 examinations.
290
291 ‘Of course, No. Why wouldn’t you?’
292
293 A pause. One corpulent slow boy, with a wheezy manner of breathing,
294 ventured the answer, Because he wouldn’t paper a room at all, but would
295 paint it.
296
297 ‘You _must_ paper it,’ said the gentleman, rather warmly.
298
299 ‘You must paper it,’ said Thomas Gradgrind, ‘whether you like it or not.
300 Don’t tell _us_ you wouldn’t paper it. What do you mean, boy?’
301
302 ‘I’ll explain to you, then,’ said the gentleman, after another and a
303 dismal pause, ‘why you wouldn’t paper a room with representations of
304 horses. Do you ever see horses walking up and down the sides of rooms in
305 reality—in fact? Do you?’
306
307 ‘Yes, sir!’ from one half. ‘No, sir!’ from the other.
308
309 ‘Of course no,’ said the gentleman, with an indignant look at the wrong
310 half. ‘Why, then, you are not to see anywhere, what you don’t see in
311 fact; you are not to have anywhere, what you don’t have in fact. What is
312 called Taste, is only another name for Fact.’ Thomas Gradgrind nodded
313 his approbation.
314
315 ‘This is a new principle, a discovery, a great discovery,’ said the
316 gentleman. ‘Now, I’ll try you again. Suppose you were going to carpet a
317 room. Would you use a carpet having a representation of flowers upon
318 it?’
319
320 There being a general conviction by this time that ‘No, sir!’ was always
321 the right answer to this gentleman, the chorus of NO was very strong.
322 Only a few feeble stragglers said Yes: among them Sissy Jupe.
323
324 ‘Girl number twenty,’ said the gentleman, smiling in the calm strength of
325 knowledge.
326
327 Sissy blushed, and stood up.
328
329 ‘So you would carpet your room—or your husband’s room, if you were a
330 grown woman, and had a husband—with representations of flowers, would
331 you?’ said the gentleman. ‘Why would you?’
332
333 ‘If you please, sir, I am very fond of flowers,’ returned the girl.
334
335 ‘And is that why you would put tables and chairs upon them, and have
336 people walking over them with heavy boots?’
337
338 ‘It wouldn’t hurt them, sir. They wouldn’t crush and wither, if you
339 please, sir. They would be the pictures of what was very pretty and
340 pleasant, and I would fancy—’
341
342 ‘Ay, ay, ay! But you mustn’t fancy,’ cried the gentleman, quite elated
343 by coming so happily to his point. ‘That’s it! You are never to fancy.’
344
345 ‘You are not, Cecilia Jupe,’ Thomas Gradgrind solemnly repeated, ‘to do
346 anything of that kind.’
347
348 ‘Fact, fact, fact!’ said the gentleman. And ‘Fact, fact, fact!’ repeated
349 Thomas Gradgrind.
350
351 ‘You are to be in all things regulated and governed,’ said the gentleman,
352 ‘by fact. We hope to have, before long, a board of fact, composed of
353 commissioners of fact, who will force the people to be a people of fact,
354 and of nothing but fact. You must discard the word Fancy altogether.
355 You have nothing to do with it. You are not to have, in any object of
356 use or ornament, what would be a contradiction in fact. You don’t walk
357 upon flowers in fact; you cannot be allowed to walk upon flowers in
358 carpets. You don’t find that foreign birds and butterflies come and
359 perch upon your crockery; you cannot be permitted to paint foreign birds
360 and butterflies upon your crockery. You never meet with quadrupeds going
361 up and down walls; you must not have quadrupeds represented upon walls.
362 You must use,’ said the gentleman, ‘for all these purposes, combinations
363 and modifications (in primary colours) of mathematical figures which are
364 susceptible of proof and demonstration. This is the new discovery. This
365 is fact. This is taste.’
366
367 The girl curtseyed, and sat down. She was very young, and she looked as
368 if she were frightened by the matter-of-fact prospect the world afforded.
369
370 ‘Now, if Mr. M’Choakumchild,’ said the gentleman, ‘will proceed to give
371 his first lesson here, Mr. Gradgrind, I shall be happy, at your request,
372 to observe his mode of procedure.’
373
374 Mr. Gradgrind was much obliged. ‘Mr. M’Choakumchild, we only wait for
375 you.’
376
377 So, Mr. M’Choakumchild began in his best manner. He and some one hundred
378 and forty other schoolmasters, had been lately turned at the same time,
379 in the same factory, on the same principles, like so many pianoforte
380 legs. He had been put through an immense variety of paces, and had
381 answered volumes of head-breaking questions. Orthography, etymology,
382 syntax, and prosody, biography, astronomy, geography, and general
383 cosmography, the sciences of compound proportion, algebra, land-surveying
384 and levelling, vocal music, and drawing from models, were all at the ends
385 of his ten chilled fingers. He had worked his stony way into Her
386 Majesty’s most Honourable Privy Council’s Schedule B, and had taken the
387 bloom off the higher branches of mathematics and physical science,
388 French, German, Latin, and Greek. He knew all about all the Water Sheds
389 of all the world (whatever they are), and all the histories of all the
390 peoples, and all the names of all the rivers and mountains, and all the
391 productions, manners, and customs of all the countries, and all their
392 boundaries and bearings on the two and thirty points of the compass. Ah,
393 rather overdone, M’Choakumchild. If he had only learnt a little less,
394 how infinitely better he might have taught much more!
395
396 He went to work in this preparatory lesson, not unlike Morgiana in the
397 Forty Thieves: looking into all the vessels ranged before him, one after
398 another, to see what they contained. Say, good M’Choakumchild. When
399 from thy boiling store, thou shalt fill each jar brim full by-and-by,
400 dost thou think that thou wilt always kill outright the robber Fancy
401 lurking within—or sometimes only maim him and distort him!
402
403
404
405 CHAPTER III
406 A LOOPHOLE
407
408
409 MR. GRADGRIND walked homeward from the school, in a state of considerable
410 satisfaction. It was his school, and he intended it to be a model. He
411 intended every child in it to be a model—just as the young Gradgrinds
412 were all models.
413
414 There were five young Gradgrinds, and they were models every one. They
415 had been lectured at, from their tenderest years; coursed, like little
416 hares. Almost as soon as they could run alone, they had been made to run
417 to the lecture-room. The first object with which they had an
418 association, or of which they had a remembrance, was a large black board
419 with a dry Ogre chalking ghastly white figures on it.
420
421 Not that they knew, by name or nature, anything about an Ogre Fact
422 forbid! I only use the word to express a monster in a lecturing castle,
423 with Heaven knows how many heads manipulated into one, taking childhood
424 captive, and dragging it into gloomy statistical dens by the hair.
425
426 No little Gradgrind had ever seen a face in the moon; it was up in the
427 moon before it could speak distinctly. No little Gradgrind had ever
428 learnt the silly jingle, Twinkle, twinkle, little star; how I wonder what
429 you are! No little Gradgrind had ever known wonder on the subject, each
430 little Gradgrind having at five years old dissected the Great Bear like a
431 Professor Owen, and driven Charles’s Wain like a locomotive
432 engine-driver. No little Gradgrind had ever associated a cow in a field
433 with that famous cow with the crumpled horn who tossed the dog who
434 worried the cat who killed the rat who ate the malt, or with that yet
435 more famous cow who swallowed Tom Thumb: it had never heard of those
436 celebrities, and had only been introduced to a cow as a graminivorous
437 ruminating quadruped with several stomachs.
438
439 To his matter-of-fact home, which was called Stone Lodge, Mr. Gradgrind
440 directed his steps. He had virtually retired from the wholesale hardware
441 trade before he built Stone Lodge, and was now looking about for a
442 suitable opportunity of making an arithmetical figure in Parliament.
443 Stone Lodge was situated on a moor within a mile or two of a great
444 town—called Coketown in the present faithful guide-book.
445
446 A very regular feature on the face of the country, Stone Lodge was. Not
447 the least disguise toned down or shaded off that uncompromising fact in
448 the landscape. A great square house, with a heavy portico darkening the
449 principal windows, as its master’s heavy brows overshadowed his eyes. A
450 calculated, cast up, balanced, and proved house. Six windows on this
451 side of the door, six on that side; a total of twelve in this wing, a
452 total of twelve in the other wing; four-and-twenty carried over to the
453 back wings. A lawn and garden and an infant avenue, all ruled straight
454 like a botanical account-book. Gas and ventilation, drainage and
455 water-service, all of the primest quality. Iron clamps and girders,
456 fire-proof from top to bottom; mechanical lifts for the housemaids, with
457 all their brushes and brooms; everything that heart could desire.
458
459 Everything? Well, I suppose so. The little Gradgrinds had cabinets in
460 various departments of science too. They had a little conchological
461 cabinet, and a little metallurgical cabinet, and a little mineralogical
462 cabinet; and the specimens were all arranged and labelled, and the bits
463 of stone and ore looked as though they might have been broken from the
464 parent substances by those tremendously hard instruments their own names;
465 and, to paraphrase the idle legend of Peter Piper, who had never found
466 his way into their nursery, If the greedy little Gradgrinds grasped at
467 more than this, what was it for good gracious goodness’ sake, that the
468 greedy little Gradgrinds grasped it!
469
470 Their father walked on in a hopeful and satisfied frame of mind. He was
471 an affectionate father, after his manner; but he would probably have
472 described himself (if he had been put, like Sissy Jupe, upon a
473 definition) as ‘an eminently practical’ father. He had a particular
474 pride in the phrase eminently practical, which was considered to have a
475 special application to him. Whatsoever the public meeting held in
476 Coketown, and whatsoever the subject of such meeting, some Coketowner was
477 sure to seize the occasion of alluding to his eminently practical friend
478 Gradgrind. This always pleased the eminently practical friend. He knew
479 it to be his due, but his due was acceptable.
480
481 He had reached the neutral ground upon the outskirts of the town, which
482 was neither town nor country, and yet was either spoiled, when his ears
483 were invaded by the sound of music. The clashing and banging band
484 attached to the horse-riding establishment, which had there set up its
485 rest in a wooden pavilion, was in full bray. A flag, floating from the
486 summit of the temple, proclaimed to mankind that it was ‘Sleary’s
487 Horse-riding’ which claimed their suffrages. Sleary himself, a stout
488 modern statue with a money-box at its elbow, in an ecclesiastical niche
489 of early Gothic architecture, took the money. Miss Josephine Sleary, as
490 some very long and very narrow strips of printed bill announced, was then
491 inaugurating the entertainments with her graceful equestrian Tyrolean
492 flower-act. Among the other pleasing but always strictly moral wonders
493 which must be seen to be believed, Signor Jupe was that afternoon to
494 ‘elucidate the diverting accomplishments of his highly trained performing
495 dog Merrylegs.’ He was also to exhibit ‘his astounding feat of throwing
496 seventy-five hundred-weight in rapid succession backhanded over his head,
497 thus forming a fountain of solid iron in mid-air, a feat never before
498 attempted in this or any other country, and which having elicited such
499 rapturous plaudits from enthusiastic throngs it cannot be withdrawn.’
500 The same Signor Jupe was to ‘enliven the varied performances at frequent
501 intervals with his chaste Shaksperean quips and retorts.’ Lastly, he was
502 to wind them up by appearing in his favourite character of Mr. William
503 Button, of Tooley Street, in ‘the highly novel and laughable
504 hippo-comedietta of The Tailor’s Journey to Brentford.’
505
506 Thomas Gradgrind took no heed of these trivialities of course, but passed
507 on as a practical man ought to pass on, either brushing the noisy insects
508 from his thoughts, or consigning them to the House of Correction. But,
509 the turning of the road took him by the back of the booth, and at the
510 back of the booth a number of children were congregated in a number of
511 stealthy attitudes, striving to peep in at the hidden glories of the
512 place.
513
514 This brought him to a stop. ‘Now, to think of these vagabonds,’ said he,
515 ‘attracting the young rabble from a model school.’
516
517 A space of stunted grass and dry rubbish being between him and the young
518 rabble, he took his eyeglass out of his waistcoat to look for any child
519 he knew by name, and might order off. Phenomenon almost incredible
520 though distinctly seen, what did he then behold but his own metallurgical
521 Louisa, peeping with all her might through a hole in a deal board, and
522 his own mathematical Thomas abasing himself on the ground to catch but a
523 hoof of the graceful equestrian Tyrolean flower-act!
524
525 Dumb with amazement, Mr. Gradgrind crossed to the spot where his family
526 was thus disgraced, laid his hand upon each erring child, and said:
527
528 ‘Louisa!! Thomas!!’
529
530 Both rose, red and disconcerted. But, Louisa looked at her father with
531 more boldness than Thomas did. Indeed, Thomas did not look at him, but
532 gave himself up to be taken home like a machine.
533
534 ‘In the name of wonder, idleness, and folly!’ said Mr. Gradgrind, leading
535 each away by a hand; ‘what do you do here?’
536
537 ‘Wanted to see what it was like,’ returned Louisa, shortly.
538
539 ‘What it was like?’
540
541 ‘Yes, father.’
542
543 There was an air of jaded sullenness in them both, and particularly in
544 the girl: yet, struggling through the dissatisfaction of her face, there
545 was a light with nothing to rest upon, a fire with nothing to burn, a
546 starved imagination keeping life in itself somehow, which brightened its
547 expression. Not with the brightness natural to cheerful youth, but with
548 uncertain, eager, doubtful flashes, which had something painful in them,
549 analogous to the changes on a blind face groping its way.
550
551 She was a child now, of fifteen or sixteen; but at no distant day would
552 seem to become a woman all at once. Her father thought so as he looked
553 at her. She was pretty. Would have been self-willed (he thought in his
554 eminently practical way) but for her bringing-up.
555
556 ‘Thomas, though I have the fact before me, I find it difficult to believe
557 that you, with your education and resources, should have brought your
558 sister to a scene like this.’
559
560 ‘I brought _him_, father,’ said Louisa, quickly. ‘I asked him to come.’
561
562 ‘I am sorry to hear it. I am very sorry indeed to hear it. It makes
563 Thomas no better, and it makes you worse, Louisa.’
564
565 She looked at her father again, but no tear fell down her cheek.
566
567 ‘You! Thomas and you, to whom the circle of the sciences is open; Thomas
568 and you, who may be said to be replete with facts; Thomas and you, who
569 have been trained to mathematical exactness; Thomas and you, here!’ cried
570 Mr. Gradgrind. ‘In this degraded position! I am amazed.’
571
572 ‘I was tired, father. I have been tired a long time,’ said Louisa.
573
574 ‘Tired? Of what?’ asked the astonished father.
575
576 ‘I don’t know of what—of everything, I think.’
577
578 ‘Say not another word,’ returned Mr. Gradgrind. ‘You are childish. I
579 will hear no more.’ He did not speak again until they had walked some
580 half-a-mile in silence, when he gravely broke out with: ‘What would your
581 best friends say, Louisa? Do you attach no value to their good opinion?
582 What would Mr. Bounderby say?’ At the mention of this name, his daughter
583 stole a look at him, remarkable for its intense and searching character.
584 He saw nothing of it, for before he looked at her, she had again cast
585 down her eyes!
586
587 ‘What,’ he repeated presently, ‘would Mr. Bounderby say?’ All the way to
588 Stone Lodge, as with grave indignation he led the two delinquents home,
589 he repeated at intervals ‘What would Mr. Bounderby say?’—as if Mr.
590 Bounderby had been Mrs. Grundy.
591
592
593
594 CHAPTER IV
595 MR. BOUNDERBY
596
597
598 NOT being Mrs. Grundy, who _was_ Mr. Bounderby?
599
600 Why, Mr. Bounderby was as near being Mr. Gradgrind’s bosom friend, as a
601 man perfectly devoid of sentiment can approach that spiritual
602 relationship towards another man perfectly devoid of sentiment. So near
603 was Mr. Bounderby—or, if the reader should prefer it, so far off.
604
605 He was a rich man: banker, merchant, manufacturer, and what not. A big,
606 loud man, with a stare, and a metallic laugh. A man made out of a coarse
607 material, which seemed to have been stretched to make so much of him. A
608 man with a great puffed head and forehead, swelled veins in his temples,
609 and such a strained skin to his face that it seemed to hold his eyes
610 open, and lift his eyebrows up. A man with a pervading appearance on him
611 of being inflated like a balloon, and ready to start. A man who could
612 never sufficiently vaunt himself a self-made man. A man who was always
613 proclaiming, through that brassy speaking-trumpet of a voice of his, his
614 old ignorance and his old poverty. A man who was the Bully of humility.
615
616 A year or two younger than his eminently practical friend, Mr. Bounderby
617 looked older; his seven or eight and forty might have had the seven or
618 eight added to it again, without surprising anybody. He had not much
619 hair. One might have fancied he had talked it off; and that what was
620 left, all standing up in disorder, was in that condition from being
621 constantly blown about by his windy boastfulness.
622
623 In the formal drawing-room of Stone Lodge, standing on the hearthrug,
624 warming himself before the fire, Mr. Bounderby delivered some
625 observations to Mrs. Gradgrind on the circumstance of its being his
626 birthday. He stood before the fire, partly because it was a cool spring
627 afternoon, though the sun shone; partly because the shade of Stone Lodge
628 was always haunted by the ghost of damp mortar; partly because he thus
629 took up a commanding position, from which to subdue Mrs. Gradgrind.
630
631 ‘I hadn’t a shoe to my foot. As to a stocking, I didn’t know such a
632 thing by name. I passed the day in a ditch, and the night in a pigsty.
633 That’s the way I spent my tenth birthday. Not that a ditch was new to
634 me, for I was born in a ditch.’
635
636 Mrs. Gradgrind, a little, thin, white, pink-eyed bundle of shawls, of
637 surpassing feebleness, mental and bodily; who was always taking physic
638 without any effect, and who, whenever she showed a symptom of coming to
639 life, was invariably stunned by some weighty piece of fact tumbling on
640 her; Mrs. Gradgrind hoped it was a dry ditch?
641
642 ‘No! As wet as a sop. A foot of water in it,’ said Mr. Bounderby.
643
644 ‘Enough to give a baby cold,’ Mrs. Gradgrind considered.
645
646 ‘Cold? I was born with inflammation of the lungs, and of everything
647 else, I believe, that was capable of inflammation,’ returned Mr.
648 Bounderby. ‘For years, ma’am, I was one of the most miserable little
649 wretches ever seen. I was so sickly, that I was always moaning and
650 groaning. I was so ragged and dirty, that you wouldn’t have touched me
651 with a pair of tongs.’
652
653 Mrs. Gradgrind faintly looked at the tongs, as the most appropriate thing
654 her imbecility could think of doing.
655
656 ‘How I fought through it, _I_ don’t know,’ said Bounderby. ‘I was
657 determined, I suppose. I have been a determined character in later life,
658 and I suppose I was then. Here I am, Mrs. Gradgrind, anyhow, and nobody
659 to thank for my being here, but myself.’
660
661 Mrs. Gradgrind meekly and weakly hoped that his mother—
662
663 ‘_My_ mother? Bolted, ma’am!’ said Bounderby.
664
665 Mrs. Gradgrind, stunned as usual, collapsed and gave it up.
666
667 ‘My mother left me to my grandmother,’ said Bounderby; ‘and, according to
668 the best of my remembrance, my grandmother was the wickedest and the
669 worst old woman that ever lived. If I got a little pair of shoes by any
670 chance, she would take ’em off and sell ’em for drink. Why, I have known
671 that grandmother of mine lie in her bed and drink her four-teen glasses
672 of liquor before breakfast!’
673
674 Mrs. Gradgrind, weakly smiling, and giving no other sign of vitality,
675 looked (as she always did) like an indifferently executed transparency of
676 a small female figure, without enough light behind it.
677
678 ‘She kept a chandler’s shop,’ pursued Bounderby, ‘and kept me in an
679 egg-box. That was the cot of _my_ infancy; an old egg-box. As soon as I
680 was big enough to run away, of course I ran away. Then I became a young
681 vagabond; and instead of one old woman knocking me about and starving me,
682 everybody of all ages knocked me about and starved me. They were right;
683 they had no business to do anything else. I was a nuisance, an
684 incumbrance, and a pest. I know that very well.’
685
686 His pride in having at any time of his life achieved such a great social
687 distinction as to be a nuisance, an incumbrance, and a pest, was only to
688 be satisfied by three sonorous repetitions of the boast.
689
690 ‘I was to pull through it, I suppose, Mrs. Gradgrind. Whether I was to
691 do it or not, ma’am, I did it. I pulled through it, though nobody threw
692 me out a rope. Vagabond, errand-boy, vagabond, labourer, porter, clerk,
693 chief manager, small partner, Josiah Bounderby of Coketown. Those are
694 the antecedents, and the culmination. Josiah Bounderby of Coketown
695 learnt his letters from the outsides of the shops, Mrs. Gradgrind, and
696 was first able to tell the time upon a dial-plate, from studying the
697 steeple clock of St. Giles’s Church, London, under the direction of a
698 drunken cripple, who was a convicted thief, and an incorrigible vagrant.
699 Tell Josiah Bounderby of Coketown, of your district schools and your
700 model schools, and your training schools, and your whole kettle-of-fish
701 of schools; and Josiah Bounderby of Coketown, tells you plainly, all
702 right, all correct—he hadn’t such advantages—but let us have hard-headed,
703 solid-fisted people—the education that made him won’t do for everybody,
704 he knows well—such and such his education was, however, and you may force
705 him to swallow boiling fat, but you shall never force him to suppress the
706 facts of his life.’
707
708 Being heated when he arrived at this climax, Josiah Bounderby of Coketown
709 stopped. He stopped just as his eminently practical friend, still
710 accompanied by the two young culprits, entered the room. His eminently
711 practical friend, on seeing him, stopped also, and gave Louisa a
712 reproachful look that plainly said, ‘Behold your Bounderby!’
713
714 ‘Well!’ blustered Mr. Bounderby, ‘what’s the matter? What is young
715 Thomas in the dumps about?’
716
717 He spoke of young Thomas, but he looked at Louisa.
718
719 ‘We were peeping at the circus,’ muttered Louisa, haughtily, without
720 lifting up her eyes, ‘and father caught us.’
721
722 ‘And, Mrs. Gradgrind,’ said her husband in a lofty manner, ‘I should as
723 soon have expected to find my children reading poetry.’
724
725 ‘Dear me,’ whimpered Mrs. Gradgrind. ‘How can you, Louisa and Thomas! I
726 wonder at you. I declare you’re enough to make one regret ever having
727 had a family at all. I have a great mind to say I wish I hadn’t. _Then_
728 what would you have done, I should like to know?’
729
730 Mr. Gradgrind did not seem favourably impressed by these cogent remarks.
731 He frowned impatiently.
732
733 ‘As if, with my head in its present throbbing state, you couldn’t go and
734 look at the shells and minerals and things provided for you, instead of
735 circuses!’ said Mrs. Gradgrind. ‘You know, as well as I do, no young
736 people have circus masters, or keep circuses in cabinets, or attend
737 lectures about circuses. What can you possibly want to know of circuses
738 then? I am sure you have enough to do, if that’s what you want. With my
739 head in its present state, I couldn’t remember the mere names of half the
740 facts you have got to attend to.’
741
742 ‘That’s the reason!’ pouted Louisa.
743
744 ‘Don’t tell me that’s the reason, because it can’t be nothing of the
745 sort,’ said Mrs. Gradgrind. ‘Go and be somethingological directly.’
746 Mrs. Gradgrind was not a scientific character, and usually dismissed her
747 children to their studies with this general injunction to choose their
748 pursuit.
749
750 In truth, Mrs. Gradgrind’s stock of facts in general was woefully
751 defective; but Mr. Gradgrind in raising her to her high matrimonial
752 position, had been influenced by two reasons. Firstly, she was most
753 satisfactory as a question of figures; and, secondly, she had ‘no
754 nonsense’ about her. By nonsense he meant fancy; and truly it is
755 probable she was as free from any alloy of that nature, as any human
756 being not arrived at the perfection of an absolute idiot, ever was.
757
758 The simple circumstance of being left alone with her husband and Mr.
759 Bounderby, was sufficient to stun this admirable lady again without
760 collision between herself and any other fact. So, she once more died
761 away, and nobody minded her.
762
763 ‘Bounderby,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, drawing a chair to the fireside, ‘you
764 are always so interested in my young people—particularly in Louisa—that I
765 make no apology for saying to you, I am very much vexed by this
766 discovery. I have systematically devoted myself (as you know) to the
767 education of the reason of my family. The reason is (as you know) the
768 only faculty to which education should be addressed. ‘And yet,
769 Bounderby, it would appear from this unexpected circumstance of to-day,
770 though in itself a trifling one, as if something had crept into Thomas’s
771 and Louisa’s minds which is—or rather, which is not—I don’t know that I
772 can express myself better than by saying—which has never been intended to
773 be developed, and in which their reason has no part.’
774
775 ‘There certainly is no reason in looking with interest at a parcel of
776 vagabonds,’ returned Bounderby. ‘When I was a vagabond myself, nobody
777 looked with any interest at _me_; I know that.’
778
779 ‘Then comes the question; said the eminently practical father, with his
780 eyes on the fire, ‘in what has this vulgar curiosity its rise?’
781
782 ‘I’ll tell you in what. In idle imagination.’
783
784 ‘I hope not,’ said the eminently practical; ‘I confess, however, that the
785 misgiving _has_ crossed me on my way home.’
786
787 ‘In idle imagination, Gradgrind,’ repeated Bounderby. ‘A very bad thing
788 for anybody, but a cursed bad thing for a girl like Louisa. I should ask
789 Mrs. Gradgrind’s pardon for strong expressions, but that she knows very
790 well I am not a refined character. Whoever expects refinement in _me_
791 will be disappointed. I hadn’t a refined bringing up.’
792
793 ‘Whether,’ said Gradgrind, pondering with his hands in his pockets, and
794 his cavernous eyes on the fire, ‘whether any instructor or servant can
795 have suggested anything? Whether Louisa or Thomas can have been reading
796 anything? Whether, in spite of all precautions, any idle story-book can
797 have got into the house? Because, in minds that have been practically
798 formed by rule and line, from the cradle upwards, this is so curious, so
799 incomprehensible.’
800
801 ‘Stop a bit!’ cried Bounderby, who all this time had been standing, as
802 before, on the hearth, bursting at the very furniture of the room with
803 explosive humility. ‘You have one of those strollers’ children in the
804 school.’
805
806 ‘Cecilia Jupe, by name,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, with something of a stricken
807 look at his friend.
808
809 ‘Now, stop a bit!’ cried Bounderby again. ‘How did she come there?’
810
811 ‘Why, the fact is, I saw the girl myself, for the first time, only just
812 now. She specially applied here at the house to be admitted, as not
813 regularly belonging to our town, and—yes, you are right, Bounderby, you
814 are right.’
815
816 ‘Now, stop a bit!’ cried Bounderby, once more. ‘Louisa saw her when she
817 came?’
818
819 ‘Louisa certainly did see her, for she mentioned the application to me.
820 But Louisa saw her, I have no doubt, in Mrs. Gradgrind’s presence.’
821
822 ‘Pray, Mrs. Gradgrind,’ said Bounderby, ‘what passed?’
823
824 ‘Oh, my poor health!’ returned Mrs. Gradgrind. ‘The girl wanted to come
825 to the school, and Mr. Gradgrind wanted girls to come to the school, and
826 Louisa and Thomas both said that the girl wanted to come, and that Mr.
827 Gradgrind wanted girls to come, and how was it possible to contradict
828 them when such was the fact!’
829
830 ‘Now I tell you what, Gradgrind!’ said Mr. Bounderby. ‘Turn this girl to
831 the right about, and there’s an end of it.’
832
833 ‘I am much of your opinion.’
834
835 ‘Do it at once,’ said Bounderby, ‘has always been my motto from a child.
836 When I thought I would run away from my egg-box and my grandmother, I did
837 it at once. Do you the same. Do this at once!’
838
839 ‘Are you walking?’ asked his friend. ‘I have the father’s address.
840 Perhaps you would not mind walking to town with me?’
841
842 ‘Not the least in the world,’ said Mr. Bounderby, ‘as long as you do it
843 at once!’
844
845 So, Mr. Bounderby threw on his hat—he always threw it on, as expressing a
846 man who had been far too busily employed in making himself, to acquire
847 any fashion of wearing his hat—and with his hands in his pockets,
848 sauntered out into the hall. ‘I never wear gloves,’ it was his custom to
849 say. ‘I didn’t climb up the ladder in _them_.—Shouldn’t be so high up,
850 if I had.’
851
852 Being left to saunter in the hall a minute or two while Mr. Gradgrind
853 went up-stairs for the address, he opened the door of the children’s
854 study and looked into that serene floor-clothed apartment, which,
855 notwithstanding its book-cases and its cabinets and its variety of
856 learned and philosophical appliances, had much of the genial aspect of a
857 room devoted to hair-cutting. Louisa languidly leaned upon the window
858 looking out, without looking at anything, while young Thomas stood
859 sniffing revengefully at the fire. Adam Smith and Malthus, two younger
860 Gradgrinds, were out at lecture in custody; and little Jane, after
861 manufacturing a good deal of moist pipe-clay on her face with
862 slate-pencil and tears, had fallen asleep over vulgar fractions.
863
864 ‘It’s all right now, Louisa: it’s all right, young Thomas,’ said Mr.
865 Bounderby; ‘you won’t do so any more. I’ll answer for it’s being all
866 over with father. Well, Louisa, that’s worth a kiss, isn’t it?’
867
868 ‘You can take one, Mr. Bounderby,’ returned Louisa, when she had coldly
869 paused, and slowly walked across the room, and ungraciously raised her
870 cheek towards him, with her face turned away.
871
872 ‘Always my pet; ain’t you, Louisa?’ said Mr. Bounderby. ‘Good-bye,
873 Louisa!’
874
875 He went his way, but she stood on the same spot, rubbing the cheek he had
876 kissed, with her handkerchief, until it was burning red. She was still
877 doing this, five minutes afterwards.
878
879 ‘What are you about, Loo?’ her brother sulkily remonstrated. ‘You’ll rub
880 a hole in your face.’
881
882 ‘You may cut the piece out with your penknife if you like, Tom. I
883 wouldn’t cry!’
884
885
886
887 CHAPTER V
888 THE KEYNOTE
889
890
891 COKETOWN, to which Messrs. Bounderby and Gradgrind now walked, was a
892 triumph of fact; it had no greater taint of fancy in it than Mrs.
893 Gradgrind herself. Let us strike the key-note, Coketown, before pursuing
894 our tune.
895
896 It was a town of red brick, or of brick that would have been red if the
897 smoke and ashes had allowed it; but as matters stood, it was a town of
898 unnatural red and black like the painted face of a savage. It was a town
899 of machinery and tall chimneys, out of which interminable serpents of
900 smoke trailed themselves for ever and ever, and never got uncoiled. It
901 had a black canal in it, and a river that ran purple with ill-smelling
902 dye, and vast piles of building full of windows where there was a
903 rattling and a trembling all day long, and where the piston of the
904 steam-engine worked monotonously up and down, like the head of an
905 elephant in a state of melancholy madness. It contained several large
906 streets all very like one another, and many small streets still more like
907 one another, inhabited by people equally like one another, who all went
908 in and out at the same hours, with the same sound upon the same
909 pavements, to do the same work, and to whom every day was the same as
910 yesterday and to-morrow, and every year the counterpart of the last and
911 the next.
912
913 These attributes of Coketown were in the main inseparable from the work
914 by which it was sustained; against them were to be set off, comforts of
915 life which found their way all over the world, and elegancies of life
916 which made, we will not ask how much of the fine lady, who could scarcely
917 bear to hear the place mentioned. The rest of its features were
918 voluntary, and they were these.
919
920 You saw nothing in Coketown but what was severely workful. If the
921 members of a religious persuasion built a chapel there—as the members of
922 eighteen religious persuasions had done—they made it a pious warehouse of
923 red brick, with sometimes (but this is only in highly ornamental
924 examples) a bell in a birdcage on the top of it. The solitary exception
925 was the New Church; a stuccoed edifice with a square steeple over the
926 door, terminating in four short pinnacles like florid wooden legs. All
927 the public inscriptions in the town were painted alike, in severe
928 characters of black and white. The jail might have been the infirmary,
929 the infirmary might have been the jail, the town-hall might have been
930 either, or both, or anything else, for anything that appeared to the
931 contrary in the graces of their construction. Fact, fact, fact,
932 everywhere in the material aspect of the town; fact, fact, fact,
933 everywhere in the immaterial. The M’Choakumchild school was all fact,
934 and the school of design was all fact, and the relations between master
935 and man were all fact, and everything was fact between the lying-in
936 hospital and the cemetery, and what you couldn’t state in figures, or
937 show to be purchaseable in the cheapest market and saleable in the
938 dearest, was not, and never should be, world without end, Amen.
939
940 A town so sacred to fact, and so triumphant in its assertion, of course
941 got on well? Why no, not quite well. No? Dear me!
942
943 No. Coketown did not come out of its own furnaces, in all respects like
944 gold that had stood the fire. First, the perplexing mystery of the place
945 was, Who belonged to the eighteen denominations? Because, whoever did,
946 the labouring people did not. It was very strange to walk through the
947 streets on a Sunday morning, and note how few of _them_ the barbarous
948 jangling of bells that was driving the sick and nervous mad, called away
949 from their own quarter, from their own close rooms, from the corners of
950 their own streets, where they lounged listlessly, gazing at all the
951 church and chapel going, as at a thing with which they had no manner of
952 concern. Nor was it merely the stranger who noticed this, because there
953 was a native organization in Coketown itself, whose members were to be
954 heard of in the House of Commons every session, indignantly petitioning
955 for acts of parliament that should make these people religious by main
956 force. Then came the Teetotal Society, who complained that these same
957 people _would_ get drunk, and showed in tabular statements that they did
958 get drunk, and proved at tea parties that no inducement, human or Divine
959 (except a medal), would induce them to forego their custom of getting
960 drunk. Then came the chemist and druggist, with other tabular
961 statements, showing that when they didn’t get drunk, they took opium.
962 Then came the experienced chaplain of the jail, with more tabular
963 statements, outdoing all the previous tabular statements, and showing
964 that the same people _would_ resort to low haunts, hidden from the public
965 eye, where they heard low singing and saw low dancing, and mayhap joined
966 in it; and where A. B., aged twenty-four next birthday, and committed for
967 eighteen months’ solitary, had himself said (not that he had ever shown
968 himself particularly worthy of belief) his ruin began, as he was
969 perfectly sure and confident that otherwise he would have been a tip-top
970 moral specimen. Then came Mr. Gradgrind and Mr. Bounderby, the two
971 gentlemen at this present moment walking through Coketown, and both
972 eminently practical, who could, on occasion, furnish more tabular
973 statements derived from their own personal experience, and illustrated by
974 cases they had known and seen, from which it clearly appeared—in short,
975 it was the only clear thing in the case—that these same people were a bad
976 lot altogether, gentlemen; that do what you would for them they were
977 never thankful for it, gentlemen; that they were restless, gentlemen;
978 that they never knew what they wanted; that they lived upon the best, and
979 bought fresh butter; and insisted on Mocha coffee, and rejected all but
980 prime parts of meat, and yet were eternally dissatisfied and
981 unmanageable. In short, it was the moral of the old nursery fable:
982
983 There was an old woman, and what do you think?
984 She lived upon nothing but victuals and drink;
985 Victuals and drink were the whole of her diet,
986 And yet this old woman would NEVER be quiet.
987
988 Is it possible, I wonder, that there was any analogy between the case of
989 the Coketown population and the case of the little Gradgrinds? Surely,
990 none of us in our sober senses and acquainted with figures, are to be
991 told at this time of day, that one of the foremost elements in the
992 existence of the Coketown working-people had been for scores of years,
993 deliberately set at nought? That there was any Fancy in them demanding
994 to be brought into healthy existence instead of struggling on in
995 convulsions? That exactly in the ratio as they worked long and
996 monotonously, the craving grew within them for some physical relief—some
997 relaxation, encouraging good humour and good spirits, and giving them a
998 vent—some recognized holiday, though it were but for an honest dance to a
999 stirring band of music—some occasional light pie in which even
1000 M’Choakumchild had no finger—which craving must and would be satisfied
1001 aright, or must and would inevitably go wrong, until the laws of the
1002 Creation were repealed?
1003
1004 ‘This man lives at Pod’s End, and I don’t quite know Pod’s End,’ said Mr.
1005 Gradgrind. ‘Which is it, Bounderby?’
1006
1007 Mr. Bounderby knew it was somewhere down town, but knew no more
1008 respecting it. So they stopped for a moment, looking about.
1009
1010 Almost as they did so, there came running round the corner of the street
1011 at a quick pace and with a frightened look, a girl whom Mr. Gradgrind
1012 recognized. ‘Halloa!’ said he. ‘Stop! Where are you going! Stop!’
1013 Girl number twenty stopped then, palpitating, and made him a curtsey.
1014
1015 ‘Why are you tearing about the streets,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, ‘in this
1016 improper manner?’
1017
1018 ‘I was—I was run after, sir,’ the girl panted, ‘and I wanted to get
1019 away.’
1020
1021 ‘Run after?’ repeated Mr. Gradgrind. ‘Who would run after _you_?’
1022
1023 The question was unexpectedly and suddenly answered for her, by the
1024 colourless boy, Bitzer, who came round the corner with such blind speed
1025 and so little anticipating a stoppage on the pavement, that he brought
1026 himself up against Mr. Gradgrind’s waistcoat and rebounded into the road.
1027
1028 ‘What do you mean, boy?’ said Mr. Gradgrind. ‘What are you doing? How
1029 dare you dash against—everybody—in this manner?’ Bitzer picked up his
1030 cap, which the concussion had knocked off; and backing, and knuckling his
1031 forehead, pleaded that it was an accident.
1032
1033 ‘Was this boy running after you, Jupe?’ asked Mr. Gradgrind.
1034
1035 ‘Yes, sir,’ said the girl reluctantly.
1036
1037 ‘No, I wasn’t, sir!’ cried Bitzer. ‘Not till she run away from me. But
1038 the horse-riders never mind what they say, sir; they’re famous for it.
1039 You know the horse-riders are famous for never minding what they say,’
1040 addressing Sissy. ‘It’s as well known in the town as—please, sir, as the
1041 multiplication table isn’t known to the horse-riders.’ Bitzer tried Mr.
1042 Bounderby with this.
1043
1044 ‘He frightened me so,’ said the girl, ‘with his cruel faces!’
1045
1046 ‘Oh!’ cried Bitzer. ‘Oh! An’t you one of the rest! An’t you a
1047 horse-rider! I never looked at her, sir. I asked her if she would know
1048 how to define a horse to-morrow, and offered to tell her again, and she
1049 ran away, and I ran after her, sir, that she might know how to answer
1050 when she was asked. You wouldn’t have thought of saying such mischief if
1051 you hadn’t been a horse-rider?’
1052
1053 ‘Her calling seems to be pretty well known among ’em,’ observed Mr.
1054 Bounderby. ‘You’d have had the whole school peeping in a row, in a
1055 week.’
1056
1057 ‘Truly, I think so,’ returned his friend. ‘Bitzer, turn you about and
1058 take yourself home. Jupe, stay here a moment. Let me hear of your
1059 running in this manner any more, boy, and you will hear of me through the
1060 master of the school. You understand what I mean. Go along.’
1061
1062 The boy stopped in his rapid blinking, knuckled his forehead again,
1063 glanced at Sissy, turned about, and retreated.
1064
1065 ‘Now, girl,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, ‘take this gentleman and me to your
1066 father’s; we are going there. What have you got in that bottle you are
1067 carrying?’
1068
1069 ‘Gin,’ said Mr. Bounderby.
1070
1071 ‘Dear, no, sir! It’s the nine oils.’
1072
1073 ‘The what?’ cried Mr. Bounderby.
1074
1075 ‘The nine oils, sir, to rub father with.’
1076
1077 ‘Then,’ said Mr. Bounderby, with a loud short laugh, ‘what the devil do
1078 you rub your father with nine oils for?’
1079
1080 ‘It’s what our people aways use, sir, when they get any hurts in the
1081 ring,’ replied the girl, looking over her shoulder, to assure herself
1082 that her pursuer was gone. ‘They bruise themselves very bad sometimes.’
1083
1084 ‘Serve ’em right,’ said Mr. Bounderby, ‘for being idle.’ She glanced up
1085 at his face, with mingled astonishment and dread.
1086
1087 ‘By George!’ said Mr. Bounderby, ‘when I was four or five years younger
1088 than you, I had worse bruises upon me than ten oils, twenty oils, forty
1089 oils, would have rubbed off. I didn’t get ’em by posture-making, but by
1090 being banged about. There was no rope-dancing for me; I danced on the
1091 bare ground and was larruped with the rope.’
1092
1093 Mr. Gradgrind, though hard enough, was by no means so rough a man as Mr.
1094 Bounderby. His character was not unkind, all things considered; it might
1095 have been a very kind one indeed, if he had only made some round mistake
1096 in the arithmetic that balanced it, years ago. He said, in what he meant
1097 for a reassuring tone, as they turned down a narrow road, ‘And this is
1098 Pod’s End; is it, Jupe?’
1099
1100 ‘This is it, sir, and—if you wouldn’t mind, sir—this is the house.’
1101
1102 She stopped, at twilight, at the door of a mean little public-house, with
1103 dim red lights in it. As haggard and as shabby, as if, for want of
1104 custom, it had itself taken to drinking, and had gone the way all
1105 drunkards go, and was very near the end of it.
1106
1107 ‘It’s only crossing the bar, sir, and up the stairs, if you wouldn’t
1108 mind, and waiting there for a moment till I get a candle. If you should
1109 hear a dog, sir, it’s only Merrylegs, and he only barks.’
1110
1111 ‘Merrylegs and nine oils, eh!’ said Mr. Bounderby, entering last with his
1112 metallic laugh. ‘Pretty well this, for a self-made man!’
1113
1114
1115
1116 CHAPTER VI
1117 SLEARY’S HORSEMANSHIP
1118
1119
1120 THE name of the public-house was the Pegasus’s Arms. The Pegasus’s legs
1121 might have been more to the purpose; but, underneath the winged horse
1122 upon the sign-board, the Pegasus’s Arms was inscribed in Roman letters.
1123 Beneath that inscription again, in a flowing scroll, the painter had
1124 touched off the lines:
1125
1126 Good malt makes good beer,
1127 Walk in, and they’ll draw it here;
1128 Good wine makes good brandy,
1129 Give us a call, and you’ll find it handy.
1130
1131 Framed and glazed upon the wall behind the dingy little bar, was another
1132 Pegasus—a theatrical one—with real gauze let in for his wings, golden
1133 stars stuck on all over him, and his ethereal harness made of red silk.
1134
1135 As it had grown too dusky without, to see the sign, and as it had not
1136 grown light enough within to see the picture, Mr. Gradgrind and Mr.
1137 Bounderby received no offence from these idealities. They followed the
1138 girl up some steep corner-stairs without meeting any one, and stopped in
1139 the dark while she went on for a candle. They expected every moment to
1140 hear Merrylegs give tongue, but the highly trained performing dog had not
1141 barked when the girl and the candle appeared together.
1142
1143 ‘Father is not in our room, sir,’ she said, with a face of great
1144 surprise. ‘If you wouldn’t mind walking in, I’ll find him directly.’
1145 They walked in; and Sissy, having set two chairs for them, sped away with
1146 a quick light step. It was a mean, shabbily furnished room, with a bed
1147 in it. The white night-cap, embellished with two peacock’s feathers and
1148 a pigtail bolt upright, in which Signor Jupe had that very afternoon
1149 enlivened the varied performances with his chaste Shaksperean quips and
1150 retorts, hung upon a nail; but no other portion of his wardrobe, or other
1151 token of himself or his pursuits, was to be seen anywhere. As to
1152 Merrylegs, that respectable ancestor of the highly trained animal who
1153 went aboard the ark, might have been accidentally shut out of it, for any
1154 sign of a dog that was manifest to eye or ear in the Pegasus’s Arms.
1155
1156 They heard the doors of rooms above, opening and shutting as Sissy went
1157 from one to another in quest of her father; and presently they heard
1158 voices expressing surprise. She came bounding down again in a great
1159 hurry, opened a battered and mangy old hair trunk, found it empty, and
1160 looked round with her hands clasped and her face full of terror.
1161
1162 ‘Father must have gone down to the Booth, sir. I don’t know why he
1163 should go there, but he must be there; I’ll bring him in a minute!’ She
1164 was gone directly, without her bonnet; with her long, dark, childish hair
1165 streaming behind her.
1166
1167 ‘What does she mean!’ said Mr. Gradgrind. ‘Back in a minute? It’s more
1168 than a mile off.’
1169
1170 Before Mr. Bounderby could reply, a young man appeared at the door, and
1171 introducing himself with the words, ‘By your leaves, gentlemen!’ walked
1172 in with his hands in his pockets. His face, close-shaven, thin, and
1173 sallow, was shaded by a great quantity of dark hair, brushed into a roll
1174 all round his head, and parted up the centre. His legs were very robust,
1175 but shorter than legs of good proportions should have been. His chest
1176 and back were as much too broad, as his legs were too short. He was
1177 dressed in a Newmarket coat and tight-fitting trousers; wore a shawl
1178 round his neck; smelt of lamp-oil, straw, orange-peel, horses’ provender,
1179 and sawdust; and looked a most remarkable sort of Centaur, compounded of
1180 the stable and the play-house. Where the one began, and the other ended,
1181 nobody could have told with any precision. This gentleman was mentioned
1182 in the bills of the day as Mr. E. W. B. Childers, so justly celebrated
1183 for his daring vaulting act as the Wild Huntsman of the North American
1184 Prairies; in which popular performance, a diminutive boy with an old
1185 face, who now accompanied him, assisted as his infant son: being carried
1186 upside down over his father’s shoulder, by one foot, and held by the
1187 crown of his head, heels upwards, in the palm of his father’s hand,
1188 according to the violent paternal manner in which wild huntsmen may be
1189 observed to fondle their offspring. Made up with curls, wreaths, wings,
1190 white bismuth, and carmine, this hopeful young person soared into so
1191 pleasing a Cupid as to constitute the chief delight of the maternal part
1192 of the spectators; but in private, where his characteristics were a
1193 precocious cutaway coat and an extremely gruff voice, he became of the
1194 Turf, turfy.
1195
1196 ‘By your leaves, gentlemen,’ said Mr. E. W. B. Childers, glancing round
1197 the room. ‘It was you, I believe, that were wishing to see Jupe!’
1198
1199 ‘It was,’ said Mr. Gradgrind. ‘His daughter has gone to fetch him, but I
1200 can’t wait; therefore, if you please, I will leave a message for him with
1201 you.’
1202
1203 ‘You see, my friend,’ Mr. Bounderby put in, ‘we are the kind of people
1204 who know the value of time, and you are the kind of people who don’t know
1205 the value of time.’
1206
1207 ‘I have not,’ retorted Mr. Childers, after surveying him from head to
1208 foot, ‘the honour of knowing _you_,—but if you mean that you can make
1209 more money of your time than I can of mine, I should judge from your
1210 appearance, that you are about right.’
1211
1212 ‘And when you have made it, you can keep it too, I should think,’ said
1213 Cupid.
1214
1215 ‘Kidderminster, stow that!’ said Mr. Childers. (Master Kidderminster was
1216 Cupid’s mortal name.)
1217
1218 ‘What does he come here cheeking us for, then?’ cried Master
1219 Kidderminster, showing a very irascible temperament. ‘If you want to
1220 cheek us, pay your ochre at the doors and take it out.’
1221
1222 ‘Kidderminster,’ said Mr. Childers, raising his voice, ‘stow that!—Sir,’
1223 to Mr. Gradgrind, ‘I was addressing myself to you. You may or you may
1224 not be aware (for perhaps you have not been much in the audience), that
1225 Jupe has missed his tip very often, lately.’
1226
1227 ‘Has—what has he missed?’ asked Mr. Gradgrind, glancing at the potent
1228 Bounderby for assistance.
1229
1230 ‘Missed his tip.’
1231
1232 ‘Offered at the Garters four times last night, and never done ’em once,’
1233 said Master Kidderminster. ‘Missed his tip at the banners, too, and was
1234 loose in his ponging.’
1235
1236 ‘Didn’t do what he ought to do. Was short in his leaps and bad in his
1237 tumbling,’ Mr. Childers interpreted.
1238
1239 ‘Oh!’ said Mr. Gradgrind, ‘that is tip, is it?’
1240
1241 ‘In a general way that’s missing his tip,’ Mr. E. W. B. Childers
1242 answered.
1243
1244 ‘Nine oils, Merrylegs, missing tips, garters, banners, and Ponging, eh!’
1245 ejaculated Bounderby, with his laugh of laughs. ‘Queer sort of company,
1246 too, for a man who has raised himself!’
1247
1248 ‘Lower yourself, then,’ retorted Cupid. ‘Oh Lord! if you’ve raised
1249 yourself so high as all that comes to, let yourself down a bit.’
1250
1251 ‘This is a very obtrusive lad!’ said Mr. Gradgrind, turning, and knitting
1252 his brows on him.
1253
1254 ‘We’d have had a young gentleman to meet you, if we had known you were
1255 coming,’ retorted Master Kidderminster, nothing abashed. ‘It’s a pity
1256 you don’t have a bespeak, being so particular. You’re on the Tight-Jeff,
1257 ain’t you?’
1258
1259 ‘What does this unmannerly boy mean,’ asked Mr. Gradgrind, eyeing him in
1260 a sort of desperation, ‘by Tight-Jeff?’
1261
1262 ‘There! Get out, get out!’ said Mr. Childers, thrusting his young friend
1263 from the room, rather in the prairie manner. ‘Tight-Jeff or Slack-Jeff,
1264 it don’t much signify: it’s only tight-rope and slack-rope. You were
1265 going to give me a message for Jupe?’
1266
1267 ‘Yes, I was.’
1268
1269 ‘Then,’ continued Mr. Childers, quickly, ‘my opinion is, he will never
1270 receive it. Do you know much of him?’
1271
1272 ‘I never saw the man in my life.’
1273
1274 ‘I doubt if you ever _will_ see him now. It’s pretty plain to me, he’s
1275 off.’
1276
1277 ‘Do you mean that he has deserted his daughter?’
1278
1279 ‘Ay! I mean,’ said Mr. Childers, with a nod, ‘that he has cut. He was
1280 goosed last night, he was goosed the night before last, he was goosed
1281 to-day. He has lately got in the way of being always goosed, and he
1282 can’t stand it.’
1283
1284 ‘Why has he been—so very much—Goosed?’ asked Mr. Gradgrind, forcing the
1285 word out of himself, with great solemnity and reluctance.
1286
1287 ‘His joints are turning stiff, and he is getting used up,’ said Childers.
1288 ‘He has his points as a Cackler still, but he can’t get a living out of
1289 _them_.’
1290
1291 ‘A Cackler!’ Bounderby repeated. ‘Here we go again!’
1292
1293 ‘A speaker, if the gentleman likes it better,’ said Mr. E. W. B.
1294 Childers, superciliously throwing the interpretation over his shoulder,
1295 and accompanying it with a shake of his long hair—which all shook at
1296 once. ‘Now, it’s a remarkable fact, sir, that it cut that man deeper, to
1297 know that his daughter knew of his being goosed, than to go through with
1298 it.’
1299
1300 ‘Good!’ interrupted Mr. Bounderby. ‘This is good, Gradgrind! A man so
1301 fond of his daughter, that he runs away from her! This is devilish good!
1302 Ha! ha! Now, I’ll tell you what, young man. I haven’t always occupied
1303 my present station of life. I know what these things are. You may be
1304 astonished to hear it, but my mother—ran away from _me_.’
1305
1306 E. W. B. Childers replied pointedly, that he was not at all astonished to
1307 hear it.
1308
1309 ‘Very well,’ said Bounderby. ‘I was born in a ditch, and my mother ran
1310 away from me. Do I excuse her for it? No. Have I ever excused her for
1311 it? Not I. What do I call her for it? I call her probably the very
1312 worst woman that ever lived in the world, except my drunken grandmother.
1313 There’s no family pride about me, there’s no imaginative sentimental
1314 humbug about me. I call a spade a spade; and I call the mother of Josiah
1315 Bounderby of Coketown, without any fear or any favour, what I should call
1316 her if she had been the mother of Dick Jones of Wapping. So, with this
1317 man. He is a runaway rogue and a vagabond, that’s what he is, in
1318 English.’
1319
1320 ‘It’s all the same to me what he is or what he is not, whether in English
1321 or whether in French,’ retorted Mr. E. W. B. Childers, facing about. ‘I
1322 am telling your friend what’s the fact; if you don’t like to hear it, you
1323 can avail yourself of the open air. You give it mouth enough, you do;
1324 but give it mouth in your own building at least,’ remonstrated E. W. B.
1325 with stern irony. ‘Don’t give it mouth in this building, till you’re
1326 called upon. You have got some building of your own I dare say, now?’
1327
1328 ‘Perhaps so,’ replied Mr. Bounderby, rattling his money and laughing.
1329
1330 ‘Then give it mouth in your own building, will you, if you please?’ said
1331 Childers. ‘Because this isn’t a strong building, and too much of you
1332 might bring it down!’
1333
1334 Eyeing Mr. Bounderby from head to foot again, he turned from him, as from
1335 a man finally disposed of, to Mr. Gradgrind.
1336
1337 ‘Jupe sent his daughter out on an errand not an hour ago, and then was
1338 seen to slip out himself, with his hat over his eyes, and a bundle tied
1339 up in a handkerchief under his arm. She will never believe it of him,
1340 but he has cut away and left her.’
1341
1342 ‘Pray,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, ‘why will she never believe it of him?’
1343
1344 ‘Because those two were one. Because they were never asunder. Because,
1345 up to this time, he seemed to dote upon her,’ said Childers, taking a
1346 step or two to look into the empty trunk. Both Mr. Childers and Master
1347 Kidderminster walked in a curious manner; with their legs wider apart
1348 than the general run of men, and with a very knowing assumption of being
1349 stiff in the knees. This walk was common to all the male members of
1350 Sleary’s company, and was understood to express, that they were always on
1351 horseback.
1352
1353 ‘Poor Sissy! He had better have apprenticed her,’ said Childers, giving
1354 his hair another shake, as he looked up from the empty box. ‘Now, he
1355 leaves her without anything to take to.’
1356
1357 ‘It is creditable to you, who have never been apprenticed, to express
1358 that opinion,’ returned Mr. Gradgrind, approvingly.
1359
1360 ‘_I_ never apprenticed? I was apprenticed when I was seven year old.’
1361
1362 ‘Oh! Indeed?’ said Mr. Gradgrind, rather resentfully, as having been
1363 defrauded of his good opinion. ‘I was not aware of its being the custom
1364 to apprentice young persons to—’
1365
1366 ‘Idleness,’ Mr. Bounderby put in with a loud laugh. ‘No, by the Lord
1367 Harry! Nor I!’
1368
1369 ‘Her father always had it in his head,’ resumed Childers, feigning
1370 unconsciousness of Mr. Bounderby’s existence, ‘that she was to be taught
1371 the deuce-and-all of education. How it got into his head, I can’t say; I
1372 can only say that it never got out. He has been picking up a bit of
1373 reading for her, here—and a bit of writing for her, there—and a bit of
1374 ciphering for her, somewhere else—these seven years.’
1375
1376 Mr. E. W. B. Childers took one of his hands out of his pockets, stroked
1377 his face and chin, and looked, with a good deal of doubt and a little
1378 hope, at Mr. Gradgrind. From the first he had sought to conciliate that
1379 gentleman, for the sake of the deserted girl.
1380
1381 ‘When Sissy got into the school here,’ he pursued, ‘her father was as
1382 pleased as Punch. I couldn’t altogether make out why, myself, as we were
1383 not stationary here, being but comers and goers anywhere. I suppose,
1384 however, he had this move in his mind—he was always half-cracked—and then
1385 considered her provided for. If you should happen to have looked in
1386 to-night, for the purpose of telling him that you were going to do her
1387 any little service,’ said Mr. Childers, stroking his face again, and
1388 repeating his look, ‘it would be very fortunate and well-timed; very
1389 fortunate and well-timed.’
1390
1391 ‘On the contrary,’ returned Mr. Gradgrind. ‘I came to tell him that her
1392 connections made her not an object for the school, and that she must not
1393 attend any more. Still, if her father really has left her, without any
1394 connivance on her part—Bounderby, let me have a word with you.’
1395
1396 Upon this, Mr. Childers politely betook himself, with his equestrian
1397 walk, to the landing outside the door, and there stood stroking his face,
1398 and softly whistling. While thus engaged, he overheard such phrases in
1399 Mr. Bounderby’s voice as ‘No. _I_ say no. I advise you not. I say by
1400 no means.’ While, from Mr. Gradgrind, he heard in his much lower tone
1401 the words, ‘But even as an example to Louisa, of what this pursuit which
1402 has been the subject of a vulgar curiosity, leads to and ends in. Think
1403 of it, Bounderby, in that point of view.’
1404
1405 Meanwhile, the various members of Sleary’s company gradually gathered
1406 together from the upper regions, where they were quartered, and, from
1407 standing about, talking in low voices to one another and to Mr. Childers,
1408 gradually insinuated themselves and him into the room. There were two or
1409 three handsome young women among them, with their two or three husbands,
1410 and their two or three mothers, and their eight or nine little children,
1411 who did the fairy business when required. The father of one of the
1412 families was in the habit of balancing the father of another of the
1413 families on the top of a great pole; the father of a third family often
1414 made a pyramid of both those fathers, with Master Kidderminster for the
1415 apex, and himself for the base; all the fathers could dance upon rolling
1416 casks, stand upon bottles, catch knives and balls, twirl hand-basins,
1417 ride upon anything, jump over everything, and stick at nothing. All the
1418 mothers could (and did) dance, upon the slack wire and the tight-rope,
1419 and perform rapid acts on bare-backed steeds; none of them were at all
1420 particular in respect of showing their legs; and one of them, alone in a
1421 Greek chariot, drove six in hand into every town they came to. They all
1422 assumed to be mighty rakish and knowing, they were not very tidy in their
1423 private dresses, they were not at all orderly in their domestic
1424 arrangements, and the combined literature of the whole company would have
1425 produced but a poor letter on any subject. Yet there was a remarkable
1426 gentleness and childishness about these people, a special inaptitude for
1427 any kind of sharp practice, and an untiring readiness to help and pity
1428 one another, deserving often of as much respect, and always of as much
1429 generous construction, as the every-day virtues of any class of people in
1430 the world.
1431
1432 Last of all appeared Mr. Sleary: a stout man as already mentioned, with
1433 one fixed eye, and one loose eye, a voice (if it can be called so) like
1434 the efforts of a broken old pair of bellows, a flabby surface, and a
1435 muddled head which was never sober and never drunk.
1436
1437 ‘Thquire!’ said Mr. Sleary, who was troubled with asthma, and whose
1438 breath came far too thick and heavy for the letter s, ‘Your thervant!
1439 Thith ith a bad piethe of bithnith, thith ith. You’ve heard of my Clown
1440 and hith dog being thuppothed to have morrithed?’
1441
1442 He addressed Mr. Gradgrind, who answered ‘Yes.’
1443
1444 ‘Well, Thquire,’ he returned, taking off his hat, and rubbing the lining
1445 with his pocket-handkerchief, which he kept inside for the purpose. ‘Ith
1446 it your intenthion to do anything for the poor girl, Thquire?’
1447
1448 ‘I shall have something to propose to her when she comes back,’ said Mr.
1449 Gradgrind.
1450
1451 ‘Glad to hear it, Thquire. Not that I want to get rid of the child, any
1452 more than I want to thtand in her way. I’m willing to take her prentith,
1453 though at her age ith late. My voithe ith a little huthky, Thquire, and
1454 not eathy heard by them ath don’t know me; but if you’d been chilled and
1455 heated, heated and chilled, chilled and heated in the ring when you wath
1456 young, ath often ath I have been, _your_ voithe wouldn’t have lathted
1457 out, Thquire, no more than mine.’
1458
1459 ‘I dare say not,’ said Mr. Gradgrind.
1460
1461 ‘What thall it be, Thquire, while you wait? Thall it be Therry? Give it
1462 a name, Thquire!’ said Mr. Sleary, with hospitable ease.
1463
1464 ‘Nothing for me, I thank you,’ said Mr. Gradgrind.
1465
1466 ‘Don’t thay nothing, Thquire. What doth your friend thay? If you
1467 haven’t took your feed yet, have a glath of bitterth.’
1468
1469 Here his daughter Josephine—a pretty fair-haired girl of eighteen, who
1470 had been tied on a horse at two years old, and had made a will at twelve,
1471 which she always carried about with her, expressive of her dying desire
1472 to be drawn to the grave by the two piebald ponies—cried, ‘Father, hush!
1473 she has come back!’ Then came Sissy Jupe, running into the room as she
1474 had run out of it. And when she saw them all assembled, and saw their
1475 looks, and saw no father there, she broke into a most deplorable cry, and
1476 took refuge on the bosom of the most accomplished tight-rope lady
1477 (herself in the family-way), who knelt down on the floor to nurse her,
1478 and to weep over her.
1479
1480 ‘Ith an internal thame, upon my thoul it ith,’ said Sleary.
1481
1482 ‘O my dear father, my good kind father, where are you gone? You are gone
1483 to try to do me some good, I know! You are gone away for my sake, I am
1484 sure! And how miserable and helpless you will be without me, poor, poor
1485 father, until you come back!’ It was so pathetic to hear her saying many
1486 things of this kind, with her face turned upward, and her arms stretched
1487 out as if she were trying to stop his departing shadow and embrace it,
1488 that no one spoke a word until Mr. Bounderby (growing impatient) took the
1489 case in hand.
1490
1491 ‘Now, good people all,’ said he, ‘this is wanton waste of time. Let the
1492 girl understand the fact. Let her take it from me, if you like, who have
1493 been run away from, myself. Here, what’s your name! Your father has
1494 absconded—deserted you—and you mustn’t expect to see him again as long as
1495 you live.’
1496
1497 They cared so little for plain Fact, these people, and were in that
1498 advanced state of degeneracy on the subject, that instead of being
1499 impressed by the speaker’s strong common sense, they took it in
1500 extraordinary dudgeon. The men muttered ‘Shame!’ and the women ‘Brute!’
1501 and Sleary, in some haste, communicated the following hint, apart to Mr.
1502 Bounderby.
1503
1504 ‘I tell you what, Thquire. To thpeak plain to you, my opinion ith that
1505 you had better cut it thort, and drop it. They’re a very good natur’d
1506 people, my people, but they’re accuthtomed to be quick in their
1507 movementh; and if you don’t act upon my advithe, I’m damned if I don’t
1508 believe they’ll pith you out o’ winder.’
1509
1510 Mr. Bounderby being restrained by this mild suggestion, Mr. Gradgrind
1511 found an opening for his eminently practical exposition of the subject.
1512
1513 ‘It is of no moment,’ said he, ‘whether this person is to be expected
1514 back at any time, or the contrary. He is gone away, and there is no
1515 present expectation of his return. That, I believe, is agreed on all
1516 hands.’
1517
1518 ‘Thath agreed, Thquire. Thick to that!’ From Sleary.
1519
1520 ‘Well then. I, who came here to inform the father of the poor girl,
1521 Jupe, that she could not be received at the school any more, in
1522 consequence of there being practical objections, into which I need not
1523 enter, to the reception there of the children of persons so employed, am
1524 prepared in these altered circumstances to make a proposal. I am willing
1525 to take charge of you, Jupe, and to educate you, and provide for you.
1526 The only condition (over and above your good behaviour) I make is, that
1527 you decide now, at once, whether to accompany me or remain here. Also,
1528 that if you accompany me now, it is understood that you communicate no
1529 more with any of your friends who are here present. These observations
1530 comprise the whole of the case.’
1531
1532 ‘At the thame time,’ said Sleary, ‘I mutht put in my word, Thquire, tho
1533 that both thides of the banner may be equally theen. If you like,
1534 Thethilia, to be prentitht, you know the natur of the work and you know
1535 your companionth. Emma Gordon, in whothe lap you’re a lying at prethent,
1536 would be a mother to you, and Joth’phine would be a thithter to you. I
1537 don’t pretend to be of the angel breed myself, and I don’t thay but what,
1538 when you mith’d your tip, you’d find me cut up rough, and thwear an oath
1539 or two at you. But what I thay, Thquire, ith, that good tempered or bad
1540 tempered, I never did a horthe a injury yet, no more than thwearing at
1541 him went, and that I don’t expect I thall begin otherwithe at my time of
1542 life, with a rider. I never wath much of a Cackler, Thquire, and I have
1543 thed my thay.’
1544
1545 The latter part of this speech was addressed to Mr. Gradgrind, who
1546 received it with a grave inclination of his head, and then remarked:
1547
1548 ‘The only observation I will make to you, Jupe, in the way of influencing
1549 your decision, is, that it is highly desirable to have a sound practical
1550 education, and that even your father himself (from what I understand)
1551 appears, on your behalf, to have known and felt that much.’
1552
1553 The last words had a visible effect upon her. She stopped in her wild
1554 crying, a little detached herself from Emma Gordon, and turned her face
1555 full upon her patron. The whole company perceived the force of the
1556 change, and drew a long breath together, that plainly said, ‘she will
1557 go!’
1558
1559 ‘Be sure you know your own mind, Jupe,’ Mr. Gradgrind cautioned her; ‘I
1560 say no more. Be sure you know your own mind!’
1561
1562 ‘When father comes back,’ cried the girl, bursting into tears again after
1563 a minute’s silence, ‘how will he ever find me if I go away!’
1564
1565 ‘You may be quite at ease,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, calmly; he worked out the
1566 whole matter like a sum: ‘you may be quite at ease, Jupe, on that score.
1567 In such a case, your father, I apprehend, must find out Mr.—’
1568
1569 ‘Thleary. Thath my name, Thquire. Not athamed of it. Known all over
1570 England, and alwayth paythe ith way.’
1571
1572 ‘Must find out Mr. Sleary, who would then let him know where you went. I
1573 should have no power of keeping you against his wish, and he would have
1574 no difficulty, at any time, in finding Mr. Thomas Gradgrind of Coketown.
1575 I am well known.’
1576
1577 ‘Well known,’ assented Mr. Sleary, rolling his loose eye. ‘You’re one of
1578 the thort, Thquire, that keepth a prethiouth thight of money out of the
1579 houthe. But never mind that at prethent.’
1580
1581 There was another silence; and then she exclaimed, sobbing with her hands
1582 before her face, ‘Oh, give me my clothes, give me my clothes, and let me
1583 go away before I break my heart!’
1584
1585 The women sadly bestirred themselves to get the clothes together—it was
1586 soon done, for they were not many—and to pack them in a basket which had
1587 often travelled with them. Sissy sat all the time upon the ground, still
1588 sobbing, and covering her eyes. Mr. Gradgrind and his friend Bounderby
1589 stood near the door, ready to take her away. Mr. Sleary stood in the
1590 middle of the room, with the male members of the company about him,
1591 exactly as he would have stood in the centre of the ring during his
1592 daughter Josephine’s performance. He wanted nothing but his whip.
1593
1594 The basket packed in silence, they brought her bonnet to her, and
1595 smoothed her disordered hair, and put it on. Then they pressed about
1596 her, and bent over her in very natural attitudes, kissing and embracing
1597 her: and brought the children to take leave of her; and were a
1598 tender-hearted, simple, foolish set of women altogether.
1599
1600 ‘Now, Jupe,’ said Mr. Gradgrind. ‘If you are quite determined, come!’
1601
1602 But she had to take her farewell of the male part of the company yet, and
1603 every one of them had to unfold his arms (for they all assumed the
1604 professional attitude when they found themselves near Sleary), and give
1605 her a parting kiss—Master Kidderminster excepted, in whose young nature
1606 there was an original flavour of the misanthrope, who was also known to
1607 have harboured matrimonial views, and who moodily withdrew. Mr. Sleary
1608 was reserved until the last. Opening his arms wide he took her by both
1609 her hands, and would have sprung her up and down, after the riding-master
1610 manner of congratulating young ladies on their dismounting from a rapid
1611 act; but there was no rebound in Sissy, and she only stood before him
1612 crying.
1613
1614 ‘Good-bye, my dear!’ said Sleary. ‘You’ll make your fortun, I hope, and
1615 none of our poor folkth will ever trouble you, I’ll pound it. I with
1616 your father hadn’t taken hith dog with him; ith a ill-conwenienth to have
1617 the dog out of the billth. But on thecond thoughth, he wouldn’t have
1618 performed without hith mathter, tho ith ath broad ath ith long!’
1619
1620 With that he regarded her attentively with his fixed eye, surveyed his
1621 company with his loose one, kissed her, shook his head, and handed her to
1622 Mr. Gradgrind as to a horse.
1623
1624 ‘There the ith, Thquire,’ he said, sweeping her with a professional
1625 glance as if she were being adjusted in her seat, ‘and the’ll do you
1626 juthtithe. Good-bye, Thethilia!’
1627
1628 ‘Good-bye, Cecilia!’ ‘Good-bye, Sissy!’ ‘God bless you, dear!’ In a
1629 variety of voices from all the room.
1630
1631 But the riding-master eye had observed the bottle of the nine oils in her
1632 bosom, and he now interposed with ‘Leave the bottle, my dear; ith large
1633 to carry; it will be of no uthe to you now. Give it to me!’
1634
1635 ‘No, no!’ she said, in another burst of tears. ‘Oh, no! Pray let me
1636 keep it for father till he comes back! He will want it when he comes
1637 back. He had never thought of going away, when he sent me for it. I
1638 must keep it for him, if you please!’
1639
1640 ‘Tho be it, my dear. (You thee how it ith, Thquire!) Farewell,
1641 Thethilia! My latht wordth to you ith thith, Thtick to the termth of
1642 your engagement, be obedient to the Thquire, and forget uth. But if,
1643 when you’re grown up and married and well off, you come upon any
1644 horthe-riding ever, don’t be hard upon it, don’t be croth with it, give
1645 it a Bethpeak if you can, and think you might do wurth. People mutht be
1646 amuthed, Thquire, thomehow,’ continued Sleary, rendered more pursy than
1647 ever, by so much talking; ‘they can’t be alwayth a working, nor yet they
1648 can’t be alwayth a learning. Make the betht of uth; not the wurtht.
1649 I’ve got my living out of the horthe-riding all my life, I know; but I
1650 conthider that I lay down the philothophy of the thubject when I thay to
1651 you, Thquire, make the betht of uth: not the wurtht!’
1652
1653 The Sleary philosophy was propounded as they went downstairs and the
1654 fixed eye of Philosophy—and its rolling eye, too—soon lost the three
1655 figures and the basket in the darkness of the street.
1656
1657
1658
1659 CHAPTER VII
1660 MRS. SPARSIT
1661
1662
1663 MR. BOUNDERBY being a bachelor, an elderly lady presided over his
1664 establishment, in consideration of a certain annual stipend. Mrs.
1665 Sparsit was this lady’s name; and she was a prominent figure in
1666 attendance on Mr. Bounderby’s car, as it rolled along in triumph with the
1667 Bully of humility inside.
1668
1669 For, Mrs. Sparsit had not only seen different days, but was highly
1670 connected. She had a great aunt living in these very times called Lady
1671 Scadgers. Mr. Sparsit, deceased, of whom she was the relict, had been by
1672 the mother’s side what Mrs. Sparsit still called ‘a Powler.’ Strangers
1673 of limited information and dull apprehension were sometimes observed not
1674 to know what a Powler was, and even to appear uncertain whether it might
1675 be a business, or a political party, or a profession of faith. The
1676 better class of minds, however, did not need to be informed that the
1677 Powlers were an ancient stock, who could trace themselves so exceedingly
1678 far back that it was not surprising if they sometimes lost
1679 themselves—which they had rather frequently done, as respected
1680 horse-flesh, blind-hookey, Hebrew monetary transactions, and the
1681 Insolvent Debtors’ Court.
1682
1683 The late Mr. Sparsit, being by the mother’s side a Powler, married this
1684 lady, being by the father’s side a Scadgers. Lady Scadgers (an immensely
1685 fat old woman, with an inordinate appetite for butcher’s meat, and a
1686 mysterious leg which had now refused to get out of bed for fourteen
1687 years) contrived the marriage, at a period when Sparsit was just of age,
1688 and chiefly noticeable for a slender body, weakly supported on two long
1689 slim props, and surmounted by no head worth mentioning. He inherited a
1690 fair fortune from his uncle, but owed it all before he came into it, and
1691 spent it twice over immediately afterwards. Thus, when he died, at
1692 twenty-four (the scene of his decease, Calais, and the cause, brandy), he
1693 did not leave his widow, from whom he had been separated soon after the
1694 honeymoon, in affluent circumstances. That bereaved lady, fifteen years
1695 older than he, fell presently at deadly feud with her only relative, Lady
1696 Scadgers; and, partly to spite her ladyship, and partly to maintain
1697 herself, went out at a salary. And here she was now, in her elderly
1698 days, with the Coriolanian style of nose and the dense black eyebrows
1699 which had captivated Sparsit, making Mr. Bounderby’s tea as he took his
1700 breakfast.
1701
1702 If Bounderby had been a Conqueror, and Mrs. Sparsit a captive Princess
1703 whom he took about as a feature in his state-processions, he could not
1704 have made a greater flourish with her than he habitually did. Just as it
1705 belonged to his boastfulness to depreciate his own extraction, so it
1706 belonged to it to exalt Mrs. Sparsit’s. In the measure that he would not
1707 allow his own youth to have been attended by a single favourable
1708 circumstance, he brightened Mrs. Sparsit’s juvenile career with every
1709 possible advantage, and showered waggon-loads of early roses all over
1710 that lady’s path. ‘And yet, sir,’ he would say, ‘how does it turn out
1711 after all? Why here she is at a hundred a year (I give her a hundred,
1712 which she is pleased to term handsome), keeping the house of Josiah
1713 Bounderby of Coketown!’
1714
1715 Nay, he made this foil of his so very widely known, that third parties
1716 took it up, and handled it on some occasions with considerable briskness.
1717 It was one of the most exasperating attributes of Bounderby, that he not
1718 only sang his own praises but stimulated other men to sing them. There
1719 was a moral infection of clap-trap in him. Strangers, modest enough
1720 elsewhere, started up at dinners in Coketown, and boasted, in quite a
1721 rampant way, of Bounderby. They made him out to be the Royal arms, the
1722 Union-Jack, Magna Charta, John Bull, Habeas Corpus, the Bill of Rights,
1723 An Englishman’s house is his castle, Church and State, and God save the
1724 Queen, all put together. And as often (and it was very often) as an
1725 orator of this kind brought into his peroration,
1726
1727 ‘Princes and lords may flourish or may fade,
1728 A breath can make them, as a breath has made,’
1729
1730 —it was, for certain, more or less understood among the company that he
1731 had heard of Mrs. Sparsit.
1732
1733 ‘Mr. Bounderby,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, ‘you are unusually slow, sir, with
1734 your breakfast this morning.’
1735
1736 ‘Why, ma’am,’ he returned, ‘I am thinking about Tom Gradgrind’s whim;’
1737 Tom Gradgrind, for a bluff independent manner of speaking—as if somebody
1738 were always endeavouring to bribe him with immense sums to say Thomas,
1739 and he wouldn’t; ‘Tom Gradgrind’s whim, ma’am, of bringing up the
1740 tumbling-girl.’
1741
1742 ‘The girl is now waiting to know,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, ‘whether she is to
1743 go straight to the school, or up to the Lodge.’
1744
1745 ‘She must wait, ma’am,’ answered Bounderby, ‘till I know myself. We
1746 shall have Tom Gradgrind down here presently, I suppose. If he should
1747 wish her to remain here a day or two longer, of course she can, ma’am.’
1748
1749 ‘Of course she can if you wish it, Mr. Bounderby.’
1750
1751 ‘I told him I would give her a shake-down here, last night, in order that
1752 he might sleep on it before he decided to let her have any association
1753 with Louisa.’
1754
1755 ‘Indeed, Mr. Bounderby? Very thoughtful of you!’ Mrs. Sparsit’s
1756 Coriolanian nose underwent a slight expansion of the nostrils, and her
1757 black eyebrows contracted as she took a sip of tea.
1758
1759 ‘It’s tolerably clear to _me_,’ said Bounderby, ‘that the little puss can
1760 get small good out of such companionship.’
1761
1762 ‘Are you speaking of young Miss Gradgrind, Mr. Bounderby?’
1763
1764 ‘Yes, ma’am, I’m speaking of Louisa.’
1765
1766 ‘Your observation being limited to “little puss,”’ said Mrs. Sparsit,
1767 ‘and there being two little girls in question, I did not know which might
1768 be indicated by that expression.’
1769
1770 ‘Louisa,’ repeated Mr. Bounderby. ‘Louisa, Louisa.’
1771
1772 ‘You are quite another father to Louisa, sir.’ Mrs. Sparsit took a
1773 little more tea; and, as she bent her again contracted eyebrows over her
1774 steaming cup, rather looked as if her classical countenance were invoking
1775 the infernal gods.
1776
1777 ‘If you had said I was another father to Tom—young Tom, I mean, not my
1778 friend Tom Gradgrind—you might have been nearer the mark. I am going to
1779 take young Tom into my office. Going to have him under my wing, ma’am.’
1780
1781 ‘Indeed? Rather young for that, is he not, sir?’ Mrs. Spirit’s ‘sir,’
1782 in addressing Mr. Bounderby, was a word of ceremony, rather exacting
1783 consideration for herself in the use, than honouring him.
1784
1785 ‘I’m not going to take him at once; he is to finish his educational
1786 cramming before then,’ said Bounderby. ‘By the Lord Harry, he’ll have
1787 enough of it, first and last! He’d open his eyes, that boy would, if he
1788 knew how empty of learning _my_ young maw was, at his time of life.’
1789 Which, by the by, he probably did know, for he had heard of it often
1790 enough. ‘But it’s extraordinary the difficulty I have on scores of such
1791 subjects, in speaking to any one on equal terms. Here, for example, I
1792 have been speaking to you this morning about tumblers. Why, what do
1793 _you_ know about tumblers? At the time when, to have been a tumbler in
1794 the mud of the streets, would have been a godsend to me, a prize in the
1795 lottery to me, you were at the Italian Opera. You were coming out of the
1796 Italian Opera, ma’am, in white satin and jewels, a blaze of splendour,
1797 when I hadn’t a penny to buy a link to light you.’
1798
1799 ‘I certainly, sir,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit, with a dignity serenely
1800 mournful, ‘was familiar with the Italian Opera at a very early age.’
1801
1802 ‘Egad, ma’am, so was I,’ said Bounderby, ‘—with the wrong side of it. A
1803 hard bed the pavement of its Arcade used to make, I assure you. People
1804 like you, ma’am, accustomed from infancy to lie on Down feathers, have no
1805 idea _how_ hard a paving-stone is, without trying it. No, no, it’s of no
1806 use my talking to _you_ about tumblers. I should speak of foreign
1807 dancers, and the West End of London, and May Fair, and lords and ladies
1808 and honourables.’
1809
1810 ‘I trust, sir,’ rejoined Mrs. Sparsit, with decent resignation, ‘it is
1811 not necessary that you should do anything of that kind. I hope I have
1812 learnt how to accommodate myself to the changes of life. If I have
1813 acquired an interest in hearing of your instructive experiences, and can
1814 scarcely hear enough of them, I claim no merit for that, since I believe
1815 it is a general sentiment.’
1816
1817 ‘Well, ma’am,’ said her patron, ‘perhaps some people may be pleased to
1818 say that they do like to hear, in his own unpolished way, what Josiah
1819 Bounderby, of Coketown, has gone through. But you must confess that you
1820 were born in the lap of luxury, yourself. Come, ma’am, you know you were
1821 born in the lap of luxury.’
1822
1823 ‘I do not, sir,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit with a shake of her head, ‘deny
1824 it.’
1825
1826 Mr. Bounderby was obliged to get up from table, and stand with his back
1827 to the fire, looking at her; she was such an enhancement of his position.
1828
1829 ‘And you were in crack society. Devilish high society,’ he said, warming
1830 his legs.
1831
1832 ‘It is true, sir,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit, with an affectation of humility
1833 the very opposite of his, and therefore in no danger of jostling it.
1834
1835 ‘You were in the tiptop fashion, and all the rest of it,’ said Mr.
1836 Bounderby.
1837
1838 ‘Yes, sir,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit, with a kind of social widowhood upon
1839 her. ‘It is unquestionably true.’
1840
1841 Mr. Bounderby, bending himself at the knees, literally embraced his legs
1842 in his great satisfaction and laughed aloud. Mr. and Miss Gradgrind
1843 being then announced, he received the former with a shake of the hand,
1844 and the latter with a kiss.
1845
1846 ‘Can Jupe be sent here, Bounderby?’ asked Mr. Gradgrind.
1847
1848 Certainly. So Jupe was sent there. On coming in, she curtseyed to Mr.
1849 Bounderby, and to his friend Tom Gradgrind, and also to Louisa; but in
1850 her confusion unluckily omitted Mrs. Sparsit. Observing this, the
1851 blustrous Bounderby had the following remarks to make:
1852
1853 ‘Now, I tell you what, my girl. The name of that lady by the teapot, is
1854 Mrs. Sparsit. That lady acts as mistress of this house, and she is a
1855 highly connected lady. Consequently, if ever you come again into any
1856 room in this house, you will make a short stay in it if you don’t behave
1857 towards that lady in your most respectful manner. Now, I don’t care a
1858 button what you do to _me_, because I don’t affect to be anybody. So far
1859 from having high connections I have no connections at all, and I come of
1860 the scum of the earth. But towards that lady, I do care what you do; and
1861 you shall do what is deferential and respectful, or you shall not come
1862 here.’
1863
1864 ‘I hope, Bounderby,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, in a conciliatory voice, ‘that
1865 this was merely an oversight.’
1866
1867 ‘My friend Tom Gradgrind suggests, Mrs. Sparsit,’ said Bounderby, ‘that
1868 this was merely an oversight. Very likely. However, as you are aware,
1869 ma’am, I don’t allow of even oversights towards you.’
1870
1871 ‘You are very good indeed, sir,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit, shaking her head
1872 with her State humility. ‘It is not worth speaking of.’
1873
1874 Sissy, who all this time had been faintly excusing herself with tears in
1875 her eyes, was now waved over by the master of the house to Mr. Gradgrind.
1876 She stood looking intently at him, and Louisa stood coldly by, with her
1877 eyes upon the ground, while he proceeded thus:
1878
1879 ‘Jupe, I have made up my mind to take you into my house; and, when you
1880 are not in attendance at the school, to employ you about Mrs. Gradgrind,
1881 who is rather an invalid. I have explained to Miss Louisa—this is Miss
1882 Louisa—the miserable but natural end of your late career; and you are to
1883 expressly understand that the whole of that subject is past, and is not
1884 to be referred to any more. From this time you begin your history. You
1885 are, at present, ignorant, I know.’
1886
1887 ‘Yes, sir, very,’ she answered, curtseying.
1888
1889 ‘I shall have the satisfaction of causing you to be strictly educated;
1890 and you will be a living proof to all who come into communication with
1891 you, of the advantages of the training you will receive. You will be
1892 reclaimed and formed. You have been in the habit now of reading to your
1893 father, and those people I found you among, I dare say?’ said Mr.
1894 Gradgrind, beckoning her nearer to him before he said so, and dropping
1895 his voice.
1896
1897 ‘Only to father and Merrylegs, sir. At least I mean to father, when
1898 Merrylegs was always there.’
1899
1900 ‘Never mind Merrylegs, Jupe,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, with a passing frown.
1901 ‘I don’t ask about him. I understand you to have been in the habit of
1902 reading to your father?’
1903
1904 ‘O, yes, sir, thousands of times. They were the happiest—O, of all the
1905 happy times we had together, sir!’
1906
1907 It was only now when her sorrow broke out, that Louisa looked at her.
1908
1909 ‘And what,’ asked Mr. Gradgrind, in a still lower voice, ‘did you read to
1910 your father, Jupe?’
1911
1912 ‘About the Fairies, sir, and the Dwarf, and the Hunchback, and the
1913 Genies,’ she sobbed out; ‘and about—’
1914
1915 ‘Hush!’ said Mr. Gradgrind, ‘that is enough. Never breathe a word of
1916 such destructive nonsense any more. Bounderby, this is a case for rigid
1917 training, and I shall observe it with interest.’
1918
1919 ‘Well,’ returned Mr. Bounderby, ‘I have given you my opinion already, and
1920 I shouldn’t do as you do. But, very well, very well. Since you are bent
1921 upon it, _very_ well!’
1922
1923 So, Mr. Gradgrind and his daughter took Cecilia Jupe off with them to
1924 Stone Lodge, and on the way Louisa never spoke one word, good or bad.
1925 And Mr. Bounderby went about his daily pursuits. And Mrs. Sparsit got
1926 behind her eyebrows and meditated in the gloom of that retreat, all the
1927 evening.
1928
1929
1930
1931 CHAPTER VIII
1932 NEVER WONDER
1933
1934
1935 LET us strike the key-note again, before pursuing the tune.
1936
1937 When she was half a dozen years younger, Louisa had been overheard to
1938 begin a conversation with her brother one day, by saying ‘Tom, I
1939 wonder’—upon which Mr. Gradgrind, who was the person overhearing, stepped
1940 forth into the light and said, ‘Louisa, never wonder!’
1941
1942 Herein lay the spring of the mechanical art and mystery of educating the
1943 reason without stooping to the cultivation of the sentiments and
1944 affections. Never wonder. By means of addition, subtraction,
1945 multiplication, and division, settle everything somehow, and never
1946 wonder. Bring to me, says M’Choakumchild, yonder baby just able to walk,
1947 and I will engage that it shall never wonder.
1948
1949 Now, besides very many babies just able to walk, there happened to be in
1950 Coketown a considerable population of babies who had been walking against
1951 time towards the infinite world, twenty, thirty, forty, fifty years and
1952 more. These portentous infants being alarming creatures to stalk about
1953 in any human society, the eighteen denominations incessantly scratched
1954 one another’s faces and pulled one another’s hair by way of agreeing on
1955 the steps to be taken for their improvement—which they never did; a
1956 surprising circumstance, when the happy adaptation of the means to the
1957 end is considered. Still, although they differed in every other
1958 particular, conceivable and inconceivable (especially inconceivable),
1959 they were pretty well united on the point that these unlucky infants were
1960 never to wonder. Body number one, said they must take everything on
1961 trust. Body number two, said they must take everything on political
1962 economy. Body number three, wrote leaden little books for them, showing
1963 how the good grown-up baby invariably got to the Savings-bank, and the
1964 bad grown-up baby invariably got transported. Body number four, under
1965 dreary pretences of being droll (when it was very melancholy indeed),
1966 made the shallowest pretences of concealing pitfalls of knowledge, into
1967 which it was the duty of these babies to be smuggled and inveigled. But,
1968 all the bodies agreed that they were never to wonder.
1969
1970 There was a library in Coketown, to which general access was easy. Mr.
1971 Gradgrind greatly tormented his mind about what the people read in this
1972 library: a point whereon little rivers of tabular statements periodically
1973 flowed into the howling ocean of tabular statements, which no diver ever
1974 got to any depth in and came up sane. It was a disheartening
1975 circumstance, but a melancholy fact, that even these readers persisted in
1976 wondering. They wondered about human nature, human passions, human hopes
1977 and fears, the struggles, triumphs and defeats, the cares and joys and
1978 sorrows, the lives and deaths of common men and women! They sometimes,
1979 after fifteen hours’ work, sat down to read mere fables about men and
1980 women, more or less like themselves, and about children, more or less
1981 like their own. They took De Foe to their bosoms, instead of Euclid, and
1982 seemed to be on the whole more comforted by Goldsmith than by Cocker.
1983 Mr. Gradgrind was for ever working, in print and out of print, at this
1984 eccentric sum, and he never could make out how it yielded this
1985 unaccountable product.
1986
1987 ‘I am sick of my life, Loo. I, hate it altogether, and I hate everybody
1988 except you,’ said the unnatural young Thomas Gradgrind in the
1989 hair-cutting chamber at twilight.
1990
1991 ‘You don’t hate Sissy, Tom?’
1992
1993 ‘I hate to be obliged to call her Jupe. And she hates me,’ said Tom,
1994 moodily.
1995
1996 ‘No, she does not, Tom, I am sure!’
1997
1998 ‘She must,’ said Tom. ‘She must just hate and detest the whole set-out
1999 of us. They’ll bother her head off, I think, before they have done with
2000 her. Already she’s getting as pale as wax, and as heavy as—I am.’
2001
2002 Young Thomas expressed these sentiments sitting astride of a chair before
2003 the fire, with his arms on the back, and his sulky face on his arms. His
2004 sister sat in the darker corner by the fireside, now looking at him, now
2005 looking at the bright sparks as they dropped upon the hearth.
2006
2007 ‘As to me,’ said Tom, tumbling his hair all manner of ways with his sulky
2008 hands, ‘I am a Donkey, that’s what _I_ am. I am as obstinate as one, I
2009 am more stupid than one, I get as much pleasure as one, and I should like
2010 to kick like one.’
2011
2012 ‘Not me, I hope, Tom?’
2013
2014 ‘No, Loo; I wouldn’t hurt _you_. I made an exception of you at first. I
2015 don’t know what this—jolly old—Jaundiced Jail,’ Tom had paused to find a
2016 sufficiently complimentary and expressive name for the parental roof, and
2017 seemed to relieve his mind for a moment by the strong alliteration of
2018 this one, ‘would be without you.’
2019
2020 ‘Indeed, Tom? Do you really and truly say so?’
2021
2022 ‘Why, of course I do. What’s the use of talking about it!’ returned Tom,
2023 chafing his face on his coat-sleeve, as if to mortify his flesh, and have
2024 it in unison with his spirit.
2025
2026 ‘Because, Tom,’ said his sister, after silently watching the sparks
2027 awhile, ‘as I get older, and nearer growing up, I often sit wondering
2028 here, and think how unfortunate it is for me that I can’t reconcile you
2029 to home better than I am able to do. I don’t know what other girls know.
2030 I can’t play to you, or sing to you. I can’t talk to you so as to
2031 lighten your mind, for I never see any amusing sights or read any amusing
2032 books that it would be a pleasure or a relief to you to talk about, when
2033 you are tired.’
2034
2035 ‘Well, no more do I. I am as bad as you in that respect; and I am a Mule
2036 too, which you’re not. If father was determined to make me either a Prig
2037 or a Mule, and I am not a Prig, why, it stands to reason, I must be a
2038 Mule. And so I am,’ said Tom, desperately.
2039
2040 ‘It’s a great pity,’ said Louisa, after another pause, and speaking
2041 thoughtfully out of her dark corner: ‘it’s a great pity, Tom. It’s very
2042 unfortunate for both of us.’
2043
2044 ‘Oh! You,’ said Tom; ‘you are a girl, Loo, and a girl comes out of it
2045 better than a boy does. I don’t miss anything in you. You are the only
2046 pleasure I have—you can brighten even this place—and you can always lead
2047 me as you like.’
2048
2049 ‘You are a dear brother, Tom; and while you think I can do such things, I
2050 don’t so much mind knowing better. Though I do know better, Tom, and am
2051 very sorry for it.’ She came and kissed him, and went back into her
2052 corner again.
2053
2054 ‘I wish I could collect all the Facts we hear so much about,’ said Tom,
2055 spitefully setting his teeth, ‘and all the Figures, and all the people
2056 who found them out: and I wish I could put a thousand barrels of
2057 gunpowder under them, and blow them all up together! However, when I go
2058 to live with old Bounderby, I’ll have my revenge.’
2059
2060 ‘Your revenge, Tom?’
2061
2062 ‘I mean, I’ll enjoy myself a little, and go about and see something, and
2063 hear something. I’ll recompense myself for the way in which I have been
2064 brought up.’
2065
2066 ‘But don’t disappoint yourself beforehand, Tom. Mr. Bounderby thinks as
2067 father thinks, and is a great deal rougher, and not half so kind.’
2068
2069 ‘Oh!’ said Tom, laughing; ‘I don’t mind that. I shall very well know how
2070 to manage and smooth old Bounderby!’
2071
2072 Their shadows were defined upon the wall, but those of the high presses
2073 in the room were all blended together on the wall and on the ceiling, as
2074 if the brother and sister were overhung by a dark cavern. Or, a fanciful
2075 imagination—if such treason could have been there—might have made it out
2076 to be the shadow of their subject, and of its lowering association with
2077 their future.
2078
2079 ‘What is your great mode of smoothing and managing, Tom? Is it a
2080 secret?’
2081
2082 ‘Oh!’ said Tom, ‘if it is a secret, it’s not far off. It’s you. You are
2083 his little pet, you are his favourite; he’ll do anything for you. When
2084 he says to me what I don’t like, I shall say to him, “My sister Loo will
2085 be hurt and disappointed, Mr. Bounderby. She always used to tell me she
2086 was sure you would be easier with me than this.” That’ll bring him
2087 about, or nothing will.’
2088
2089 After waiting for some answering remark, and getting none, Tom wearily
2090 relapsed into the present time, and twined himself yawning round and
2091 about the rails of his chair, and rumpled his head more and more, until
2092 he suddenly looked up, and asked:
2093
2094 ‘Have you gone to sleep, Loo?’
2095
2096 ‘No, Tom. I am looking at the fire.’
2097
2098 ‘You seem to find more to look at in it than ever I could find,’ said
2099 Tom. ‘Another of the advantages, I suppose, of being a girl.’
2100
2101 ‘Tom,’ enquired his sister, slowly, and in a curious tone, as if she were
2102 reading what she asked in the fire, and it was not quite plainly written
2103 there, ‘do you look forward with any satisfaction to this change to Mr.
2104 Bounderby’s?’
2105
2106 ‘Why, there’s one thing to be said of it,’ returned Tom, pushing his
2107 chair from him, and standing up; ‘it will be getting away from home.’
2108
2109 ‘There is one thing to be said of it,’ Louisa repeated in her former
2110 curious tone; ‘it will be getting away from home. Yes.’
2111
2112 ‘Not but what I shall be very unwilling, both to leave you, Loo, and to
2113 leave you here. But I must go, you know, whether I like it or not; and I
2114 had better go where I can take with me some advantage of your influence,
2115 than where I should lose it altogether. Don’t you see?’
2116
2117 ‘Yes, Tom.’
2118
2119 The answer was so long in coming, though there was no indecision in it,
2120 that Tom went and leaned on the back of her chair, to contemplate the
2121 fire which so engrossed her, from her point of view, and see what he
2122 could make of it.
2123
2124 ‘Except that it is a fire,’ said Tom, ‘it looks to me as stupid and blank
2125 as everything else looks. What do you see in it? Not a circus?’
2126
2127 ‘I don’t see anything in it, Tom, particularly. But since I have been
2128 looking at it, I have been wondering about you and me, grown up.’
2129
2130 ‘Wondering again!’ said Tom.
2131
2132 ‘I have such unmanageable thoughts,’ returned his sister, ‘that they
2133 _will_ wonder.’
2134
2135 ‘Then I beg of you, Louisa,’ said Mrs. Gradgrind, who had opened the door
2136 without being heard, ‘to do nothing of that description, for goodness’
2137 sake, you inconsiderate girl, or I shall never hear the last of it from
2138 your father. And, Thomas, it is really shameful, with my poor head
2139 continually wearing me out, that a boy brought up as you have been, and
2140 whose education has cost what yours has, should be found encouraging his
2141 sister to wonder, when he knows his father has expressly said that she is
2142 not to do it.’
2143
2144 Louisa denied Tom’s participation in the offence; but her mother stopped
2145 her with the conclusive answer, ‘Louisa, don’t tell me, in my state of
2146 health; for unless you had been encouraged, it is morally and physically
2147 impossible that you could have done it.’
2148
2149 ‘I was encouraged by nothing, mother, but by looking at the red sparks
2150 dropping out of the fire, and whitening and dying. It made me think,
2151 after all, how short my life would be, and how little I could hope to do
2152 in it.’
2153
2154 ‘Nonsense!’ said Mrs. Gradgrind, rendered almost energetic. ‘Nonsense!
2155 Don’t stand there and tell me such stuff, Louisa, to my face, when you
2156 know very well that if it was ever to reach your father’s ears I should
2157 never hear the last of it. After all the trouble that has been taken
2158 with you! After the lectures you have attended, and the experiments you
2159 have seen! After I have heard you myself, when the whole of my right
2160 side has been benumbed, going on with your master about combustion, and
2161 calcination, and calorification, and I may say every kind of ation that
2162 could drive a poor invalid distracted, to hear you talking in this absurd
2163 way about sparks and ashes! I wish,’ whimpered Mrs. Gradgrind, taking a
2164 chair, and discharging her strongest point before succumbing under these
2165 mere shadows of facts, ‘yes, I really _do_ wish that I had never had a
2166 family, and then you would have known what it was to do without me!’
2167
2168
2169
2170 CHAPTER IX
2171 SISSY’S PROGRESS
2172
2173
2174 SISSY JUPE had not an easy time of it, between Mr. M’Choakumchild and
2175 Mrs. Gradgrind, and was not without strong impulses, in the first months
2176 of her probation, to run away. It hailed facts all day long so very
2177 hard, and life in general was opened to her as such a closely ruled
2178 ciphering-book, that assuredly she would have run away, but for only one
2179 restraint.
2180
2181 It is lamentable to think of; but this restraint was the result of no
2182 arithmetical process, was self-imposed in defiance of all calculation,
2183 and went dead against any table of probabilities that any Actuary would
2184 have drawn up from the premises. The girl believed that her father had
2185 not deserted her; she lived in the hope that he would come back, and in
2186 the faith that he would be made the happier by her remaining where she
2187 was.
2188
2189 The wretched ignorance with which Jupe clung to this consolation,
2190 rejecting the superior comfort of knowing, on a sound arithmetical basis,
2191 that her father was an unnatural vagabond, filled Mr. Gradgrind with
2192 pity. Yet, what was to be done? M’Choakumchild reported that she had a
2193 very dense head for figures; that, once possessed with a general idea of
2194 the globe, she took the smallest conceivable interest in its exact
2195 measurements; that she was extremely slow in the acquisition of dates,
2196 unless some pitiful incident happened to be connected therewith; that she
2197 would burst into tears on being required (by the mental process)
2198 immediately to name the cost of two hundred and forty-seven muslin caps
2199 at fourteen-pence halfpenny; that she was as low down, in the school, as
2200 low could be; that after eight weeks of induction into the elements of
2201 Political Economy, she had only yesterday been set right by a prattler
2202 three feet high, for returning to the question, ‘What is the first
2203 principle of this science?’ the absurd answer, ‘To do unto others as I
2204 would that they should do unto me.’
2205
2206 Mr. Gradgrind observed, shaking his head, that all this was very bad;
2207 that it showed the necessity of infinite grinding at the mill of
2208 knowledge, as per system, schedule, blue book, report, and tabular
2209 statements A to Z; and that Jupe ‘must be kept to it.’ So Jupe was kept
2210 to it, and became low-spirited, but no wiser.
2211
2212 ‘It would be a fine thing to be you, Miss Louisa!’ she said, one night,
2213 when Louisa had endeavoured to make her perplexities for next day
2214 something clearer to her.
2215
2216 ‘Do you think so?’
2217
2218 ‘I should know so much, Miss Louisa. All that is difficult to me now,
2219 would be so easy then.’
2220
2221 ‘You might not be the better for it, Sissy.’
2222
2223 Sissy submitted, after a little hesitation, ‘I should not be the worse,
2224 Miss Louisa.’ To which Miss Louisa answered, ‘I don’t know that.’
2225
2226 There had been so little communication between these two—both because
2227 life at Stone Lodge went monotonously round like a piece of machinery
2228 which discouraged human interference, and because of the prohibition
2229 relative to Sissy’s past career—that they were still almost strangers.
2230 Sissy, with her dark eyes wonderingly directed to Louisa’s face, was
2231 uncertain whether to say more or to remain silent.
2232
2233 ‘You are more useful to my mother, and more pleasant with her than I can
2234 ever be,’ Louisa resumed. ‘You are pleasanter to yourself, than _I_ am
2235 to _my_self.’
2236
2237 ‘But, if you please, Miss Louisa,’ Sissy pleaded, ‘I am—O so stupid!’
2238
2239 Louisa, with a brighter laugh than usual, told her she would be wiser
2240 by-and-by.
2241
2242 ‘You don’t know,’ said Sissy, half crying, ‘what a stupid girl I am. All
2243 through school hours I make mistakes. Mr. and Mrs. M’Choakumchild call
2244 me up, over and over again, regularly to make mistakes. I can’t help
2245 them. They seem to come natural to me.’
2246
2247 ‘Mr. and Mrs. M’Choakumchild never make any mistakes themselves, I
2248 suppose, Sissy?’
2249
2250 ‘O no!’ she eagerly returned. ‘They know everything.’
2251
2252 ‘Tell me some of your mistakes.’
2253
2254 ‘I am almost ashamed,’ said Sissy, with reluctance. ‘But to-day, for
2255 instance, Mr. M’Choakumchild was explaining to us about Natural
2256 Prosperity.’
2257
2258 ‘National, I think it must have been,’ observed Louisa.
2259
2260 ‘Yes, it was.—But isn’t it the same?’ she timidly asked.
2261
2262 ‘You had better say, National, as he said so,’ returned Louisa, with her
2263 dry reserve.
2264
2265 ‘National Prosperity. And he said, Now, this schoolroom is a Nation.
2266 And in this nation, there are fifty millions of money. Isn’t this a
2267 prosperous nation? Girl number twenty, isn’t this a prosperous nation,
2268 and a’n’t you in a thriving state?’
2269
2270 ‘What did you say?’ asked Louisa.
2271
2272 ‘Miss Louisa, I said I didn’t know. I thought I couldn’t know whether it
2273 was a prosperous nation or not, and whether I was in a thriving state or
2274 not, unless I knew who had got the money, and whether any of it was mine.
2275 But that had nothing to do with it. It was not in the figures at all,’
2276 said Sissy, wiping her eyes.
2277
2278 ‘That was a great mistake of yours,’ observed Louisa.
2279
2280 ‘Yes, Miss Louisa, I know it was, now. Then Mr. M’Choakumchild said he
2281 would try me again. And he said, This schoolroom is an immense town, and
2282 in it there are a million of inhabitants, and only five-and-twenty are
2283 starved to death in the streets, in the course of a year. What is your
2284 remark on that proportion? And my remark was—for I couldn’t think of a
2285 better one—that I thought it must be just as hard upon those who were
2286 starved, whether the others were a million, or a million million. And
2287 that was wrong, too.’
2288
2289 ‘Of course it was.’
2290
2291 ‘Then Mr. M’Choakumchild said he would try me once more. And he said,
2292 Here are the stutterings—’
2293
2294 ‘Statistics,’ said Louisa.
2295
2296 ‘Yes, Miss Louisa—they always remind me of stutterings, and that’s
2297 another of my mistakes—of accidents upon the sea. And I find (Mr.
2298 M’Choakumchild said) that in a given time a hundred thousand persons went
2299 to sea on long voyages, and only five hundred of them were drowned or
2300 burnt to death. What is the percentage? And I said, Miss;’ here Sissy
2301 fairly sobbed as confessing with extreme contrition to her greatest
2302 error; ‘I said it was nothing.’
2303
2304 ‘Nothing, Sissy?’
2305
2306 ‘Nothing, Miss—to the relations and friends of the people who were
2307 killed. I shall never learn,’ said Sissy. ‘And the worst of all is,
2308 that although my poor father wished me so much to learn, and although I
2309 am so anxious to learn, because he wished me to, I am afraid I don’t like
2310 it.’
2311
2312 Louisa stood looking at the pretty modest head, as it drooped abashed
2313 before her, until it was raised again to glance at her face. Then she
2314 asked:
2315
2316 ‘Did your father know so much himself, that he wished you to be well
2317 taught too, Sissy?’
2318
2319 Sissy hesitated before replying, and so plainly showed her sense that
2320 they were entering on forbidden ground, that Louisa added, ‘No one hears
2321 us; and if any one did, I am sure no harm could be found in such an
2322 innocent question.’
2323
2324 ‘No, Miss Louisa,’ answered Sissy, upon this encouragement, shaking her
2325 head; ‘father knows very little indeed. It’s as much as he can do to
2326 write; and it’s more than people in general can do to read his writing.
2327 Though it’s plain to _me_.’
2328
2329 ‘Your mother?’
2330
2331 ‘Father says she was quite a scholar. She died when I was born. She
2332 was;’ Sissy made the terrible communication nervously; ‘she was a
2333 dancer.’
2334
2335 ‘Did your father love her?’ Louisa asked these questions with a strong,
2336 wild, wandering interest peculiar to her; an interest gone astray like a
2337 banished creature, and hiding in solitary places.
2338
2339 ‘O yes! As dearly as he loves me. Father loved me, first, for her sake.
2340 He carried me about with him when I was quite a baby. We have never been
2341 asunder from that time.’
2342
2343 ‘Yet he leaves you now, Sissy?’
2344
2345 ‘Only for my good. Nobody understands him as I do; nobody knows him as I
2346 do. When he left me for my good—he never would have left me for his
2347 own—I know he was almost broken-hearted with the trial. He will not be
2348 happy for a single minute, till he comes back.’
2349
2350 ‘Tell me more about him,’ said Louisa, ‘I will never ask you again.
2351 Where did you live?’
2352
2353 ‘We travelled about the country, and had no fixed place to live in.
2354 Father’s a;’ Sissy whispered the awful word, ‘a clown.’
2355
2356 ‘To make the people laugh?’ said Louisa, with a nod of intelligence.
2357
2358 ‘Yes. But they wouldn’t laugh sometimes, and then father cried. Lately,
2359 they very often wouldn’t laugh, and he used to come home despairing.
2360 Father’s not like most. Those who didn’t know him as well as I do, and
2361 didn’t love him as dearly as I do, might believe he was not quite right.
2362 Sometimes they played tricks upon him; but they never knew how he felt
2363 them, and shrunk up, when he was alone with me. He was far, far timider
2364 than they thought!’
2365
2366 ‘And you were his comfort through everything?’
2367
2368 She nodded, with the tears rolling down her face. ‘I hope so, and father
2369 said I was. It was because he grew so scared and trembling, and because
2370 he felt himself to be a poor, weak, ignorant, helpless man (those used to
2371 be his words), that he wanted me so much to know a great deal, and be
2372 different from him. I used to read to him to cheer his courage, and he
2373 was very fond of that. They were wrong books—I am never to speak of them
2374 here—but we didn’t know there was any harm in them.’
2375
2376 ‘And he liked them?’ said Louisa, with a searching gaze on Sissy all this
2377 time.
2378
2379 ‘O very much! They kept him, many times, from what did him real harm.
2380 And often and often of a night, he used to forget all his troubles in
2381 wondering whether the Sultan would let the lady go on with the story, or
2382 would have her head cut off before it was finished.’
2383
2384 ‘And your father was always kind? To the last?’ asked Louisa
2385 contravening the great principle, and wondering very much.
2386
2387 ‘Always, always!’ returned Sissy, clasping her hands. ‘Kinder and kinder
2388 than I can tell. He was angry only one night, and that was not to me,
2389 but Merrylegs. Merrylegs;’ she whispered the awful fact; ‘is his
2390 performing dog.’
2391
2392 ‘Why was he angry with the dog?’ Louisa demanded.
2393
2394 ‘Father, soon after they came home from performing, told Merrylegs to
2395 jump up on the backs of the two chairs and stand across them—which is one
2396 of his tricks. He looked at father, and didn’t do it at once.
2397 Everything of father’s had gone wrong that night, and he hadn’t pleased
2398 the public at all. He cried out that the very dog knew he was failing,
2399 and had no compassion on him. Then he beat the dog, and I was
2400 frightened, and said, “Father, father! Pray don’t hurt the creature who
2401 is so fond of you! O Heaven forgive you, father, stop!” And he stopped,
2402 and the dog was bloody, and father lay down crying on the floor with the
2403 dog in his arms, and the dog licked his face.’
2404
2405 Louisa saw that she was sobbing; and going to her, kissed her, took her
2406 hand, and sat down beside her.
2407
2408 ‘Finish by telling me how your father left you, Sissy. Now that I have
2409 asked you so much, tell me the end. The blame, if there is any blame, is
2410 mine, not yours.’
2411
2412 ‘Dear Miss Louisa,’ said Sissy, covering her eyes, and sobbing yet; ‘I
2413 came home from the school that afternoon, and found poor father just come
2414 home too, from the booth. And he sat rocking himself over the fire, as
2415 if he was in pain. And I said, “Have you hurt yourself, father?” (as he
2416 did sometimes, like they all did), and he said, “A little, my darling.”
2417 And when I came to stoop down and look up at his face, I saw that he was
2418 crying. The more I spoke to him, the more he hid his face; and at first
2419 he shook all over, and said nothing but “My darling;” and “My love!”’
2420
2421 Here Tom came lounging in, and stared at the two with a coolness not
2422 particularly savouring of interest in anything but himself, and not much
2423 of that at present.
2424
2425 ‘I am asking Sissy a few questions, Tom,’ observed his sister. ‘You have
2426 no occasion to go away; but don’t interrupt us for a moment, Tom dear.’
2427
2428 ‘Oh! very well!’ returned Tom. ‘Only father has brought old Bounderby
2429 home, and I want you to come into the drawing-room. Because if you come,
2430 there’s a good chance of old Bounderby’s asking me to dinner; and if you
2431 don’t, there’s none.’
2432
2433 ‘I’ll come directly.’
2434
2435 ‘I’ll wait for you,’ said Tom, ‘to make sure.’
2436
2437 Sissy resumed in a lower voice. ‘At last poor father said that he had
2438 given no satisfaction again, and never did give any satisfaction now, and
2439 that he was a shame and disgrace, and I should have done better without
2440 him all along. I said all the affectionate things to him that came into
2441 my heart, and presently he was quiet and I sat down by him, and told him
2442 all about the school and everything that had been said and done there.
2443 When I had no more left to tell, he put his arms round my neck, and
2444 kissed me a great many times. Then he asked me to fetch some of the
2445 stuff he used, for the little hurt he had had, and to get it at the best
2446 place, which was at the other end of town from there; and then, after
2447 kissing me again, he let me go. When I had gone down-stairs, I turned
2448 back that I might be a little bit more company to him yet, and looked in
2449 at the door, and said, “Father dear, shall I take Merrylegs?” Father
2450 shook his head and said, “No, Sissy, no; take nothing that’s known to be
2451 mine, my darling;” and I left him sitting by the fire. Then the thought
2452 must have come upon him, poor, poor father! of going away to try
2453 something for my sake; for when I came back, he was gone.’
2454
2455 ‘I say! Look sharp for old Bounderby, Loo!’ Tom remonstrated.
2456
2457 ‘There’s no more to tell, Miss Louisa. I keep the nine oils ready for
2458 him, and I know he will come back. Every letter that I see in Mr.
2459 Gradgrind’s hand takes my breath away and blinds my eyes, for I think it
2460 comes from father, or from Mr. Sleary about father. Mr. Sleary promised
2461 to write as soon as ever father should be heard of, and I trust to him to
2462 keep his word.’
2463
2464 ‘Do look sharp for old Bounderby, Loo!’ said Tom, with an impatient
2465 whistle. ‘He’ll be off if you don’t look sharp!’
2466
2467 After this, whenever Sissy dropped a curtsey to Mr. Gradgrind in the
2468 presence of his family, and said in a faltering way, ‘I beg your pardon,
2469 sir, for being troublesome—but—have you had any letter yet about me?’
2470 Louisa would suspend the occupation of the moment, whatever it was, and
2471 look for the reply as earnestly as Sissy did. And when Mr. Gradgrind
2472 regularly answered, ‘No, Jupe, nothing of the sort,’ the trembling of
2473 Sissy’s lip would be repeated in Louisa’s face, and her eyes would follow
2474 Sissy with compassion to the door. Mr. Gradgrind usually improved these
2475 occasions by remarking, when she was gone, that if Jupe had been properly
2476 trained from an early age she would have remonstrated to herself on sound
2477 principles the baselessness of these fantastic hopes. Yet it did seem
2478 (though not to him, for he saw nothing of it) as if fantastic hope could
2479 take as strong a hold as Fact.
2480
2481 This observation must be limited exclusively to his daughter. As to Tom,
2482 he was becoming that not unprecedented triumph of calculation which is
2483 usually at work on number one. As to Mrs. Gradgrind, if she said
2484 anything on the subject, she would come a little way out of her wrappers,
2485 like a feminine dormouse, and say:
2486
2487 ‘Good gracious bless me, how my poor head is vexed and worried by that
2488 girl Jupe’s so perseveringly asking, over and over again, about her
2489 tiresome letters! Upon my word and honour I seem to be fated, and
2490 destined, and ordained, to live in the midst of things that I am never to
2491 hear the last of. It really is a most extraordinary circumstance that it
2492 appears as if I never was to hear the last of anything!’
2493
2494 At about this point, Mr. Gradgrind’s eye would fall upon her; and under
2495 the influence of that wintry piece of fact, she would become torpid
2496 again.
2497
2498
2499
2500 CHAPTER X
2501 STEPHEN BLACKPOOL
2502
2503
2504 I ENTERTAIN a weak idea that the English people are as hard-worked as any
2505 people upon whom the sun shines. I acknowledge to this ridiculous
2506 idiosyncrasy, as a reason why I would give them a little more play.
2507
2508 In the hardest working part of Coketown; in the innermost fortifications
2509 of that ugly citadel, where Nature was as strongly bricked out as killing
2510 airs and gases were bricked in; at the heart of the labyrinth of narrow
2511 courts upon courts, and close streets upon streets, which had come into
2512 existence piecemeal, every piece in a violent hurry for some one man’s
2513 purpose, and the whole an unnatural family, shouldering, and trampling,
2514 and pressing one another to death; in the last close nook of this great
2515 exhausted receiver, where the chimneys, for want of air to make a
2516 draught, were built in an immense variety of stunted and crooked shapes,
2517 as though every house put out a sign of the kind of people who might be
2518 expected to be born in it; among the multitude of Coketown, generically
2519 called ‘the Hands,’—a race who would have found more favour with some
2520 people, if Providence had seen fit to make them only hands, or, like the
2521 lower creatures of the seashore, only hands and stomachs—lived a certain
2522 Stephen Blackpool, forty years of age.
2523
2524 Stephen looked older, but he had had a hard life. It is said that every
2525 life has its roses and thorns; there seemed, however, to have been a
2526 misadventure or mistake in Stephen’s case, whereby somebody else had
2527 become possessed of his roses, and he had become possessed of the same
2528 somebody else’s thorns in addition to his own. He had known, to use his
2529 words, a peck of trouble. He was usually called Old Stephen, in a kind
2530 of rough homage to the fact.
2531
2532 A rather stooping man, with a knitted brow, a pondering expression of
2533 face, and a hard-looking head sufficiently capacious, on which his
2534 iron-grey hair lay long and thin, Old Stephen might have passed for a
2535 particularly intelligent man in his condition. Yet he was not. He took
2536 no place among those remarkable ‘Hands,’ who, piecing together their
2537 broken intervals of leisure through many years, had mastered difficult
2538 sciences, and acquired a knowledge of most unlikely things. He held no
2539 station among the Hands who could make speeches and carry on debates.
2540 Thousands of his compeers could talk much better than he, at any time.
2541 He was a good power-loom weaver, and a man of perfect integrity. What
2542 more he was, or what else he had in him, if anything, let him show for
2543 himself.
2544
2545 The lights in the great factories, which looked, when they were
2546 illuminated, like Fairy palaces—or the travellers by express-train said
2547 so—were all extinguished; and the bells had rung for knocking off for the
2548 night, and had ceased again; and the Hands, men and women, boy and girl,
2549 were clattering home. Old Stephen was standing in the street, with the
2550 old sensation upon him which the stoppage of the machinery always
2551 produced—the sensation of its having worked and stopped in his own head.
2552
2553 ‘Yet I don’t see Rachael, still!’ said he.
2554
2555 It was a wet night, and many groups of young women passed him, with their
2556 shawls drawn over their bare heads and held close under their chins to
2557 keep the rain out. He knew Rachael well, for a glance at any one of
2558 these groups was sufficient to show him that she was not there. At last,
2559 there were no more to come; and then he turned away, saying in a tone of
2560 disappointment, ‘Why, then, ha’ missed her!’
2561
2562 But, he had not gone the length of three streets, when he saw another of
2563 the shawled figures in advance of him, at which he looked so keenly that
2564 perhaps its mere shadow indistinctly reflected on the wet pavement—if he
2565 could have seen it without the figure itself moving along from lamp to
2566 lamp, brightening and fading as it went—would have been enough to tell
2567 him who was there. Making his pace at once much quicker and much softer,
2568 he darted on until he was very near this figure, then fell into his
2569 former walk, and called ‘Rachael!’
2570
2571 She turned, being then in the brightness of a lamp; and raising her hood
2572 a little, showed a quiet oval face, dark and rather delicate, irradiated
2573 by a pair of very gentle eyes, and further set off by the perfect order
2574 of her shining black hair. It was not a face in its first bloom; she was
2575 a woman five and thirty years of age.
2576
2577 ‘Ah, lad! ’Tis thou?’ When she had said this, with a smile which would
2578 have been quite expressed, though nothing of her had been seen but her
2579 pleasant eyes, she replaced her hood again, and they went on together.
2580
2581 ‘I thought thou wast ahind me, Rachael?’
2582
2583 ‘No.’
2584
2585 ‘Early t’night, lass?’
2586
2587 ‘’Times I’m a little early, Stephen! ’times a little late. I’m never to
2588 be counted on, going home.’
2589
2590 ‘Nor going t’other way, neither, ’t seems to me, Rachael?’
2591
2592 ‘No, Stephen.’
2593
2594 He looked at her with some disappointment in his face, but with a
2595 respectful and patient conviction that she must be right in whatever she
2596 did. The expression was not lost upon her; she laid her hand lightly on
2597 his arm a moment as if to thank him for it.
2598
2599 ‘We are such true friends, lad, and such old friends, and getting to be
2600 such old folk, now.’
2601
2602 ‘No, Rachael, thou’rt as young as ever thou wast.’
2603
2604 ‘One of us would be puzzled how to get old, Stephen, without ’t other
2605 getting so too, both being alive,’ she answered, laughing; ‘but, anyways,
2606 we’re such old friends, and t’ hide a word of honest truth fro’ one
2607 another would be a sin and a pity. ’Tis better not to walk too much
2608 together. ’Times, yes! ’Twould be hard, indeed, if ’twas not to be at
2609 all,’ she said, with a cheerfulness she sought to communicate to him.
2610
2611 ‘’Tis hard, anyways, Rachael.’
2612
2613 ‘Try to think not; and ’twill seem better.’
2614
2615 ‘I’ve tried a long time, and ’ta’nt got better. But thou’rt right; ’t
2616 might mak fok talk, even of thee. Thou hast been that to me, Rachael,
2617 through so many year: thou hast done me so much good, and heartened of me
2618 in that cheering way, that thy word is a law to me. Ah, lass, and a
2619 bright good law! Better than some real ones.’
2620
2621 ‘Never fret about them, Stephen,’ she answered quickly, and not without
2622 an anxious glance at his face. ‘Let the laws be.’
2623
2624 ‘Yes,’ he said, with a slow nod or two. ‘Let ’em be. Let everything be.
2625 Let all sorts alone. ’Tis a muddle, and that’s aw.’
2626
2627 ‘Always a muddle?’ said Rachael, with another gentle touch upon his arm,
2628 as if to recall him out of the thoughtfulness, in which he was biting the
2629 long ends of his loose neckerchief as he walked along. The touch had its
2630 instantaneous effect. He let them fall, turned a smiling face upon her,
2631 and said, as he broke into a good-humoured laugh, ‘Ay, Rachael, lass,
2632 awlus a muddle. That’s where I stick. I come to the muddle many times
2633 and agen, and I never get beyond it.’
2634
2635 They had walked some distance, and were near their own homes. The
2636 woman’s was the first reached. It was in one of the many small streets
2637 for which the favourite undertaker (who turned a handsome sum out of the
2638 one poor ghastly pomp of the neighbourhood) kept a black ladder, in order
2639 that those who had done their daily groping up and down the narrow stairs
2640 might slide out of this working world by the windows. She stopped at the
2641 corner, and putting her hand in his, wished him good night.
2642
2643 ‘Good night, dear lass; good night!’
2644
2645 She went, with her neat figure and her sober womanly step, down the dark
2646 street, and he stood looking after her until she turned into one of the
2647 small houses. There was not a flutter of her coarse shawl, perhaps, but
2648 had its interest in this man’s eyes; not a tone of her voice but had its
2649 echo in his innermost heart.
2650
2651 When she was lost to his view, he pursued his homeward way, glancing up
2652 sometimes at the sky, where the clouds were sailing fast and wildly.
2653 But, they were broken now, and the rain had ceased, and the moon
2654 shone,—looking down the high chimneys of Coketown on the deep furnaces
2655 below, and casting Titanic shadows of the steam-engines at rest, upon the
2656 walls where they were lodged. The man seemed to have brightened with the
2657 night, as he went on.
2658
2659 His home, in such another street as the first, saving that it was
2660 narrower, was over a little shop. How it came to pass that any people
2661 found it worth their while to sell or buy the wretched little toys, mixed
2662 up in its window with cheap newspapers and pork (there was a leg to be
2663 raffled for to-morrow-night), matters not here. He took his end of
2664 candle from a shelf, lighted it at another end of candle on the counter,
2665 without disturbing the mistress of the shop who was asleep in her little
2666 room, and went upstairs into his lodging.
2667
2668 It was a room, not unacquainted with the black ladder under various
2669 tenants; but as neat, at present, as such a room could be. A few books
2670 and writings were on an old bureau in a corner, the furniture was decent
2671 and sufficient, and, though the atmosphere was tainted, the room was
2672 clean.
2673
2674 Going to the hearth to set the candle down upon a round three-legged
2675 table standing there, he stumbled against something. As he recoiled,
2676 looking down at it, it raised itself up into the form of a woman in a
2677 sitting attitude.
2678
2679 ‘Heaven’s mercy, woman!’ he cried, falling farther off from the figure.
2680 ‘Hast thou come back again!’
2681
2682 Such a woman! A disabled, drunken creature, barely able to preserve her
2683 sitting posture by steadying herself with one begrimed hand on the floor,
2684 while the other was so purposeless in trying to push away her tangled
2685 hair from her face, that it only blinded her the more with the dirt upon
2686 it. A creature so foul to look at, in her tatters, stains and splashes,
2687 but so much fouler than that in her moral infamy, that it was a shameful
2688 thing even to see her.
2689
2690 After an impatient oath or two, and some stupid clawing of herself with
2691 the hand not necessary to her support, she got her hair away from her
2692 eyes sufficiently to obtain a sight of him. Then she sat swaying her
2693 body to and fro, and making gestures with her unnerved arm, which seemed
2694 intended as the accompaniment to a fit of laughter, though her face was
2695 stolid and drowsy.
2696
2697 ‘Eigh, lad? What, yo’r there?’ Some hoarse sounds meant for this, came
2698 mockingly out of her at last; and her head dropped forward on her breast.
2699
2700 ‘Back agen?’ she screeched, after some minutes, as if he had that moment
2701 said it. ‘Yes! And back agen. Back agen ever and ever so often. Back?
2702 Yes, back. Why not?’
2703
2704 Roused by the unmeaning violence with which she cried it out, she
2705 scrambled up, and stood supporting herself with her shoulders against the
2706 wall; dangling in one hand by the string, a dunghill-fragment of a
2707 bonnet, and trying to look scornfully at him.
2708
2709 ‘I’ll sell thee off again, and I’ll sell thee off again, and I’ll sell
2710 thee off a score of times!’ she cried, with something between a furious
2711 menace and an effort at a defiant dance. ‘Come awa’ from th’ bed!’ He
2712 was sitting on the side of it, with his face hidden in his hands. ‘Come
2713 awa! from ’t. ’Tis mine, and I’ve a right to t’!’
2714
2715 As she staggered to it, he avoided her with a shudder, and passed—his
2716 face still hidden—to the opposite end of the room. She threw herself
2717 upon the bed heavily, and soon was snoring hard. He sunk into a chair,
2718 and moved but once all that night. It was to throw a covering over her;
2719 as if his hands were not enough to hide her, even in the darkness.
2720
2721
2722
2723 CHAPTER XI
2724 NO WAY OUT
2725
2726
2727 THE Fairy palaces burst into illumination, before pale morning showed the
2728 monstrous serpents of smoke trailing themselves over Coketown. A
2729 clattering of clogs upon the pavement; a rapid ringing of bells; and all
2730 the melancholy mad elephants, polished and oiled up for the day’s
2731 monotony, were at their heavy exercise again.
2732
2733 Stephen bent over his loom, quiet, watchful, and steady. A special
2734 contrast, as every man was in the forest of looms where Stephen worked,
2735 to the crashing, smashing, tearing piece of mechanism at which he
2736 laboured. Never fear, good people of an anxious turn of mind, that Art
2737 will consign Nature to oblivion. Set anywhere, side by side, the work of
2738 GOD and the work of man; and the former, even though it be a troop of
2739 Hands of very small account, will gain in dignity from the comparison.
2740
2741 So many hundred Hands in this Mill; so many hundred horse Steam Power.
2742 It is known, to the force of a single pound weight, what the engine will
2743 do; but, not all the calculators of the National Debt can tell me the
2744 capacity for good or evil, for love or hatred, for patriotism or
2745 discontent, for the decomposition of virtue into vice, or the reverse, at
2746 any single moment in the soul of one of these its quiet servants, with
2747 the composed faces and the regulated actions. There is no mystery in it;
2748 there is an unfathomable mystery in the meanest of them, for
2749 ever.—Supposing we were to reverse our arithmetic for material objects,
2750 and to govern these awful unknown quantities by other means!
2751
2752 The day grew strong, and showed itself outside, even against the flaming
2753 lights within. The lights were turned out, and the work went on. The
2754 rain fell, and the Smoke-serpents, submissive to the curse of all that
2755 tribe, trailed themselves upon the earth. In the waste-yard outside, the
2756 steam from the escape pipe, the litter of barrels and old iron, the
2757 shining heaps of coals, the ashes everywhere, were shrouded in a veil of
2758 mist and rain.
2759
2760 The work went on, until the noon-bell rang. More clattering upon the
2761 pavements. The looms, and wheels, and Hands all out of gear for an hour.
2762
2763 Stephen came out of the hot mill into the damp wind and cold wet streets,
2764 haggard and worn. He turned from his own class and his own quarter,
2765 taking nothing but a little bread as he walked along, towards the hill on
2766 which his principal employer lived, in a red house with black outside
2767 shutters, green inside blinds, a black street door, up two white steps,
2768 BOUNDERBY (in letters very like himself) upon a brazen plate, and a round
2769 brazen door-handle underneath it, like a brazen full-stop.
2770
2771 Mr. Bounderby was at his lunch. So Stephen had expected. Would his
2772 servant say that one of the Hands begged leave to speak to him? Message
2773 in return, requiring name of such Hand. Stephen Blackpool. There was
2774 nothing troublesome against Stephen Blackpool; yes, he might come in.
2775
2776 Stephen Blackpool in the parlour. Mr. Bounderby (whom he just knew by
2777 sight), at lunch on chop and sherry. Mrs. Sparsit netting at the
2778 fireside, in a side-saddle attitude, with one foot in a cotton stirrup.
2779 It was a part, at once of Mrs. Sparsit’s dignity and service, not to
2780 lunch. She supervised the meal officially, but implied that in her own
2781 stately person she considered lunch a weakness.
2782
2783 ‘Now, Stephen,’ said Mr. Bounderby, ‘what’s the matter with _you_?’
2784
2785 Stephen made a bow. Not a servile one—these Hands will never do that!
2786 Lord bless you, sir, you’ll never catch them at that, if they have been
2787 with you twenty years!—and, as a complimentary toilet for Mrs. Sparsit,
2788 tucked his neckerchief ends into his waistcoat.
2789
2790 ‘Now, you know,’ said Mr. Bounderby, taking some sherry, ‘we have never
2791 had any difficulty with you, and you have never been one of the
2792 unreasonable ones. You don’t expect to be set up in a coach and six, and
2793 to be fed on turtle soup and venison, with a gold spoon, as a good many
2794 of ’em do!’ Mr. Bounderby always represented this to be the sole,
2795 immediate, and direct object of any Hand who was not entirely satisfied;
2796 ‘and therefore I know already that you have not come here to make a
2797 complaint. Now, you know, I am certain of that, beforehand.’
2798
2799 ‘No, sir, sure I ha’ not coom for nowt o’ th’ kind.’
2800
2801 Mr. Bounderby seemed agreeably surprised, notwithstanding his previous
2802 strong conviction. ‘Very well,’ he returned. ‘You’re a steady Hand, and
2803 I was not mistaken. Now, let me hear what it’s all about. As it’s not
2804 that, let me hear what it is. What have you got to say? Out with it,
2805 lad!’
2806
2807 Stephen happened to glance towards Mrs. Sparsit. ‘I can go, Mr.
2808 Bounderby, if you wish it,’ said that self-sacrificing lady, making a
2809 feint of taking her foot out of the stirrup.
2810
2811 Mr. Bounderby stayed her, by holding a mouthful of chop in suspension
2812 before swallowing it, and putting out his left hand. Then, withdrawing
2813 his hand and swallowing his mouthful of chop, he said to Stephen:
2814
2815 ‘Now you know, this good lady is a born lady, a high lady. You are not
2816 to suppose because she keeps my house for me, that she hasn’t been very
2817 high up the tree—ah, up at the top of the tree! Now, if you have got
2818 anything to say that can’t be said before a born lady, this lady will
2819 leave the room. If what you have got to say _can_ be said before a born
2820 lady, this lady will stay where she is.’
2821
2822 ‘Sir, I hope I never had nowt to say, not fitten for a born lady to year,
2823 sin’ I were born mysen’,’ was the reply, accompanied with a slight flush.
2824
2825 ‘Very well,’ said Mr. Bounderby, pushing away his plate, and leaning
2826 back. ‘Fire away!’
2827
2828 ‘I ha’ coom,’ Stephen began, raising his eyes from the floor, after a
2829 moment’s consideration, ‘to ask yo yor advice. I need ’t overmuch. I
2830 were married on Eas’r Monday nineteen year sin, long and dree. She were
2831 a young lass—pretty enow—wi’ good accounts of herseln. Well! She went
2832 bad—soon. Not along of me. Gonnows I were not a unkind husband to her.’
2833
2834 ‘I have heard all this before,’ said Mr. Bounderby. ‘She took to
2835 drinking, left off working, sold the furniture, pawned the clothes, and
2836 played old Gooseberry.’
2837
2838 ‘I were patient wi’ her.’
2839
2840 (‘The more fool you, I think,’ said Mr. Bounderby, in confidence to his
2841 wine-glass.)
2842
2843 ‘I were very patient wi’ her. I tried to wean her fra ’t ower and ower
2844 agen. I tried this, I tried that, I tried t’other. I ha’ gone home,
2845 many’s the time, and found all vanished as I had in the world, and her
2846 without a sense left to bless herseln lying on bare ground. I ha’ dun ’t
2847 not once, not twice—twenty time!’
2848
2849 Every line in his face deepened as he said it, and put in its affecting
2850 evidence of the suffering he had undergone.
2851
2852 ‘From bad to worse, from worse to worsen. She left me. She disgraced
2853 herseln everyways, bitter and bad. She coom back, she coom back, she
2854 coom back. What could I do t’ hinder her? I ha’ walked the streets
2855 nights long, ere ever I’d go home. I ha’ gone t’ th’ brigg, minded to
2856 fling myseln ower, and ha’ no more on’t. I ha’ bore that much, that I
2857 were owd when I were young.’
2858
2859 Mrs. Sparsit, easily ambling along with her netting-needles, raised the
2860 Coriolanian eyebrows and shook her head, as much as to say, ‘The great
2861 know trouble as well as the small. Please to turn your humble eye in My
2862 direction.’
2863
2864 ‘I ha’ paid her to keep awa’ fra’ me. These five year I ha’ paid her. I
2865 ha’ gotten decent fewtrils about me agen. I ha’ lived hard and sad, but
2866 not ashamed and fearfo’ a’ the minnits o’ my life. Last night, I went
2867 home. There she lay upon my har-stone! There she is!’
2868
2869 In the strength of his misfortune, and the energy of his distress, he
2870 fired for the moment like a proud man. In another moment, he stood as he
2871 had stood all the time—his usual stoop upon him; his pondering face
2872 addressed to Mr. Bounderby, with a curious expression on it, half shrewd,
2873 half perplexed, as if his mind were set upon unravelling something very
2874 difficult; his hat held tight in his left hand, which rested on his hip;
2875 his right arm, with a rugged propriety and force of action, very
2876 earnestly emphasizing what he said: not least so when it always paused, a
2877 little bent, but not withdrawn, as he paused.
2878
2879 ‘I was acquainted with all this, you know,’ said Mr. Bounderby, ‘except
2880 the last clause, long ago. It’s a bad job; that’s what it is. You had
2881 better have been satisfied as you were, and not have got married.
2882 However, it’s too late to say that.’
2883
2884 ‘Was it an unequal marriage, sir, in point of years?’ asked Mrs. Sparsit.
2885
2886 ‘You hear what this lady asks. Was it an unequal marriage in point of
2887 years, this unlucky job of yours?’ said Mr. Bounderby.
2888
2889 ‘Not e’en so. I were one-and-twenty myseln; she were twenty nighbut.’
2890
2891 ‘Indeed, sir?’ said Mrs. Sparsit to her Chief, with great placidity. ‘I
2892 inferred, from its being so miserable a marriage, that it was probably an
2893 unequal one in point of years.’
2894
2895 Mr. Bounderby looked very hard at the good lady in a side-long way that
2896 had an odd sheepishness about it. He fortified himself with a little
2897 more sherry.
2898
2899 ‘Well? Why don’t you go on?’ he then asked, turning rather irritably on
2900 Stephen Blackpool.
2901
2902 ‘I ha’ coom to ask yo, sir, how I am to be ridded o’ this woman.’
2903 Stephen infused a yet deeper gravity into the mixed expression of his
2904 attentive face. Mrs. Sparsit uttered a gentle ejaculation, as having
2905 received a moral shock.
2906
2907 ‘What do you mean?’ said Bounderby, getting up to lean his back against
2908 the chimney-piece. ‘What are you talking about? You took her for better
2909 for worse.’
2910
2911 ‘I mun’ be ridden o’ her. I cannot bear ’t nommore. I ha’ lived under
2912 ’t so long, for that I ha’ had’n the pity and comforting words o’ th’
2913 best lass living or dead. Haply, but for her, I should ha’ gone
2914 battering mad.’
2915
2916 ‘He wishes to be free, to marry the female of whom he speaks, I fear,
2917 sir,’ observed Mrs. Sparsit in an undertone, and much dejected by the
2918 immorality of the people.
2919
2920 ‘I do. The lady says what’s right. I do. I were a coming to ’t. I ha’
2921 read i’ th’ papers that great folk (fair faw ’em a’! I wishes ’em no
2922 hurt!) are not bonded together for better for worst so fast, but that
2923 they can be set free fro’ _their_ misfortnet marriages, an’ marry ower
2924 agen. When they dunnot agree, for that their tempers is ill-sorted, they
2925 has rooms o’ one kind an’ another in their houses, above a bit, and they
2926 can live asunders. We fok ha’ only one room, and we can’t. When that
2927 won’t do, they ha’ gowd an’ other cash, an’ they can say “This for yo’
2928 an’ that for me,” an’ they can go their separate ways. We can’t. Spite
2929 o’ all that, they can be set free for smaller wrongs than mine. So, I
2930 mun be ridden o’ this woman, and I want t’ know how?’
2931
2932 ‘No how,’ returned Mr. Bounderby.
2933
2934 ‘If I do her any hurt, sir, there’s a law to punish me?’
2935
2936 ‘Of course there is.’
2937
2938 ‘If I flee from her, there’s a law to punish me?’
2939
2940 ‘Of course there is.’
2941
2942 ‘If I marry t’oother dear lass, there’s a law to punish me?’
2943
2944 ‘Of course there is.’
2945
2946 ‘If I was to live wi’ her an’ not marry her—saying such a thing could be,
2947 which it never could or would, an’ her so good—there’s a law to punish
2948 me, in every innocent child belonging to me?’
2949
2950 ‘Of course there is.’
2951
2952 ‘Now, a’ God’s name,’ said Stephen Blackpool, ‘show me the law to help
2953 me!’
2954
2955 ‘Hem! There’s a sanctity in this relation of life,’ said Mr. Bounderby,
2956 ‘and—and—it must be kept up.’
2957
2958 ‘No no, dunnot say that, sir. ’Tan’t kep’ up that way. Not that way.
2959 ’Tis kep’ down that way. I’m a weaver, I were in a fact’ry when a chilt,
2960 but I ha’ gotten een to see wi’ and eern to year wi’. I read in th’
2961 papers every ’Sizes, every Sessions—and you read too—I know it!—with
2962 dismay—how th’ supposed unpossibility o’ ever getting unchained from one
2963 another, at any price, on any terms, brings blood upon this land, and
2964 brings many common married fok to battle, murder, and sudden death. Let
2965 us ha’ this, right understood. Mine’s a grievous case, an’ I want—if yo
2966 will be so good—t’ know the law that helps me.’
2967
2968 ‘Now, I tell you what!’ said Mr. Bounderby, putting his hands in his
2969 pockets. ‘There _is_ such a law.’
2970
2971 Stephen, subsiding into his quiet manner, and never wandering in his
2972 attention, gave a nod.
2973
2974 ‘But it’s not for you at all. It costs money. It costs a mint of
2975 money.’
2976
2977 ‘How much might that be?’ Stephen calmly asked.
2978
2979 ‘Why, you’d have to go to Doctors’ Commons with a suit, and you’d have to
2980 go to a court of Common Law with a suit, and you’d have to go to the
2981 House of Lords with a suit, and you’d have to get an Act of Parliament to
2982 enable you to marry again, and it would cost you (if it was a case of
2983 very plain sailing), I suppose from a thousand to fifteen hundred pound,’
2984 said Mr. Bounderby. ‘Perhaps twice the money.’
2985
2986 ‘There’s no other law?’
2987
2988 ‘Certainly not.’
2989
2990 ‘Why then, sir,’ said Stephen, turning white, and motioning with that
2991 right hand of his, as if he gave everything to the four winds, ‘’_tis_ a
2992 muddle. ’Tis just a muddle a’toogether, an’ the sooner I am dead, the
2993 better.’
2994
2995 (Mrs. Sparsit again dejected by the impiety of the people.)
2996
2997 ‘Pooh, pooh! Don’t you talk nonsense, my good fellow,’ said Mr.
2998 Bounderby, ‘about things you don’t understand; and don’t you call the
2999 Institutions of your country a muddle, or you’ll get yourself into a real
3000 muddle one of these fine mornings. The institutions of your country are
3001 not your piece-work, and the only thing you have got to do, is, to mind
3002 your piece-work. You didn’t take your wife for fast and for loose; but
3003 for better for worse. If she has turned out worse—why, all we have got
3004 to say is, she might have turned out better.’
3005
3006 ‘’Tis a muddle,’ said Stephen, shaking his head as he moved to the door.
3007 ‘’Tis a’ a muddle!’
3008
3009 ‘Now, I’ll tell you what!’ Mr. Bounderby resumed, as a valedictory
3010 address. ‘With what I shall call your unhallowed opinions, you have been
3011 quite shocking this lady: who, as I have already told you, is a born
3012 lady, and who, as I have not already told you, has had her own marriage
3013 misfortunes to the tune of tens of thousands of pounds—tens of Thousands
3014 of Pounds!’ (he repeated it with great relish). ‘Now, you have always
3015 been a steady Hand hitherto; but my opinion is, and so I tell you
3016 plainly, that you are turning into the wrong road. You have been
3017 listening to some mischievous stranger or other—they’re always about—and
3018 the best thing you can do is, to come out of that. Now you know;’ here
3019 his countenance expressed marvellous acuteness; ‘I can see as far into a
3020 grindstone as another man; farther than a good many, perhaps, because I
3021 had my nose well kept to it when I was young. I see traces of the turtle
3022 soup, and venison, and gold spoon in this. Yes, I do!’ cried Mr.
3023 Bounderby, shaking his head with obstinate cunning. ‘By the Lord Harry,
3024 I do!’
3025
3026 With a very different shake of the head and deep sigh, Stephen said,
3027 ‘Thank you, sir, I wish you good day.’ So he left Mr. Bounderby swelling
3028 at his own portrait on the wall, as if he were going to explode himself
3029 into it; and Mrs. Sparsit still ambling on with her foot in her stirrup,
3030 looking quite cast down by the popular vices.
3031
3032
3033
3034 CHAPTER XII
3035 THE OLD WOMAN
3036
3037
3038 OLD STEPHEN descended the two white steps, shutting the black door with
3039 the brazen door-plate, by the aid of the brazen full-stop, to which he
3040 gave a parting polish with the sleeve of his coat, observing that his hot
3041 hand clouded it. He crossed the street with his eyes bent upon the
3042 ground, and thus was walking sorrowfully away, when he felt a touch upon
3043 his arm.
3044
3045 It was not the touch he needed most at such a moment—the touch that could
3046 calm the wild waters of his soul, as the uplifted hand of the sublimest
3047 love and patience could abate the raging of the sea—yet it was a woman’s
3048 hand too. It was an old woman, tall and shapely still, though withered
3049 by time, on whom his eyes fell when he stopped and turned. She was very
3050 cleanly and plainly dressed, had country mud upon her shoes, and was
3051 newly come from a journey. The flutter of her manner, in the unwonted
3052 noise of the streets; the spare shawl, carried unfolded on her arm; the
3053 heavy umbrella, and little basket; the loose long-fingered gloves, to
3054 which her hands were unused; all bespoke an old woman from the country,
3055 in her plain holiday clothes, come into Coketown on an expedition of rare
3056 occurrence. Remarking this at a glance, with the quick observation of
3057 his class, Stephen Blackpool bent his attentive face—his face, which,
3058 like the faces of many of his order, by dint of long working with eyes
3059 and hands in the midst of a prodigious noise, had acquired the
3060 concentrated look with which we are familiar in the countenances of the
3061 deaf—the better to hear what she asked him.
3062
3063 ‘Pray, sir,’ said the old woman, ‘didn’t I see you come out of that
3064 gentleman’s house?’ pointing back to Mr. Bounderby’s. ‘I believe it was
3065 you, unless I have had the bad luck to mistake the person in following?’
3066
3067 ‘Yes, missus,’ returned Stephen, ‘it were me.’
3068
3069 ‘Have you—you’ll excuse an old woman’s curiosity—have you seen the
3070 gentleman?’
3071
3072 ‘Yes, missus.’
3073
3074 ‘And how did he look, sir? Was he portly, bold, outspoken, and hearty?’
3075 As she straightened her own figure, and held up her head in adapting her
3076 action to her words, the idea crossed Stephen that he had seen this old
3077 woman before, and had not quite liked her.
3078
3079 ‘O yes,’ he returned, observing her more attentively, ‘he were all that.’
3080
3081 ‘And healthy,’ said the old woman, ‘as the fresh wind?’
3082
3083 ‘Yes,’ returned Stephen. ‘He were ett’n and drinking—as large and as
3084 loud as a Hummobee.’
3085
3086 ‘Thank you!’ said the old woman, with infinite content. ‘Thank you!’
3087
3088 He certainly never had seen this old woman before. Yet there was a vague
3089 remembrance in his mind, as if he had more than once dreamed of some old
3090 woman like her.
3091
3092 She walked along at his side, and, gently accommodating himself to her
3093 humour, he said Coketown was a busy place, was it not? To which she
3094 answered ‘Eigh sure! Dreadful busy!’ Then he said, she came from the
3095 country, he saw? To which she answered in the affirmative.
3096
3097 ‘By Parliamentary, this morning. I came forty mile by Parliamentary this
3098 morning, and I’m going back the same forty mile this afternoon. I walked
3099 nine mile to the station this morning, and if I find nobody on the road
3100 to give me a lift, I shall walk the nine mile back to-night. That’s
3101 pretty well, sir, at my age!’ said the chatty old woman, her eye
3102 brightening with exultation.
3103
3104 ‘’Deed ’tis. Don’t do’t too often, missus.’
3105
3106 ‘No, no. Once a year,’ she answered, shaking her head. ‘I spend my
3107 savings so, once every year. I come regular, to tramp about the streets,
3108 and see the gentlemen.’
3109
3110 ‘Only to see ’em?’ returned Stephen.
3111
3112 ‘That’s enough for me,’ she replied, with great earnestness and interest
3113 of manner. ‘I ask no more! I have been standing about, on this side of
3114 the way, to see that gentleman,’ turning her head back towards Mr.
3115 Bounderby’s again, ‘come out. But, he’s late this year, and I have not
3116 seen him. You came out instead. Now, if I am obliged to go back without
3117 a glimpse of him—I only want a glimpse—well! I have seen you, and you
3118 have seen him, and I must make that do.’ Saying this, she looked at
3119 Stephen as if to fix his features in her mind, and her eye was not so
3120 bright as it had been.
3121
3122 With a large allowance for difference of tastes, and with all submission
3123 to the patricians of Coketown, this seemed so extraordinary a source of
3124 interest to take so much trouble about, that it perplexed him. But they
3125 were passing the church now, and as his eye caught the clock, he
3126 quickened his pace.
3127
3128 He was going to his work? the old woman said, quickening hers, too, quite
3129 easily. Yes, time was nearly out. On his telling her where he worked,
3130 the old woman became a more singular old woman than before.
3131
3132 ‘An’t you happy?’ she asked him.
3133
3134 ‘Why—there’s awmost nobbody but has their troubles, missus.’ He answered
3135 evasively, because the old woman appeared to take it for granted that he
3136 would be very happy indeed, and he had not the heart to disappoint her.
3137 He knew that there was trouble enough in the world; and if the old woman
3138 had lived so long, and could count upon his having so little, why so much
3139 the better for her, and none the worse for him.
3140
3141 ‘Ay, ay! You have your troubles at home, you mean?’ she said.
3142
3143 ‘Times. Just now and then,’ he answered, slightly.
3144
3145 ‘But, working under such a gentleman, they don’t follow you to the
3146 Factory?’
3147
3148 No, no; they didn’t follow him there, said Stephen. All correct there.
3149 Everything accordant there. (He did not go so far as to say, for her
3150 pleasure, that there was a sort of Divine Right there; but, I have heard
3151 claims almost as magnificent of late years.)
3152
3153 They were now in the black by-road near the place, and the Hands were
3154 crowding in. The bell was ringing, and the Serpent was a Serpent of many
3155 coils, and the Elephant was getting ready. The strange old woman was
3156 delighted with the very bell. It was the beautifullest bell she had ever
3157 heard, she said, and sounded grand!
3158
3159 She asked him, when he stopped good-naturedly to shake hands with her
3160 before going in, how long he had worked there?
3161
3162 ‘A dozen year,’ he told her.
3163
3164 ‘I must kiss the hand,’ said she, ‘that has worked in this fine factory
3165 for a dozen year!’ And she lifted it, though he would have prevented
3166 her, and put it to her lips. What harmony, besides her age and her
3167 simplicity, surrounded her, he did not know, but even in this fantastic
3168 action there was a something neither out of time nor place: a something
3169 which it seemed as if nobody else could have made as serious, or done
3170 with such a natural and touching air.
3171
3172 He had been at his loom full half an hour, thinking about this old woman,
3173 when, having occasion to move round the loom for its adjustment, he
3174 glanced through a window which was in his corner, and saw her still
3175 looking up at the pile of building, lost in admiration. Heedless of the
3176 smoke and mud and wet, and of her two long journeys, she was gazing at
3177 it, as if the heavy thrum that issued from its many stories were proud
3178 music to her.
3179
3180 She was gone by and by, and the day went after her, and the lights sprung
3181 up again, and the Express whirled in full sight of the Fairy Palace over
3182 the arches near: little felt amid the jarring of the machinery, and
3183 scarcely heard above its crash and rattle. Long before then his thoughts
3184 had gone back to the dreary room above the little shop, and to the
3185 shameful figure heavy on the bed, but heavier on his heart.
3186
3187 Machinery slackened; throbbing feebly like a fainting pulse; stopped.
3188 The bell again; the glare of light and heat dispelled; the factories,
3189 looming heavy in the black wet night—their tall chimneys rising up into
3190 the air like competing Towers of Babel.
3191
3192 He had spoken to Rachael only last night, it was true, and had walked
3193 with her a little way; but he had his new misfortune on him, in which no
3194 one else could give him a moment’s relief, and, for the sake of it, and
3195 because he knew himself to want that softening of his anger which no
3196 voice but hers could effect, he felt he might so far disregard what she
3197 had said as to wait for her again. He waited, but she had eluded him.
3198 She was gone. On no other night in the year could he so ill have spared
3199 her patient face.
3200
3201 O! Better to have no home in which to lay his head, than to have a home
3202 and dread to go to it, through such a cause. He ate and drank, for he
3203 was exhausted—but he little knew or cared what; and he wandered about in
3204 the chill rain, thinking and thinking, and brooding and brooding.
3205
3206 No word of a new marriage had ever passed between them; but Rachael had
3207 taken great pity on him years ago, and to her alone he had opened his
3208 closed heart all this time, on the subject of his miseries; and he knew
3209 very well that if he were free to ask her, she would take him. He
3210 thought of the home he might at that moment have been seeking with
3211 pleasure and pride; of the different man he might have been that night;
3212 of the lightness then in his now heavy-laden breast; of the then restored
3213 honour, self-respect, and tranquillity all torn to pieces. He thought of
3214 the waste of the best part of his life, of the change it made in his
3215 character for the worse every day, of the dreadful nature of his
3216 existence, bound hand and foot, to a dead woman, and tormented by a demon
3217 in her shape. He thought of Rachael, how young when they were first
3218 brought together in these circumstances, how mature now, how soon to grow
3219 old. He thought of the number of girls and women she had seen marry, how
3220 many homes with children in them she had seen grow up around her, how she
3221 had contentedly pursued her own lone quiet path—for him—and how he had
3222 sometimes seen a shade of melancholy on her blessed face, that smote him
3223 with remorse and despair. He set the picture of her up, beside the
3224 infamous image of last night; and thought, Could it be, that the whole
3225 earthly course of one so gentle, good, and self-denying, was subjugate to
3226 such a wretch as that!
3227
3228 Filled with these thoughts—so filled that he had an unwholesome sense of
3229 growing larger, of being placed in some new and diseased relation towards
3230 the objects among which he passed, of seeing the iris round every misty
3231 light turn red—he went home for shelter.
3232
3233
3234
3235 CHAPTER XIII
3236 RACHAEL
3237
3238
3239 A CANDLE faintly burned in the window, to which the black ladder had
3240 often been raised for the sliding away of all that was most precious in
3241 this world to a striving wife and a brood of hungry babies; and Stephen
3242 added to his other thoughts the stern reflection, that of all the
3243 casualties of this existence upon earth, not one was dealt out with so
3244 unequal a hand as Death. The inequality of Birth was nothing to it.
3245 For, say that the child of a King and the child of a Weaver were born
3246 to-night in the same moment, what was that disparity, to the death of any
3247 human creature who was serviceable to, or beloved by, another, while this
3248 abandoned woman lived on!
3249
3250 From the outside of his home he gloomily passed to the inside, with
3251 suspended breath and with a slow footstep. He went up to his door,
3252 opened it, and so into the room.
3253
3254 Quiet and peace were there. Rachael was there, sitting by the bed.
3255
3256 She turned her head, and the light of her face shone in upon the midnight
3257 of his mind. She sat by the bed, watching and tending his wife. That is
3258 to say, he saw that some one lay there, and he knew too well it must be
3259 she; but Rachael’s hands had put a curtain up, so that she was screened
3260 from his eyes. Her disgraceful garments were removed, and some of
3261 Rachael’s were in the room. Everything was in its place and order as he
3262 had always kept it, the little fire was newly trimmed, and the hearth was
3263 freshly swept. It appeared to him that he saw all this in Rachael’s
3264 face, and looked at nothing besides. While looking at it, it was shut
3265 out from his view by the softened tears that filled his eyes; but not
3266 before he had seen how earnestly she looked at him, and how her own eyes
3267 were filled too.
3268
3269 She turned again towards the bed, and satisfying herself that all was
3270 quiet there, spoke in a low, calm, cheerful voice.
3271
3272 ‘I am glad you have come at last, Stephen. You are very late.’
3273
3274 ‘I ha’ been walking up an’ down.’
3275
3276 ‘I thought so. But ’tis too bad a night for that. The rain falls very
3277 heavy, and the wind has risen.’
3278
3279 The wind? True. It was blowing hard. Hark to the thundering in the
3280 chimney, and the surging noise! To have been out in such a wind, and not
3281 to have known it was blowing!
3282
3283 ‘I have been here once before, to-day, Stephen. Landlady came round for
3284 me at dinner-time. There was some one here that needed looking to, she
3285 said. And ‘deed she was right. All wandering and lost, Stephen.
3286 Wounded too, and bruised.’
3287
3288 He slowly moved to a chair and sat down, drooping his head before her.
3289
3290 ‘I came to do what little I could, Stephen; first, for that she worked
3291 with me when we were girls both, and for that you courted her and married
3292 her when I was her friend—’
3293
3294 He laid his furrowed forehead on his hand, with a low groan.
3295
3296 ‘And next, for that I know your heart, and am right sure and certain that
3297 ’tis far too merciful to let her die, or even so much as suffer, for want
3298 of aid. Thou knowest who said, “Let him who is without sin among you
3299 cast the first stone at her!” There have been plenty to do that. Thou
3300 art not the man to cast the last stone, Stephen, when she is brought so
3301 low.’
3302
3303 ‘O Rachael, Rachael!’
3304
3305 ‘Thou hast been a cruel sufferer, Heaven reward thee!’ she said, in
3306 compassionate accents. ‘I am thy poor friend, with all my heart and
3307 mind.’
3308
3309 [Picture: Stephen and Rachael in the sick room]
3310
3311 The wounds of which she had spoken, seemed to be about the neck of the
3312 self-made outcast. She dressed them now, still without showing her. She
3313 steeped a piece of linen in a basin, into which she poured some liquid
3314 from a bottle, and laid it with a gentle hand upon the sore. The
3315 three-legged table had been drawn close to the bedside, and on it there
3316 were two bottles. This was one.
3317
3318 It was not so far off, but that Stephen, following her hands with his
3319 eyes, could read what was printed on it in large letters. He turned of a
3320 deadly hue, and a sudden horror seemed to fall upon him.
3321
3322 ‘I will stay here, Stephen,’ said Rachael, quietly resuming her seat,
3323 ‘till the bells go Three. ’Tis to be done again at three, and then she
3324 may be left till morning.’
3325
3326 ‘But thy rest agen to-morrow’s work, my dear.’
3327
3328 ‘I slept sound last night. I can wake many nights, when I am put to it.
3329 ’Tis thou who art in need of rest—so white and tired. Try to sleep in
3330 the chair there, while I watch. Thou hadst no sleep last night, I can
3331 well believe. To-morrow’s work is far harder for thee than for me.’
3332
3333 He heard the thundering and surging out of doors, and it seemed to him as
3334 if his late angry mood were going about trying to get at him. She had
3335 cast it out; she would keep it out; he trusted to her to defend him from
3336 himself.
3337
3338 ‘She don’t know me, Stephen; she just drowsily mutters and stares. I
3339 have spoken to her times and again, but she don’t notice! ’Tis as well
3340 so. When she comes to her right mind once more, I shall have done what I
3341 can, and she never the wiser.’
3342
3343 ‘How long, Rachael, is ’t looked for, that she’ll be so?’
3344
3345 ‘Doctor said she would haply come to her mind to-morrow.’
3346
3347 His eyes fell again on the bottle, and a tremble passed over him, causing
3348 him to shiver in every limb. She thought he was chilled with the wet.
3349 ‘No,’ he said, ‘it was not that. He had had a fright.’
3350
3351 ‘A fright?’
3352
3353 ‘Ay, ay! coming in. When I were walking. When I were thinking. When
3354 I—’ It seized him again; and he stood up, holding by the mantel-shelf,
3355 as he pressed his dank cold hair down with a hand that shook as if it
3356 were palsied.
3357
3358 ‘Stephen!’
3359
3360 She was coming to him, but he stretched out his arm to stop her.
3361
3362 ‘No! Don’t, please; don’t. Let me see thee setten by the bed. Let me
3363 see thee, a’ so good, and so forgiving. Let me see thee as I see thee
3364 when I coom in. I can never see thee better than so. Never, never,
3365 never!’
3366
3367 He had a violent fit of trembling, and then sunk into his chair. After a
3368 time he controlled himself, and, resting with an elbow on one knee, and
3369 his head upon that hand, could look towards Rachael. Seen across the dim
3370 candle with his moistened eyes, she looked as if she had a glory shining
3371 round her head. He could have believed she had. He did believe it, as
3372 the noise without shook the window, rattled at the door below, and went
3373 about the house clamouring and lamenting.
3374
3375 ‘When she gets better, Stephen, ’tis to be hoped she’ll leave thee to
3376 thyself again, and do thee no more hurt. Anyways we will hope so now.
3377 And now I shall keep silence, for I want thee to sleep.’
3378
3379 He closed his eyes, more to please her than to rest his weary head; but,
3380 by slow degrees as he listened to the great noise of the wind, he ceased
3381 to hear it, or it changed into the working of his loom, or even into the
3382 voices of the day (his own included) saying what had been really said.
3383 Even this imperfect consciousness faded away at last, and he dreamed a
3384 long, troubled dream.
3385
3386 He thought that he, and some one on whom his heart had long been set—but
3387 she was not Rachael, and that surprised him, even in the midst of his
3388 imaginary happiness—stood in the church being married. While the
3389 ceremony was performing, and while he recognized among the witnesses some
3390 whom he knew to be living, and many whom he knew to be dead, darkness
3391 came on, succeeded by the shining of a tremendous light. It broke from
3392 one line in the table of commandments at the altar, and illuminated the
3393 building with the words. They were sounded through the church, too, as
3394 if there were voices in the fiery letters. Upon this, the whole
3395 appearance before him and around him changed, and nothing was left as it
3396 had been, but himself and the clergyman. They stood in the daylight
3397 before a crowd so vast, that if all the people in the world could have
3398 been brought together into one space, they could not have looked, he
3399 thought, more numerous; and they all abhorred him, and there was not one
3400 pitying or friendly eye among the millions that were fastened on his
3401 face. He stood on a raised stage, under his own loom; and, looking up at
3402 the shape the loom took, and hearing the burial service distinctly read,
3403 he knew that he was there to suffer death. In an instant what he stood
3404 on fell below him, and he was gone.
3405
3406 —Out of what mystery he came back to his usual life, and to places that
3407 he knew, he was unable to consider; but he was back in those places by
3408 some means, and with this condemnation upon him, that he was never, in
3409 this world or the next, through all the unimaginable ages of eternity, to
3410 look on Rachael’s face or hear her voice. Wandering to and fro,
3411 unceasingly, without hope, and in search of he knew not what (he only
3412 knew that he was doomed to seek it), he was the subject of a nameless,
3413 horrible dread, a mortal fear of one particular shape which everything
3414 took. Whatsoever he looked at, grew into that form sooner or later. The
3415 object of his miserable existence was to prevent its recognition by any
3416 one among the various people he encountered. Hopeless labour! If he led
3417 them out of rooms where it was, if he shut up drawers and closets where
3418 it stood, if he drew the curious from places where he knew it to be
3419 secreted, and got them out into the streets, the very chimneys of the
3420 mills assumed that shape, and round them was the printed word.
3421
3422 The wind was blowing again, the rain was beating on the house-tops, and
3423 the larger spaces through which he had strayed contracted to the four
3424 walls of his room. Saving that the fire had died out, it was as his eyes
3425 had closed upon it. Rachael seemed to have fallen into a doze, in the
3426 chair by the bed. She sat wrapped in her shawl, perfectly still. The
3427 table stood in the same place, close by the bedside, and on it, in its
3428 real proportions and appearance, was the shape so often repeated.
3429
3430 He thought he saw the curtain move. He looked again, and he was sure it
3431 moved. He saw a hand come forth and grope about a little. Then the
3432 curtain moved more perceptibly, and the woman in the bed put it back, and
3433 sat up.
3434
3435 With her woful eyes, so haggard and wild, so heavy and large, she looked
3436 all round the room, and passed the corner where he slept in his chair.
3437 Her eyes returned to that corner, and she put her hand over them as a
3438 shade, while she looked into it. Again they went all round the room,
3439 scarcely heeding Rachael if at all, and returned to that corner. He
3440 thought, as she once more shaded them—not so much looking at him, as
3441 looking for him with a brutish instinct that he was there—that no single
3442 trace was left in those debauched features, or in the mind that went
3443 along with them, of the woman he had married eighteen years before. But
3444 that he had seen her come to this by inches, he never could have believed
3445 her to be the same.
3446
3447 All this time, as if a spell were on him, he was motionless and
3448 powerless, except to watch her.
3449
3450 Stupidly dozing, or communing with her incapable self about nothing, she
3451 sat for a little while with her hands at her ears, and her head resting
3452 on them. Presently, she resumed her staring round the room. And now,
3453 for the first time, her eyes stopped at the table with the bottles on it.
3454
3455 Straightway she turned her eyes back to his corner, with the defiance of
3456 last night, and moving very cautiously and softly, stretched out her
3457 greedy hand. She drew a mug into the bed, and sat for a while
3458 considering which of the two bottles she should choose. Finally, she
3459 laid her insensate grasp upon the bottle that had swift and certain death
3460 in it, and, before his eyes, pulled out the cork with her teeth.
3461
3462 Dream or reality, he had no voice, nor had he power to stir. If this be
3463 real, and her allotted time be not yet come, wake, Rachael, wake!
3464
3465 She thought of that, too. She looked at Rachael, and very slowly, very
3466 cautiously, poured out the contents. The draught was at her lips. A
3467 moment and she would be past all help, let the whole world wake and come
3468 about her with its utmost power. But in that moment Rachael started up
3469 with a suppressed cry. The creature struggled, struck her, seized her by
3470 the hair; but Rachael had the cup.
3471
3472 Stephen broke out of his chair. ‘Rachael, am I wakin’ or dreamin’ this
3473 dreadfo’ night?’
3474
3475 ‘’Tis all well, Stephen. I have been asleep, myself. ’Tis near three.
3476 Hush! I hear the bells.’
3477
3478 The wind brought the sounds of the church clock to the window. They
3479 listened, and it struck three. Stephen looked at her, saw how pale she
3480 was, noted the disorder of her hair, and the red marks of fingers on her
3481 forehead, and felt assured that his senses of sight and hearing had been
3482 awake. She held the cup in her hand even now.
3483
3484 ‘I thought it must be near three,’ she said, calmly pouring from the cup
3485 into the basin, and steeping the linen as before. ‘I am thankful I
3486 stayed! ’Tis done now, when I have put this on. There! And now she’s
3487 quiet again. The few drops in the basin I’ll pour away, for ’tis bad
3488 stuff to leave about, though ever so little of it.’ As she spoke, she
3489 drained the basin into the ashes of the fire, and broke the bottle on the
3490 hearth.
3491
3492 She had nothing to do, then, but to cover herself with her shawl before
3493 going out into the wind and rain.
3494
3495 ‘Thou’lt let me walk wi’ thee at this hour, Rachael?’
3496
3497 ‘No, Stephen. ’Tis but a minute, and I’m home.’
3498
3499 ‘Thou’rt not fearfo’;’ he said it in a low voice, as they went out at the
3500 door; ‘to leave me alone wi’ her!’
3501
3502 As she looked at him, saying, ‘Stephen?’ he went down on his knee before
3503 her, on the poor mean stairs, and put an end of her shawl to his lips.
3504
3505 ‘Thou art an Angel. Bless thee, bless thee!’
3506
3507 ‘I am, as I have told thee, Stephen, thy poor friend. Angels are not
3508 like me. Between them, and a working woman fu’ of faults, there is a
3509 deep gulf set. My little sister is among them, but she is changed.’
3510
3511 She raised her eyes for a moment as she said the words; and then they
3512 fell again, in all their gentleness and mildness, on his face.
3513
3514 ‘Thou changest me from bad to good. Thou mak’st me humbly wishfo’ to be
3515 more like thee, and fearfo’ to lose thee when this life is ower, and a’
3516 the muddle cleared awa’. Thou’rt an Angel; it may be, thou hast saved my
3517 soul alive!’
3518
3519 She looked at him, on his knee at her feet, with her shawl still in his
3520 hand, and the reproof on her lips died away when she saw the working of
3521 his face.
3522
3523 ‘I coom home desp’rate. I coom home wi’out a hope, and mad wi’ thinking
3524 that when I said a word o’ complaint I was reckoned a unreasonable Hand.
3525 I told thee I had had a fright. It were the Poison-bottle on table. I
3526 never hurt a livin’ creetur; but happenin’ so suddenly upon ’t, I thowt,
3527 “How can _I_ say what I might ha’ done to myseln, or her, or both!”’
3528
3529 She put her two hands on his mouth, with a face of terror, to stop him
3530 from saying more. He caught them in his unoccupied hand, and holding
3531 them, and still clasping the border of her shawl, said hurriedly:
3532
3533 ‘But I see thee, Rachael, setten by the bed. I ha’ seen thee, aw this
3534 night. In my troublous sleep I ha’ known thee still to be there.
3535 Evermore I will see thee there. I nevermore will see her or think o’
3536 her, but thou shalt be beside her. I nevermore will see or think o’
3537 anything that angers me, but thou, so much better than me, shalt be by
3538 th’ side on’t. And so I will try t’ look t’ th’ time, and so I will try
3539 t’ trust t’ th’ time, when thou and me at last shall walk together far
3540 awa’, beyond the deep gulf, in th’ country where thy little sister is.’
3541
3542 He kissed the border of her shawl again, and let her go. She bade him
3543 good night in a broken voice, and went out into the street.
3544
3545 The wind blew from the quarter where the day would soon appear, and still
3546 blew strongly. It had cleared the sky before it, and the rain had spent
3547 itself or travelled elsewhere, and the stars were bright. He stood
3548 bare-headed in the road, watching her quick disappearance. As the
3549 shining stars were to the heavy candle in the window, so was Rachael, in
3550 the rugged fancy of this man, to the common experiences of his life.
3551
3552
3553
3554 CHAPTER XIV
3555 THE GREAT MANUFACTURER
3556
3557
3558 TIME went on in Coketown like its own machinery: so much material wrought
3559 up, so much fuel consumed, so many powers worn out, so much money made.
3560 But, less inexorable than iron, steel, and brass, it brought its varying
3561 seasons even into that wilderness of smoke and brick, and made the only
3562 stand that ever _was_ made in the place against its direful uniformity.
3563
3564 ‘Louisa is becoming,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, ‘almost a young woman.’
3565
3566 Time, with his innumerable horse-power, worked away, not minding what
3567 anybody said, and presently turned out young Thomas a foot taller than
3568 when his father had last taken particular notice of him.
3569
3570 ‘Thomas is becoming,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, ‘almost a young man.’
3571
3572 Time passed Thomas on in the mill, while his father was thinking about
3573 it, and there he stood in a long-tailed coat and a stiff shirt-collar.
3574
3575 ‘Really,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, ‘the period has arrived when Thomas ought
3576 to go to Bounderby.’
3577
3578 Time, sticking to him, passed him on into Bounderby’s Bank, made him an
3579 inmate of Bounderby’s house, necessitated the purchase of his first
3580 razor, and exercised him diligently in his calculations relative to
3581 number one.
3582
3583 The same great manufacturer, always with an immense variety of work on
3584 hand, in every stage of development, passed Sissy onward in his mill, and
3585 worked her up into a very pretty article indeed.
3586
3587 ‘I fear, Jupe,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, ‘that your continuance at the school
3588 any longer would be useless.’
3589
3590 ‘I am afraid it would, sir,’ Sissy answered with a curtsey.
3591
3592 ‘I cannot disguise from you, Jupe,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, knitting his
3593 brow, ‘that the result of your probation there has disappointed me; has
3594 greatly disappointed me. You have not acquired, under Mr. and Mrs.
3595 M’Choakumchild, anything like that amount of exact knowledge which I
3596 looked for. You are extremely deficient in your facts. Your
3597 acquaintance with figures is very limited. You are altogether backward,
3598 and below the mark.’
3599
3600 ‘I am sorry, sir,’ she returned; ‘but I know it is quite true. Yet I
3601 have tried hard, sir.’
3602
3603 ‘Yes,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, ‘yes, I believe you have tried hard; I have
3604 observed you, and I can find no fault in that respect.’
3605
3606 ‘Thank you, sir. I have thought sometimes;’ Sissy very timid here; ‘that
3607 perhaps I tried to learn too much, and that if I had asked to be allowed
3608 to try a little less, I might have—’
3609
3610 ‘No, Jupe, no,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, shaking his head in his profoundest
3611 and most eminently practical way. ‘No. The course you pursued, you
3612 pursued according to the system—the system—and there is no more to be
3613 said about it. I can only suppose that the circumstances of your early
3614 life were too unfavourable to the development of your reasoning powers,
3615 and that we began too late. Still, as I have said already, I am
3616 disappointed.’
3617
3618 ‘I wish I could have made a better acknowledgment, sir, of your kindness
3619 to a poor forlorn girl who had no claim upon you, and of your protection
3620 of her.’
3621
3622 ‘Don’t shed tears,’ said Mr. Gradgrind. ‘Don’t shed tears. I don’t
3623 complain of you. You are an affectionate, earnest, good young
3624 woman—and—and we must make that do.’
3625
3626 ‘Thank you, sir, very much,’ said Sissy, with a grateful curtsey.
3627
3628 ‘You are useful to Mrs. Gradgrind, and (in a generally pervading way) you
3629 are serviceable in the family also; so I understand from Miss Louisa,
3630 and, indeed, so I have observed myself. I therefore hope,’ said Mr.
3631 Gradgrind, ‘that you can make yourself happy in those relations.’
3632
3633 ‘I should have nothing to wish, sir, if—’
3634
3635 ‘I understand you,’ said Mr. Gradgrind; ‘you still refer to your father.
3636 I have heard from Miss Louisa that you still preserve that bottle. Well!
3637 If your training in the science of arriving at exact results had been
3638 more successful, you would have been wiser on these points. I will say
3639 no more.’
3640
3641 He really liked Sissy too well to have a contempt for her; otherwise he
3642 held her calculating powers in such very slight estimation that he must
3643 have fallen upon that conclusion. Somehow or other, he had become
3644 possessed by an idea that there was something in this girl which could
3645 hardly be set forth in a tabular form. Her capacity of definition might
3646 be easily stated at a very low figure, her mathematical knowledge at
3647 nothing; yet he was not sure that if he had been required, for example,
3648 to tick her off into columns in a parliamentary return, he would have
3649 quite known how to divide her.
3650
3651 In some stages of his manufacture of the human fabric, the processes of
3652 Time are very rapid. Young Thomas and Sissy being both at such a stage
3653 of their working up, these changes were effected in a year or two; while
3654 Mr. Gradgrind himself seemed stationary in his course, and underwent no
3655 alteration.
3656
3657 Except one, which was apart from his necessary progress through the mill.
3658 Time hustled him into a little noisy and rather dirty machinery, in a
3659 by-comer, and made him Member of Parliament for Coketown: one of the
3660 respected members for ounce weights and measures, one of the
3661 representatives of the multiplication table, one of the deaf honourable
3662 gentlemen, dumb honourable gentlemen, blind honourable gentlemen, lame
3663 honourable gentlemen, dead honourable gentlemen, to every other
3664 consideration. Else wherefore live we in a Christian land, eighteen
3665 hundred and odd years after our Master?
3666
3667 All this while, Louisa had been passing on, so quiet and reserved, and so
3668 much given to watching the bright ashes at twilight as they fell into the
3669 grate, and became extinct, that from the period when her father had said
3670 she was almost a young woman—which seemed but yesterday—she had scarcely
3671 attracted his notice again, when he found her quite a young woman.
3672
3673 ‘Quite a young woman,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, musing. ‘Dear me!’
3674
3675 Soon after this discovery, he became more thoughtful than usual for
3676 several days, and seemed much engrossed by one subject. On a certain
3677 night, when he was going out, and Louisa came to bid him good-bye before
3678 his departure—as he was not to be home until late and she would not see
3679 him again until the morning—he held her in his arms, looking at her in
3680 his kindest manner, and said:
3681
3682 ‘My dear Louisa, you are a woman!’
3683
3684 She answered with the old, quick, searching look of the night when she
3685 was found at the Circus; then cast down her eyes. ‘Yes, father.’
3686
3687 ‘My dear,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, ‘I must speak with you alone and
3688 seriously. Come to me in my room after breakfast to-morrow, will you?’
3689
3690 ‘Yes, father.’
3691
3692 ‘Your hands are rather cold, Louisa. Are you not well?’
3693
3694 ‘Quite well, father.’
3695
3696 ‘And cheerful?’
3697
3698 She looked at him again, and smiled in her peculiar manner. ‘I am as
3699 cheerful, father, as I usually am, or usually have been.’
3700
3701 ‘That’s well,’ said Mr. Gradgrind. So, he kissed her and went away; and
3702 Louisa returned to the serene apartment of the hair-cutting character,
3703 and leaning her elbow on her hand, looked again at the short-lived sparks
3704 that so soon subsided into ashes.
3705
3706 ‘Are you there, Loo?’ said her brother, looking in at the door. He was
3707 quite a young gentleman of pleasure now, and not quite a prepossessing
3708 one.
3709
3710 ‘Dear Tom,’ she answered, rising and embracing him, ‘how long it is since
3711 you have been to see me!’
3712
3713 ‘Why, I have been otherwise engaged, Loo, in the evenings; and in the
3714 daytime old Bounderby has been keeping me at it rather. But I touch him
3715 up with you when he comes it too strong, and so we preserve an
3716 understanding. I say! Has father said anything particular to you to-day
3717 or yesterday, Loo?’
3718
3719 ‘No, Tom. But he told me to-night that he wished to do so in the
3720 morning.’
3721
3722 ‘Ah! That’s what I mean,’ said Tom. ‘Do you know where he is
3723 to-night?’—with a very deep expression.
3724
3725 ‘No.’
3726
3727 ‘Then I’ll tell you. He’s with old Bounderby. They are having a regular
3728 confab together up at the Bank. Why at the Bank, do you think? Well,
3729 I’ll tell you again. To keep Mrs. Sparsit’s ears as far off as possible,
3730 I expect.’
3731
3732 With her hand upon her brother’s shoulder, Louisa still stood looking at
3733 the fire. Her brother glanced at her face with greater interest than
3734 usual, and, encircling her waist with his arm, drew her coaxingly to him.
3735
3736 ‘You are very fond of me, an’t you, Loo?’
3737
3738 ‘Indeed I am, Tom, though you do let such long intervals go by without
3739 coming to see me.’
3740
3741 ‘Well, sister of mine,’ said Tom, ‘when you say that, you are near my
3742 thoughts. We might be so much oftener together—mightn’t we? Always
3743 together, almost—mightn’t we? It would do me a great deal of good if you
3744 were to make up your mind to I know what, Loo. It would be a splendid
3745 thing for me. It would be uncommonly jolly!’
3746
3747 Her thoughtfulness baffled his cunning scrutiny. He could make nothing
3748 of her face. He pressed her in his arm, and kissed her cheek. She
3749 returned the kiss, but still looked at the fire.
3750
3751 ‘I say, Loo! I thought I’d come, and just hint to you what was going on:
3752 though I supposed you’d most likely guess, even if you didn’t know. I
3753 can’t stay, because I’m engaged to some fellows to-night. You won’t
3754 forget how fond you are of me?’
3755
3756 ‘No, dear Tom, I won’t forget.’
3757
3758 ‘That’s a capital girl,’ said Tom. ‘Good-bye, Loo.’
3759
3760 She gave him an affectionate good-night, and went out with him to the
3761 door, whence the fires of Coketown could be seen, making the distance
3762 lurid. She stood there, looking steadfastly towards them, and listening
3763 to his departing steps. They retreated quickly, as glad to get away from
3764 Stone Lodge; and she stood there yet, when he was gone and all was quiet.
3765 It seemed as if, first in her own fire within the house, and then in the
3766 fiery haze without, she tried to discover what kind of woof Old Time,
3767 that greatest and longest-established Spinner of all, would weave from
3768 the threads he had already spun into a woman. But his factory is a
3769 secret place, his work is noiseless, and his Hands are mutes.
3770
3771
3772
3773 CHAPTER XV
3774 FATHER AND DAUGHTER
3775
3776
3777 ALTHOUGH Mr. Gradgrind did not take after Blue Beard, his room was quite
3778 a blue chamber in its abundance of blue books. Whatever they could prove
3779 (which is usually anything you like), they proved there, in an army
3780 constantly strengthening by the arrival of new recruits. In that charmed
3781 apartment, the most complicated social questions were cast up, got into
3782 exact totals, and finally settled—if those concerned could only have been
3783 brought to know it. As if an astronomical observatory should be made
3784 without any windows, and the astronomer within should arrange the starry
3785 universe solely by pen, ink, and paper, so Mr. Gradgrind, in _his_
3786 Observatory (and there are many like it), had no need to cast an eye upon
3787 the teeming myriads of human beings around him, but could settle all
3788 their destinies on a slate, and wipe out all their tears with one dirty
3789 little bit of sponge.
3790
3791 To this Observatory, then: a stern room, with a deadly statistical clock
3792 in it, which measured every second with a beat like a rap upon a
3793 coffin-lid; Louisa repaired on the appointed morning. A window looked
3794 towards Coketown; and when she sat down near her father’s table, she saw
3795 the high chimneys and the long tracts of smoke looming in the heavy
3796 distance gloomily.
3797
3798 ‘My dear Louisa,’ said her father, ‘I prepared you last night to give me
3799 your serious attention in the conversation we are now going to have
3800 together. You have been so well trained, and you do, I am happy to say,
3801 so much justice to the education you have received, that I have perfect
3802 confidence in your good sense. You are not impulsive, you are not
3803 romantic, you are accustomed to view everything from the strong
3804 dispassionate ground of reason and calculation. From that ground alone,
3805 I know you will view and consider what I am going to communicate.’
3806
3807 He waited, as if he would have been glad that she said something. But
3808 she said never a word.
3809
3810 ‘Louisa, my dear, you are the subject of a proposal of marriage that has
3811 been made to me.’
3812
3813 Again he waited, and again she answered not one word. This so far
3814 surprised him, as to induce him gently to repeat, ‘a proposal of
3815 marriage, my dear.’ To which she returned, without any visible emotion
3816 whatever:
3817
3818 ‘I hear you, father. I am attending, I assure you.’
3819
3820 ‘Well!’ said Mr. Gradgrind, breaking into a smile, after being for the
3821 moment at a loss, ‘you are even more dispassionate than I expected,
3822 Louisa. Or, perhaps, you are not unprepared for the announcement I have
3823 it in charge to make?’
3824
3825 ‘I cannot say that, father, until I hear it. Prepared or unprepared, I
3826 wish to hear it all from you. I wish to hear you state it to me,
3827 father.’
3828
3829 Strange to relate, Mr. Gradgrind was not so collected at this moment as
3830 his daughter was. He took a paper-knife in his hand, turned it over,
3831 laid it down, took it up again, and even then had to look along the blade
3832 of it, considering how to go on.
3833
3834 ‘What you say, my dear Louisa, is perfectly reasonable. I have
3835 undertaken then to let you know that—in short, that Mr. Bounderby has
3836 informed me that he has long watched your progress with particular
3837 interest and pleasure, and has long hoped that the time might ultimately
3838 arrive when he should offer you his hand in marriage. That time, to
3839 which he has so long, and certainly with great constancy, looked forward,
3840 is now come. Mr. Bounderby has made his proposal of marriage to me, and
3841 has entreated me to make it known to you, and to express his hope that
3842 you will take it into your favourable consideration.’
3843
3844 Silence between them. The deadly statistical clock very hollow. The
3845 distant smoke very black and heavy.
3846
3847 ‘Father,’ said Louisa, ‘do you think I love Mr. Bounderby?’
3848
3849 Mr. Gradgrind was extremely discomfited by this unexpected question.
3850 ‘Well, my child,’ he returned, ‘I—really—cannot take upon myself to say.’
3851
3852 ‘Father,’ pursued Louisa in exactly the same voice as before, ‘do you ask
3853 me to love Mr. Bounderby?’
3854
3855 ‘My dear Louisa, no. No. I ask nothing.’
3856
3857 ‘Father,’ she still pursued, ‘does Mr. Bounderby ask me to love him?’
3858
3859 ‘Really, my dear,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, ‘it is difficult to answer your
3860 question—’
3861
3862 ‘Difficult to answer it, Yes or No, father?
3863
3864 ‘Certainly, my dear. Because;’ here was something to demonstrate, and it
3865 set him up again; ‘because the reply depends so materially, Louisa, on
3866 the sense in which we use the expression. Now, Mr. Bounderby does not do
3867 you the injustice, and does not do himself the injustice, of pretending
3868 to anything fanciful, fantastic, or (I am using synonymous terms)
3869 sentimental. Mr. Bounderby would have seen you grow up under his eyes,
3870 to very little purpose, if he could so far forget what is due to your
3871 good sense, not to say to his, as to address you from any such ground.
3872 Therefore, perhaps the expression itself—I merely suggest this to you, my
3873 dear—may be a little misplaced.’
3874
3875 ‘What would you advise me to use in its stead, father?’
3876
3877 ‘Why, my dear Louisa,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, completely recovered by this
3878 time, ‘I would advise you (since you ask me) to consider this question,
3879 as you have been accustomed to consider every other question, simply as
3880 one of tangible Fact. The ignorant and the giddy may embarrass such
3881 subjects with irrelevant fancies, and other absurdities that have no
3882 existence, properly viewed—really no existence—but it is no compliment to
3883 you to say, that you know better. Now, what are the Facts of this case?
3884 You are, we will say in round numbers, twenty years of age; Mr. Bounderby
3885 is, we will say in round numbers, fifty. There is some disparity in your
3886 respective years, but in your means and positions there is none; on the
3887 contrary, there is a great suitability. Then the question arises, Is
3888 this one disparity sufficient to operate as a bar to such a marriage? In
3889 considering this question, it is not unimportant to take into account the
3890 statistics of marriage, so far as they have yet been obtained, in England
3891 and Wales. I find, on reference to the figures, that a large proportion
3892 of these marriages are contracted between parties of very unequal ages,
3893 and that the elder of these contracting parties is, in rather more than
3894 three-fourths of these instances, the bridegroom. It is remarkable as
3895 showing the wide prevalence of this law, that among the natives of the
3896 British possessions in India, also in a considerable part of China, and
3897 among the Calmucks of Tartary, the best means of computation yet
3898 furnished us by travellers, yield similar results. The disparity I have
3899 mentioned, therefore, almost ceases to be disparity, and (virtually) all
3900 but disappears.’
3901
3902 ‘What do you recommend, father,’ asked Louisa, her reserved composure not
3903 in the least affected by these gratifying results, ‘that I should
3904 substitute for the term I used just now? For the misplaced expression?’
3905
3906 ‘Louisa,’ returned her father, ‘it appears to me that nothing can be
3907 plainer. Confining yourself rigidly to Fact, the question of Fact you
3908 state to yourself is: Does Mr. Bounderby ask me to marry him? Yes, he
3909 does. The sole remaining question then is: Shall I marry him? I think
3910 nothing can be plainer than that?’
3911
3912 ‘Shall I marry him?’ repeated Louisa, with great deliberation.
3913
3914 ‘Precisely. And it is satisfactory to me, as your father, my dear
3915 Louisa, to know that you do not come to the consideration of that
3916 question with the previous habits of mind, and habits of life, that
3917 belong to many young women.’
3918
3919 ‘No, father,’ she returned, ‘I do not.’
3920
3921 ‘I now leave you to judge for yourself,’ said Mr. Gradgrind. ‘I have
3922 stated the case, as such cases are usually stated among practical minds;
3923 I have stated it, as the case of your mother and myself was stated in its
3924 time. The rest, my dear Louisa, is for you to decide.’
3925
3926 From the beginning, she had sat looking at him fixedly. As he now leaned
3927 back in his chair, and bent his deep-set eyes upon her in his turn,
3928 perhaps he might have seen one wavering moment in her, when she was
3929 impelled to throw herself upon his breast, and give him the pent-up
3930 confidences of her heart. But, to see it, he must have overleaped at a
3931 bound the artificial barriers he had for many years been erecting,
3932 between himself and all those subtle essences of humanity which will
3933 elude the utmost cunning of algebra until the last trumpet ever to be
3934 sounded shall blow even algebra to wreck. The barriers were too many and
3935 too high for such a leap. With his unbending, utilitarian,
3936 matter-of-fact face, he hardened her again; and the moment shot away into
3937 the plumbless depths of the past, to mingle with all the lost
3938 opportunities that are drowned there.
3939
3940 Removing her eyes from him, she sat so long looking silently towards the
3941 town, that he said, at length: ‘Are you consulting the chimneys of the
3942 Coketown works, Louisa?’
3943
3944 ‘There seems to be nothing there but languid and monotonous smoke. Yet
3945 when the night comes, Fire bursts out, father!’ she answered, turning
3946 quickly.
3947
3948 ‘Of course I know that, Louisa. I do not see the application of the
3949 remark.’ To do him justice he did not, at all.
3950
3951 She passed it away with a slight motion of her hand, and concentrating
3952 her attention upon him again, said, ‘Father, I have often thought that
3953 life is very short.’—This was so distinctly one of his subjects that he
3954 interposed.
3955
3956 ‘It is short, no doubt, my dear. Still, the average duration of human
3957 life is proved to have increased of late years. The calculations of
3958 various life assurance and annuity offices, among other figures which
3959 cannot go wrong, have established the fact.’
3960
3961 ‘I speak of my own life, father.’
3962
3963 ‘O indeed? Still,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, ‘I need not point out to you,
3964 Louisa, that it is governed by the laws which govern lives in the
3965 aggregate.’
3966
3967 ‘While it lasts, I would wish to do the little I can, and the little I am
3968 fit for. What does it matter?’
3969
3970 Mr. Gradgrind seemed rather at a loss to understand the last four words;
3971 replying, ‘How, matter? What matter, my dear?’
3972
3973 ‘Mr. Bounderby,’ she went on in a steady, straight way, without regarding
3974 this, ‘asks me to marry him. The question I have to ask myself is, shall
3975 I marry him? That is so, father, is it not? You have told me so,
3976 father. Have you not?’
3977
3978 ‘Certainly, my dear.’
3979
3980 ‘Let it be so. Since Mr. Bounderby likes to take me thus, I am satisfied
3981 to accept his proposal. Tell him, father, as soon as you please, that
3982 this was my answer. Repeat it, word for word, if you can, because I
3983 should wish him to know what I said.’
3984
3985 ‘It is quite right, my dear,’ retorted her father approvingly, ‘to be
3986 exact. I will observe your very proper request. Have you any wish in
3987 reference to the period of your marriage, my child?’
3988
3989 ‘None, father. What does it matter!’
3990
3991 Mr. Gradgrind had drawn his chair a little nearer to her, and taken her
3992 hand. But, her repetition of these words seemed to strike with some
3993 little discord on his ear. He paused to look at her, and, still holding
3994 her hand, said:
3995
3996 ‘Louisa, I have not considered it essential to ask you one question,
3997 because the possibility implied in it appeared to me to be too remote.
3998 But perhaps I ought to do so. You have never entertained in secret any
3999 other proposal?’
4000
4001 ‘Father,’ she returned, almost scornfully, ‘what other proposal can have
4002 been made to _me_? Whom have I seen? Where have I been? What are my
4003 heart’s experiences?’
4004
4005 ‘My dear Louisa,’ returned Mr. Gradgrind, reassured and satisfied. ‘You
4006 correct me justly. I merely wished to discharge my duty.’
4007
4008 ‘What do _I_ know, father,’ said Louisa in her quiet manner, ‘of tastes
4009 and fancies; of aspirations and affections; of all that part of my nature
4010 in which such light things might have been nourished? What escape have I
4011 had from problems that could be demonstrated, and realities that could be
4012 grasped?’ As she said it, she unconsciously closed her hand, as if upon
4013 a solid object, and slowly opened it as though she were releasing dust or
4014 ash.
4015
4016 ‘My dear,’ assented her eminently practical parent, ‘quite true, quite
4017 true.’
4018
4019 ‘Why, father,’ she pursued, ‘what a strange question to ask _me_! The
4020 baby-preference that even I have heard of as common among children, has
4021 never had its innocent resting-place in my breast. You have been so
4022 careful of me, that I never had a child’s heart. You have trained me so
4023 well, that I never dreamed a child’s dream. You have dealt so wisely
4024 with me, father, from my cradle to this hour, that I never had a child’s
4025 belief or a child’s fear.’
4026
4027 Mr. Gradgrind was quite moved by his success, and by this testimony to
4028 it. ‘My dear Louisa,’ said he, ‘you abundantly repay my care. Kiss me,
4029 my dear girl.’
4030
4031 So, his daughter kissed him. Detaining her in his embrace, he said, ‘I
4032 may assure you now, my favourite child, that I am made happy by the sound
4033 decision at which you have arrived. Mr. Bounderby is a very remarkable
4034 man; and what little disparity can be said to exist between you—if any—is
4035 more than counterbalanced by the tone your mind has acquired. It has
4036 always been my object so to educate you, as that you might, while still
4037 in your early youth, be (if I may so express myself) almost any age.
4038 Kiss me once more, Louisa. Now, let us go and find your mother.’
4039
4040 Accordingly, they went down to the drawing-room, where the esteemed lady
4041 with no nonsense about her, was recumbent as usual, while Sissy worked
4042 beside her. She gave some feeble signs of returning animation when they
4043 entered, and presently the faint transparency was presented in a sitting
4044 attitude.
4045
4046 ‘Mrs. Gradgrind,’ said her husband, who had waited for the achievement of
4047 this feat with some impatience, ‘allow me to present to you Mrs.
4048 Bounderby.’
4049
4050 ‘Oh!’ said Mrs. Gradgrind, ‘so you have settled it! Well, I’m sure I
4051 hope your health may be good, Louisa; for if your head begins to split as
4052 soon as you are married, which was the case with mine, I cannot consider
4053 that you are to be envied, though I have no doubt you think you are, as
4054 all girls do. However, I give you joy, my dear—and I hope you may now
4055 turn all your ological studies to good account, I am sure I do! I must
4056 give you a kiss of congratulation, Louisa; but don’t touch my right
4057 shoulder, for there’s something running down it all day long. And now
4058 you see,’ whimpered Mrs. Gradgrind, adjusting her shawls after the
4059 affectionate ceremony, ‘I shall be worrying myself, morning, noon, and
4060 night, to know what I am to call him!’
4061
4062 ‘Mrs. Gradgrind,’ said her husband, solemnly, ‘what do you mean?’
4063
4064 ‘Whatever I am to call him, Mr. Gradgrind, when he is married to Louisa!
4065 I must call him something. It’s impossible,’ said Mrs. Gradgrind, with a
4066 mingled sense of politeness and injury, ‘to be constantly addressing him
4067 and never giving him a name. I cannot call him Josiah, for the name is
4068 insupportable to me. You yourself wouldn’t hear of Joe, you very well
4069 know. Am I to call my own son-in-law, Mister! Not, I believe, unless
4070 the time has arrived when, as an invalid, I am to be trampled upon by my
4071 relations. Then, what am I to call him!’
4072
4073 Nobody present having any suggestion to offer in the remarkable
4074 emergency, Mrs. Gradgrind departed this life for the time being, after
4075 delivering the following codicil to her remarks already executed:
4076
4077 ‘As to the wedding, all I ask, Louisa, is,—and I ask it with a fluttering
4078 in my chest, which actually extends to the soles of my feet,—that it may
4079 take place soon. Otherwise, I know it is one of those subjects I shall
4080 never hear the last of.’
4081
4082 When Mr. Gradgrind had presented Mrs. Bounderby, Sissy had suddenly
4083 turned her head, and looked, in wonder, in pity, in sorrow, in doubt, in
4084 a multitude of emotions, towards Louisa. Louisa had known it, and seen
4085 it, without looking at her. From that moment she was impassive, proud
4086 and cold—held Sissy at a distance—changed to her altogether.
4087
4088
4089
4090 CHAPTER XVI
4091 HUSBAND AND WIFE
4092
4093
4094 MR. BOUNDERBY’S first disquietude on hearing of his happiness, was
4095 occasioned by the necessity of imparting it to Mrs. Sparsit. He could
4096 not make up his mind how to do that, or what the consequences of the step
4097 might be. Whether she would instantly depart, bag and baggage, to Lady
4098 Scadgers, or would positively refuse to budge from the premises; whether
4099 she would be plaintive or abusive, tearful or tearing; whether she would
4100 break her heart, or break the looking-glass; Mr. Bounderby could not all
4101 foresee. However, as it must be done, he had no choice but to do it; so,
4102 after attempting several letters, and failing in them all, he resolved to
4103 do it by word of mouth.
4104
4105 On his way home, on the evening he set aside for this momentous purpose,
4106 he took the precaution of stepping into a chemist’s shop and buying a
4107 bottle of the very strongest smelling-salts. ‘By George!’ said Mr.
4108 Bounderby, ‘if she takes it in the fainting way, I’ll have the skin off
4109 her nose, at all events!’ But, in spite of being thus forearmed, he
4110 entered his own house with anything but a courageous air; and appeared
4111 before the object of his misgivings, like a dog who was conscious of
4112 coming direct from the pantry.
4113
4114 ‘Good evening, Mr. Bounderby!’
4115
4116 ‘Good evening, ma’am, good evening.’ He drew up his chair, and Mrs.
4117 Sparsit drew back hers, as who should say, ‘Your fireside, sir. I freely
4118 admit it. It is for you to occupy it all, if you think proper.’
4119
4120 ‘Don’t go to the North Pole, ma’am!’ said Mr. Bounderby.
4121
4122 ‘Thank you, sir,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, and returned, though short of her
4123 former position.
4124
4125 Mr. Bounderby sat looking at her, as, with the points of a stiff, sharp
4126 pair of scissors, she picked out holes for some inscrutable ornamental
4127 purpose, in a piece of cambric. An operation which, taken in connexion
4128 with the bushy eyebrows and the Roman nose, suggested with some
4129 liveliness the idea of a hawk engaged upon the eyes of a tough little
4130 bird. She was so steadfastly occupied, that many minutes elapsed before
4131 she looked up from her work; when she did so Mr. Bounderby bespoke her
4132 attention with a hitch of his head.
4133
4134 ‘Mrs. Sparsit, ma’am,’ said Mr. Bounderby, putting his hands in his
4135 pockets, and assuring himself with his right hand that the cork of the
4136 little bottle was ready for use, ‘I have no occasion to say to you, that
4137 you are not only a lady born and bred, but a devilish sensible woman.’
4138
4139 ‘Sir,’ returned the lady, ‘this is indeed not the first time that you
4140 have honoured me with similar expressions of your good opinion.’
4141
4142 ‘Mrs. Sparsit, ma’am,’ said Mr. Bounderby, ‘I am going to astonish you.’
4143
4144 ‘Yes, sir?’ returned Mrs. Sparsit, interrogatively, and in the most
4145 tranquil manner possible. She generally wore mittens, and she now laid
4146 down her work, and smoothed those mittens.
4147
4148 ‘I am going, ma’am,’ said Bounderby, ‘to marry Tom Gradgrind’s daughter.’
4149
4150 ‘Yes, sir,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit. ‘I hope you may be happy, Mr.
4151 Bounderby. Oh, indeed I hope you may be happy, sir!’ And she said it
4152 with such great condescension as well as with such great compassion for
4153 him, that Bounderby,—far more disconcerted than if she had thrown her
4154 workbox at the mirror, or swooned on the hearthrug,—corked up the
4155 smelling-salts tight in his pocket, and thought, ‘Now confound this
4156 woman, who could have even guessed that she would take it in this way!’
4157
4158 ‘I wish with all my heart, sir,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, in a highly superior
4159 manner; somehow she seemed, in a moment, to have established a right to
4160 pity him ever afterwards; ‘that you may be in all respects very happy.’
4161
4162 ‘Well, ma’am,’ returned Bounderby, with some resentment in his tone:
4163 which was clearly lowered, though in spite of himself, ‘I am obliged to
4164 you. I hope I shall be.’
4165
4166 ‘_Do_ you, sir!’ said Mrs. Sparsit, with great affability. ‘But
4167 naturally you do; of course you do.’
4168
4169 A very awkward pause on Mr. Bounderby’s part, succeeded. Mrs. Sparsit
4170 sedately resumed her work and occasionally gave a small cough, which
4171 sounded like the cough of conscious strength and forbearance.
4172
4173 ‘Well, ma’am,’ resumed Bounderby, ‘under these circumstances, I imagine
4174 it would not be agreeable to a character like yours to remain here,
4175 though you would be very welcome here.’
4176
4177 ‘Oh, dear no, sir, I could on no account think of that!’ Mrs. Sparsit
4178 shook her head, still in her highly superior manner, and a little changed
4179 the small cough—coughing now, as if the spirit of prophecy rose within
4180 her, but had better be coughed down.
4181
4182 ‘However, ma’am,’ said Bounderby, ‘there are apartments at the Bank,
4183 where a born and bred lady, as keeper of the place, would be rather a
4184 catch than otherwise; and if the same terms—’
4185
4186 ‘I beg your pardon, sir. You were so good as to promise that you would
4187 always substitute the phrase, annual compliment.’
4188
4189 ‘Well, ma’am, annual compliment. If the same annual compliment would be
4190 acceptable there, why, I see nothing to part us, unless you do.’
4191
4192 ‘Sir,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit. ‘The proposal is like yourself, and if the
4193 position I shall assume at the Bank is one that I could occupy without
4194 descending lower in the social scale—’
4195
4196 ‘Why, of course it is,’ said Bounderby. ‘If it was not, ma’am, you don’t
4197 suppose that I should offer it to a lady who has moved in the society you
4198 have moved in. Not that _I_ care for such society, you know! But _you_
4199 do.’
4200
4201 ‘Mr. Bounderby, you are very considerate.’
4202
4203 ‘You’ll have your own private apartments, and you’ll have your coals and
4204 your candles, and all the rest of it, and you’ll have your maid to attend
4205 upon you, and you’ll have your light porter to protect you, and you’ll be
4206 what I take the liberty of considering precious comfortable,’ said
4207 Bounderby.
4208
4209 ‘Sir,’ rejoined Mrs. Sparsit, ‘say no more. In yielding up my trust
4210 here, I shall not be freed from the necessity of eating the bread of
4211 dependence:’ she might have said the sweetbread, for that delicate
4212 article in a savoury brown sauce was her favourite supper: ‘and I would
4213 rather receive it from your hand, than from any other. Therefore, sir, I
4214 accept your offer gratefully, and with many sincere acknowledgments for
4215 past favours. And I hope, sir,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, concluding in an
4216 impressively compassionate manner, ‘I fondly hope that Miss Gradgrind may
4217 be all you desire, and deserve!’
4218
4219 Nothing moved Mrs. Sparsit from that position any more. It was in vain
4220 for Bounderby to bluster or to assert himself in any of his explosive
4221 ways; Mrs. Sparsit was resolved to have compassion on him, as a Victim.
4222 She was polite, obliging, cheerful, hopeful; but, the more polite, the
4223 more obliging, the more cheerful, the more hopeful, the more exemplary
4224 altogether, she; the forlorner Sacrifice and Victim, he. She had that
4225 tenderness for his melancholy fate, that his great red countenance used
4226 to break out into cold perspirations when she looked at him.
4227
4228 Meanwhile the marriage was appointed to be solemnized in eight weeks’
4229 time, and Mr. Bounderby went every evening to Stone Lodge as an accepted
4230 wooer. Love was made on these occasions in the form of bracelets; and,
4231 on all occasions during the period of betrothal, took a manufacturing
4232 aspect. Dresses were made, jewellery was made, cakes and gloves were
4233 made, settlements were made, and an extensive assortment of Facts did
4234 appropriate honour to the contract. The business was all Fact, from
4235 first to last. The Hours did not go through any of those rosy
4236 performances, which foolish poets have ascribed to them at such times;
4237 neither did the clocks go any faster, or any slower, than at other
4238 seasons. The deadly statistical recorder in the Gradgrind observatory
4239 knocked every second on the head as it was born, and buried it with his
4240 accustomed regularity.
4241
4242 So the day came, as all other days come to people who will only stick to
4243 reason; and when it came, there were married in the church of the florid
4244 wooden legs—that popular order of architecture—Josiah Bounderby Esquire
4245 of Coketown, to Louisa eldest daughter of Thomas Gradgrind Esquire of
4246 Stone Lodge, M.P. for that borough. And when they were united in holy
4247 matrimony, they went home to breakfast at Stone Lodge aforesaid.
4248
4249 There was an improving party assembled on the auspicious occasion, who
4250 knew what everything they had to eat and drink was made of, and how it
4251 was imported or exported, and in what quantities, and in what bottoms,
4252 whether native or foreign, and all about it. The bridesmaids, down to
4253 little Jane Gradgrind, were, in an intellectual point of view, fit
4254 helpmates for the calculating boy; and there was no nonsense about any of
4255 the company.
4256
4257 After breakfast, the bridegroom addressed them in the following terms:
4258
4259 ‘Ladies and gentlemen, I am Josiah Bounderby of Coketown. Since you have
4260 done my wife and myself the honour of drinking our healths and happiness,
4261 I suppose I must acknowledge the same; though, as you all know me, and
4262 know what I am, and what my extraction was, you won’t expect a speech
4263 from a man who, when he sees a Post, says “that’s a Post,” and when he
4264 sees a Pump, says “that’s a Pump,” and is not to be got to call a Post a
4265 Pump, or a Pump a Post, or either of them a Toothpick. If you want a
4266 speech this morning, my friend and father-in-law, Tom Gradgrind, is a
4267 Member of Parliament, and you know where to get it. I am not your man.
4268 However, if I feel a little independent when I look around this table
4269 to-day, and reflect how little I thought of marrying Tom Gradgrind’s
4270 daughter when I was a ragged street-boy, who never washed his face unless
4271 it was at a pump, and that not oftener than once a fortnight, I hope I
4272 may be excused. So, I hope you like my feeling independent; if you
4273 don’t, I can’t help it. I _do_ feel independent. Now I have mentioned,
4274 and you have mentioned, that I am this day married to Tom Gradgrind’s
4275 daughter. I am very glad to be so. It has long been my wish to be so.
4276 I have watched her bringing-up, and I believe she is worthy of me. At
4277 the same time—not to deceive you—I believe I am worthy of her. So, I
4278 thank you, on both our parts, for the good-will you have shown towards
4279 us; and the best wish I can give the unmarried part of the present
4280 company, is this: I hope every bachelor may find as good a wife as I have
4281 found. And I hope every spinster may find as good a husband as my wife
4282 has found.’
4283
4284 Shortly after which oration, as they were going on a nuptial trip to
4285 Lyons, in order that Mr. Bounderby might take the opportunity of seeing
4286 how the Hands got on in those parts, and whether they, too, required to
4287 be fed with gold spoons; the happy pair departed for the railroad. The
4288 bride, in passing down-stairs, dressed for her journey, found Tom waiting
4289 for her—flushed, either with his feelings, or the vinous part of the
4290 breakfast.
4291
4292 ‘What a game girl you are, to be such a first-rate sister, Loo!’
4293 whispered Tom.
4294
4295 She clung to him as she should have clung to some far better nature that
4296 day, and was a little shaken in her reserved composure for the first
4297 time.
4298
4299 ‘Old Bounderby’s quite ready,’ said Tom. ‘Time’s up. Good-bye! I shall
4300 be on the look-out for you, when you come back. I say, my dear Loo!
4301 AN’T it uncommonly jolly now!’
4302
4303 * * * * *
4304
4305 END OF THE FIRST BOOK
4306
4307
4308
4309
4310 BOOK THE SECOND
4311 _REAPING_
4312
4313
4314 CHAPTER I
4315 EFFECTS IN THE BANK
4316
4317
4318 A SUNNY midsummer day. There was such a thing sometimes, even in
4319 Coketown.
4320
4321 Seen from a distance in such weather, Coketown lay shrouded in a haze of
4322 its own, which appeared impervious to the sun’s rays. You only knew the
4323 town was there, because you knew there could have been no such sulky
4324 blotch upon the prospect without a town. A blur of soot and smoke, now
4325 confusedly tending this way, now that way, now aspiring to the vault of
4326 Heaven, now murkily creeping along the earth, as the wind rose and fell,
4327 or changed its quarter: a dense formless jumble, with sheets of cross
4328 light in it, that showed nothing but masses of darkness:—Coketown in the
4329 distance was suggestive of itself, though not a brick of it could be
4330 seen.
4331
4332 The wonder was, it was there at all. It had been ruined so often, that
4333 it was amazing how it had borne so many shocks. Surely there never was
4334 such fragile china-ware as that of which the millers of Coketown were
4335 made. Handle them never so lightly, and they fell to pieces with such
4336 ease that you might suspect them of having been flawed before. They were
4337 ruined, when they were required to send labouring children to school;
4338 they were ruined when inspectors were appointed to look into their works;
4339 they were ruined, when such inspectors considered it doubtful whether
4340 they were quite justified in chopping people up with their machinery;
4341 they were utterly undone, when it was hinted that perhaps they need not
4342 always make quite so much smoke. Besides Mr. Bounderby’s gold spoon
4343 which was generally received in Coketown, another prevalent fiction was
4344 very popular there. It took the form of a threat. Whenever a Coketowner
4345 felt he was ill-used—that is to say, whenever he was not left entirely
4346 alone, and it was proposed to hold him accountable for the consequences
4347 of any of his acts—he was sure to come out with the awful menace, that he
4348 would ‘sooner pitch his property into the Atlantic.’ This had terrified
4349 the Home Secretary within an inch of his life, on several occasions.
4350
4351 However, the Coketowners were so patriotic after all, that they never had
4352 pitched their property into the Atlantic yet, but, on the contrary, had
4353 been kind enough to take mighty good care of it. So there it was, in the
4354 haze yonder; and it increased and multiplied.
4355
4356 The streets were hot and dusty on the summer day, and the sun was so
4357 bright that it even shone through the heavy vapour drooping over
4358 Coketown, and could not be looked at steadily. Stokers emerged from low
4359 underground doorways into factory yards, and sat on steps, and posts, and
4360 palings, wiping their swarthy visages, and contemplating coals. The
4361 whole town seemed to be frying in oil. There was a stifling smell of hot
4362 oil everywhere. The steam-engines shone with it, the dresses of the
4363 Hands were soiled with it, the mills throughout their many stories oozed
4364 and trickled it. The atmosphere of those Fairy palaces was like the
4365 breath of the simoom: and their inhabitants, wasting with heat, toiled
4366 languidly in the desert. But no temperature made the melancholy mad
4367 elephants more mad or more sane. Their wearisome heads went up and down
4368 at the same rate, in hot weather and cold, wet weather and dry, fair
4369 weather and foul. The measured motion of their shadows on the walls, was
4370 the substitute Coketown had to show for the shadows of rustling woods;
4371 while, for the summer hum of insects, it could offer, all the year round,
4372 from the dawn of Monday to the night of Saturday, the whirr of shafts and
4373 wheels.
4374
4375 Drowsily they whirred all through this sunny day, making the passenger
4376 more sleepy and more hot as he passed the humming walls of the mills.
4377 Sun-blinds, and sprinklings of water, a little cooled the main streets
4378 and the shops; but the mills, and the courts and alleys, baked at a
4379 fierce heat. Down upon the river that was black and thick with dye, some
4380 Coketown boys who were at large—a rare sight there—rowed a crazy boat,
4381 which made a spumous track upon the water as it jogged along, while every
4382 dip of an oar stirred up vile smells. But the sun itself, however
4383 beneficent, generally, was less kind to Coketown than hard frost, and
4384 rarely looked intently into any of its closer regions without engendering
4385 more death than life. So does the eye of Heaven itself become an evil
4386 eye, when incapable or sordid hands are interposed between it and the
4387 things it looks upon to bless.
4388
4389 Mrs. Sparsit sat in her afternoon apartment at the Bank, on the shadier
4390 side of the frying street. Office-hours were over: and at that period of
4391 the day, in warm weather, she usually embellished with her genteel
4392 presence, a managerial board-room over the public office. Her own
4393 private sitting-room was a story higher, at the window of which post of
4394 observation she was ready, every morning, to greet Mr. Bounderby, as he
4395 came across the road, with the sympathizing recognition appropriate to a
4396 Victim. He had been married now a year; and Mrs. Sparsit had never
4397 released him from her determined pity a moment.
4398
4399 The Bank offered no violence to the wholesome monotony of the town. It
4400 was another red brick house, with black outside shutters, green inside
4401 blinds, a black street-door up two white steps, a brazen door-plate, and
4402 a brazen door-handle full stop. It was a size larger than Mr.
4403 Bounderby’s house, as other houses were from a size to half-a-dozen sizes
4404 smaller; in all other particulars, it was strictly according to pattern.
4405
4406 Mrs. Sparsit was conscious that by coming in the evening-tide among the
4407 desks and writing implements, she shed a feminine, not to say also
4408 aristocratic, grace upon the office. Seated, with her needlework or
4409 netting apparatus, at the window, she had a self-laudatory sense of
4410 correcting, by her ladylike deportment, the rude business aspect of the
4411 place. With this impression of her interesting character upon her, Mrs.
4412 Sparsit considered herself, in some sort, the Bank Fairy. The
4413 townspeople who, in their passing and repassing, saw her there, regarded
4414 her as the Bank Dragon keeping watch over the treasures of the mine.
4415
4416 What those treasures were, Mrs. Sparsit knew as little as they did. Gold
4417 and silver coin, precious paper, secrets that if divulged would bring
4418 vague destruction upon vague persons (generally, however, people whom she
4419 disliked), were the chief items in her ideal catalogue thereof. For the
4420 rest, she knew that after office-hours, she reigned supreme over all the
4421 office furniture, and over a locked-up iron room with three locks,
4422 against the door of which strong chamber the light porter laid his head
4423 every night, on a truckle bed, that disappeared at cockcrow. Further,
4424 she was lady paramount over certain vaults in the basement, sharply
4425 spiked off from communication with the predatory world; and over the
4426 relics of the current day’s work, consisting of blots of ink, worn-out
4427 pens, fragments of wafers, and scraps of paper torn so small, that
4428 nothing interesting could ever be deciphered on them when Mrs. Sparsit
4429 tried. Lastly, she was guardian over a little armoury of cutlasses and
4430 carbines, arrayed in vengeful order above one of the official
4431 chimney-pieces; and over that respectable tradition never to be separated
4432 from a place of business claiming to be wealthy—a row of
4433 fire-buckets—vessels calculated to be of no physical utility on any
4434 occasion, but observed to exercise a fine moral influence, almost equal
4435 to bullion, on most beholders.
4436
4437 A deaf serving-woman and the light porter completed Mrs. Sparsit’s
4438 empire. The deaf serving-woman was rumoured to be wealthy; and a saying
4439 had for years gone about among the lower orders of Coketown, that she
4440 would be murdered some night when the Bank was shut, for the sake of her
4441 money. It was generally considered, indeed, that she had been due some
4442 time, and ought to have fallen long ago; but she had kept her life, and
4443 her situation, with an ill-conditioned tenacity that occasioned much
4444 offence and disappointment.
4445
4446 Mrs. Sparsit’s tea was just set for her on a pert little table, with its
4447 tripod of legs in an attitude, which she insinuated after office-hours,
4448 into the company of the stern, leathern-topped, long board-table that
4449 bestrode the middle of the room. The light porter placed the tea-tray on
4450 it, knuckling his forehead as a form of homage.
4451
4452 ‘Thank you, Bitzer,’ said Mrs. Sparsit.
4453
4454 ‘Thank _you_, ma’am,’ returned the light porter. He was a very light
4455 porter indeed; as light as in the days when he blinkingly defined a
4456 horse, for girl number twenty.
4457
4458 ‘All is shut up, Bitzer?’ said Mrs. Sparsit.
4459
4460 ‘All is shut up, ma’am.’
4461
4462 ‘And what,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, pouring out her tea, ‘is the news of the
4463 day? Anything?’
4464
4465 ‘Well, ma’am, I can’t say that I have heard anything particular. Our
4466 people are a bad lot, ma’am; but that is no news, unfortunately.’
4467
4468 ‘What are the restless wretches doing now?’ asked Mrs. Sparsit.
4469
4470 ‘Merely going on in the old way, ma’am. Uniting, and leaguing, and
4471 engaging to stand by one another.’
4472
4473 ‘It is much to be regretted,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, making her nose more
4474 Roman and her eyebrows more Coriolanian in the strength of her severity,
4475 ‘that the united masters allow of any such class-combinations.’
4476
4477 ‘Yes, ma’am,’ said Bitzer.
4478
4479 ‘Being united themselves, they ought one and all to set their faces
4480 against employing any man who is united with any other man,’ said Mrs.
4481 Sparsit.
4482
4483 ‘They have done that, ma’am,’ returned Bitzer; ‘but it rather fell
4484 through, ma’am.’
4485
4486 ‘I do not pretend to understand these things,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, with
4487 dignity, ‘my lot having been signally cast in a widely different sphere;
4488 and Mr. Sparsit, as a Powler, being also quite out of the pale of any
4489 such dissensions. I only know that these people must be conquered, and
4490 that it’s high time it was done, once for all.’
4491
4492 ‘Yes, ma’am,’ returned Bitzer, with a demonstration of great respect for
4493 Mrs. Sparsit’s oracular authority. ‘You couldn’t put it clearer, I am
4494 sure, ma’am.’
4495
4496 As this was his usual hour for having a little confidential chat with
4497 Mrs. Sparsit, and as he had already caught her eye and seen that she was
4498 going to ask him something, he made a pretence of arranging the rulers,
4499 inkstands, and so forth, while that lady went on with her tea, glancing
4500 through the open window, down into the street.
4501
4502 ‘Has it been a busy day, Bitzer?’ asked Mrs. Sparsit.
4503
4504 ‘Not a very busy day, my lady. About an average day.’ He now and then
4505 slided into my lady, instead of ma’am, as an involuntary acknowledgment
4506 of Mrs. Sparsit’s personal dignity and claims to reverence.
4507
4508 ‘The clerks,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, carefully brushing an imperceptible
4509 crumb of bread and butter from her left-hand mitten, ‘are trustworthy,
4510 punctual, and industrious, of course?’
4511
4512 ‘Yes, ma’am, pretty fair, ma’am. With the usual exception.’
4513
4514 He held the respectable office of general spy and informer in the
4515 establishment, for which volunteer service he received a present at
4516 Christmas, over and above his weekly wage. He had grown into an
4517 extremely clear-headed, cautious, prudent young man, who was safe to rise
4518 in the world. His mind was so exactly regulated, that he had no
4519 affections or passions. All his proceedings were the result of the
4520 nicest and coldest calculation; and it was not without cause that Mrs.
4521 Sparsit habitually observed of him, that he was a young man of the
4522 steadiest principle she had ever known. Having satisfied himself, on his
4523 father’s death, that his mother had a right of settlement in Coketown,
4524 this excellent young economist had asserted that right for her with such
4525 a steadfast adherence to the principle of the case, that she had been
4526 shut up in the workhouse ever since. It must be admitted that he allowed
4527 her half a pound of tea a year, which was weak in him: first, because all
4528 gifts have an inevitable tendency to pauperise the recipient, and
4529 secondly, because his only reasonable transaction in that commodity would
4530 have been to buy it for as little as he could possibly give, and sell it
4531 for as much as he could possibly get; it having been clearly ascertained
4532 by philosophers that in this is comprised the whole duty of man—not a
4533 part of man’s duty, but the whole.
4534
4535 ‘Pretty fair, ma’am. With the usual exception, ma’am,’ repeated Bitzer.
4536
4537 ‘Ah—h!’ said Mrs. Sparsit, shaking her head over her tea-cup, and taking
4538 a long gulp.
4539
4540 ‘Mr. Thomas, ma’am, I doubt Mr. Thomas very much, ma’am, I don’t like his
4541 ways at all.’
4542
4543 ‘Bitzer,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, in a very impressive manner, ‘do you
4544 recollect my having said anything to you respecting names?’
4545
4546 ‘I beg your pardon, ma’am. It’s quite true that you did object to names
4547 being used, and they’re always best avoided.’
4548
4549 ‘Please to remember that I have a charge here,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, with
4550 her air of state. ‘I hold a trust here, Bitzer, under Mr. Bounderby.
4551 However improbable both Mr. Bounderby and myself might have deemed it
4552 years ago, that he would ever become my patron, making me an annual
4553 compliment, I cannot but regard him in that light. From Mr. Bounderby I
4554 have received every acknowledgment of my social station, and every
4555 recognition of my family descent, that I could possibly expect. More,
4556 far more. Therefore, to my patron I will be scrupulously true. And I do
4557 not consider, I will not consider, I cannot consider,’ said Mrs. Sparsit,
4558 with a most extensive stock on hand of honour and morality, ‘that I
4559 _should_ be scrupulously true, if I allowed names to be mentioned under
4560 this roof, that are unfortunately—most unfortunately—no doubt of
4561 that—connected with his.’
4562
4563 Bitzer knuckled his forehead again, and again begged pardon.
4564
4565 ‘No, Bitzer,’ continued Mrs. Sparsit, ‘say an individual, and I will hear
4566 you; say Mr. Thomas, and you must excuse me.’
4567
4568 ‘With the usual exception, ma’am,’ said Bitzer, trying back, ‘of an
4569 individual.’
4570
4571 ‘Ah—h!’ Mrs. Sparsit repeated the ejaculation, the shake of the head
4572 over her tea-cup, and the long gulp, as taking up the conversation again
4573 at the point where it had been interrupted.
4574
4575 ‘An individual, ma’am,’ said Bitzer, ‘has never been what he ought to
4576 have been, since he first came into the place. He is a dissipated,
4577 extravagant idler. He is not worth his salt, ma’am. He wouldn’t get it
4578 either, if he hadn’t a friend and relation at court, ma’am!’
4579
4580 ‘Ah—h!’ said Mrs. Sparsit, with another melancholy shake of her head.
4581
4582 ‘I only hope, ma’am,’ pursued Bitzer, ‘that his friend and relation may
4583 not supply him with the means of carrying on. Otherwise, ma’am, we know
4584 out of whose pocket _that_ money comes.’
4585
4586 ‘Ah—h!’ sighed Mrs. Sparsit again, with another melancholy shake of her
4587 head.
4588
4589 ‘He is to be pitied, ma’am. The last party I have alluded to, is to be
4590 pitied, ma’am,’ said Bitzer.
4591
4592 ‘Yes, Bitzer,’ said Mrs. Sparsit. ‘I have always pitied the delusion,
4593 always.’
4594
4595 ‘As to an individual, ma’am,’ said Bitzer, dropping his voice and drawing
4596 nearer, ‘he is as improvident as any of the people in this town. And you
4597 know what _their_ improvidence is, ma’am. No one could wish to know it
4598 better than a lady of your eminence does.’
4599
4600 ‘They would do well,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit, ‘to take example by you,
4601 Bitzer.’
4602
4603 ‘Thank you, ma’am. But, since you do refer to me, now look at me, ma’am.
4604 I have put by a little, ma’am, already. That gratuity which I receive at
4605 Christmas, ma’am: I never touch it. I don’t even go the length of my
4606 wages, though they’re not high, ma’am. Why can’t they do as I have done,
4607 ma’am? What one person can do, another can do.’
4608
4609 This, again, was among the fictions of Coketown. Any capitalist there,
4610 who had made sixty thousand pounds out of sixpence, always professed to
4611 wonder why the sixty thousand nearest Hands didn’t each make sixty
4612 thousand pounds out of sixpence, and more or less reproached them every
4613 one for not accomplishing the little feat. What I did you can do. Why
4614 don’t you go and do it?
4615
4616 ‘As to their wanting recreations, ma’am,’ said Bitzer, ‘it’s stuff and
4617 nonsense. _I_ don’t want recreations. I never did, and I never shall; I
4618 don’t like ’em. As to their combining together; there are many of them,
4619 I have no doubt, that by watching and informing upon one another could
4620 earn a trifle now and then, whether in money or good will, and improve
4621 their livelihood. Then, why don’t they improve it, ma’am! It’s the
4622 first consideration of a rational creature, and it’s what they pretend to
4623 want.’
4624
4625 ‘Pretend indeed!’ said Mrs. Sparsit.
4626
4627 ‘I am sure we are constantly hearing, ma’am, till it becomes quite
4628 nauseous, concerning their wives and families,’ said Bitzer. ‘Why look
4629 at me, ma’am! I don’t want a wife and family. Why should they?’
4630
4631 ‘Because they are improvident,’ said Mrs. Sparsit.
4632
4633 ‘Yes, ma’am,’ returned Bitzer, ‘that’s where it is. If they were more
4634 provident and less perverse, ma’am, what would they do? They would say,
4635 “While my hat covers my family,” or “while my bonnet covers my
4636 family,”—as the case might be, ma’am—“I have only one to feed, and that’s
4637 the person I most like to feed.”’
4638
4639 ‘To be sure,’ assented Mrs. Sparsit, eating muffin.
4640
4641 ‘Thank you, ma’am,’ said Bitzer, knuckling his forehead again, in return
4642 for the favour of Mrs. Sparsit’s improving conversation. ‘Would you wish
4643 a little more hot water, ma’am, or is there anything else that I could
4644 fetch you?’
4645
4646 ‘Nothing just now, Bitzer.’
4647
4648 ‘Thank you, ma’am. I shouldn’t wish to disturb you at your meals, ma’am,
4649 particularly tea, knowing your partiality for it,’ said Bitzer, craning a
4650 little to look over into the street from where he stood; ‘but there’s a
4651 gentleman been looking up here for a minute or so, ma’am, and he has come
4652 across as if he was going to knock. That _is_ his knock, ma’am, no
4653 doubt.’
4654
4655 He stepped to the window; and looking out, and drawing in his head again,
4656 confirmed himself with, ‘Yes, ma’am. Would you wish the gentleman to be
4657 shown in, ma’am?’
4658
4659 ‘I don’t know who it can be,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, wiping her mouth and
4660 arranging her mittens.
4661
4662 ‘A stranger, ma’am, evidently.’
4663
4664 ‘What a stranger can want at the Bank at this time of the evening, unless
4665 he comes upon some business for which he is too late, I don’t know,’ said
4666 Mrs. Sparsit, ‘but I hold a charge in this establishment from Mr.
4667 Bounderby, and I will never shrink from it. If to see him is any part of
4668 the duty I have accepted, I will see him. Use your own discretion,
4669 Bitzer.’
4670
4671 Here the visitor, all unconscious of Mrs. Sparsit’s magnanimous words,
4672 repeated his knock so loudly that the light porter hastened down to open
4673 the door; while Mrs. Sparsit took the precaution of concealing her little
4674 table, with all its appliances upon it, in a cupboard, and then decamped
4675 up-stairs, that she might appear, if needful, with the greater dignity.
4676
4677 ‘If you please, ma’am, the gentleman would wish to see you,’ said Bitzer,
4678 with his light eye at Mrs. Sparsit’s keyhole. So, Mrs. Sparsit, who had
4679 improved the interval by touching up her cap, took her classical features
4680 down-stairs again, and entered the board-room in the manner of a Roman
4681 matron going outside the city walls to treat with an invading general.
4682
4683 The visitor having strolled to the window, and being then engaged in
4684 looking carelessly out, was as unmoved by this impressive entry as man
4685 could possibly be. He stood whistling to himself with all imaginable
4686 coolness, with his hat still on, and a certain air of exhaustion upon
4687 him, in part arising from excessive summer, and in part from excessive
4688 gentility. For it was to be seen with half an eye that he was a thorough
4689 gentleman, made to the model of the time; weary of everything, and
4690 putting no more faith in anything than Lucifer.
4691
4692 ‘I believe, sir,’ quoth Mrs. Sparsit, ‘you wished to see me.’
4693
4694 ‘I beg your pardon,’ he said, turning and removing his hat; ‘pray excuse
4695 me.’
4696
4697 ‘Humph!’ thought Mrs. Sparsit, as she made a stately bend. ‘Five and
4698 thirty, good-looking, good figure, good teeth, good voice, good breeding,
4699 well-dressed, dark hair, bold eyes.’ All which Mrs. Sparsit observed in
4700 her womanly way—like the Sultan who put his head in the pail of
4701 water—merely in dipping down and coming up again.
4702
4703 ‘Please to be seated, sir,’ said Mrs. Sparsit.
4704
4705 ‘Thank you. Allow me.’ He placed a chair for her, but remained himself
4706 carelessly lounging against the table. ‘I left my servant at the railway
4707 looking after the luggage—very heavy train and vast quantity of it in the
4708 van—and strolled on, looking about me. Exceedingly odd place. Will you
4709 allow me to ask you if it’s _always_ as black as this?’
4710
4711 ‘In general much blacker,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit, in her uncompromising
4712 way.
4713
4714 ‘Is it possible! Excuse me: you are not a native, I think?’
4715
4716 ‘No, sir,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit. ‘It was once my good or ill fortune,
4717 as it may be—before I became a widow—to move in a very different sphere.
4718 My husband was a Powler.’
4719
4720 ‘Beg your pardon, really!’ said the stranger. ‘Was—?’
4721
4722 Mrs. Sparsit repeated, ‘A Powler.’
4723
4724 ‘Powler Family,’ said the stranger, after reflecting a few moments. Mrs.
4725 Sparsit signified assent. The stranger seemed a little more fatigued
4726 than before.
4727
4728 ‘You must be very much bored here?’ was the inference he drew from the
4729 communication.
4730
4731 ‘I am the servant of circumstances, sir,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, ‘and I have
4732 long adapted myself to the governing power of my life.’
4733
4734 ‘Very philosophical,’ returned the stranger, ‘and very exemplary and
4735 laudable, and—’ It seemed to be scarcely worth his while to finish the
4736 sentence, so he played with his watch-chain wearily.
4737
4738 ‘May I be permitted to ask, sir,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, ‘to what I am
4739 indebted for the favour of—’
4740
4741 ‘Assuredly,’ said the stranger. ‘Much obliged to you for reminding me.
4742 I am the bearer of a letter of introduction to Mr. Bounderby, the banker.
4743 Walking through this extraordinarily black town, while they were getting
4744 dinner ready at the hotel, I asked a fellow whom I met; one of the
4745 working people; who appeared to have been taking a shower-bath of
4746 something fluffy, which I assume to be the raw material—’
4747
4748 Mrs. Sparsit inclined her head.
4749
4750 ‘—Raw material—where Mr. Bounderby, the banker, might reside. Upon
4751 which, misled no doubt by the word Banker, he directed me to the Bank.
4752 Fact being, I presume, that Mr. Bounderby the Banker does _not_ reside in
4753 the edifice in which I have the honour of offering this explanation?’
4754
4755 ‘No, sir,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit, ‘he does not.’
4756
4757 ‘Thank you. I had no intention of delivering my letter at the present
4758 moment, nor have I. But strolling on to the Bank to kill time, and having
4759 the good fortune to observe at the window,’ towards which he languidly
4760 waved his hand, then slightly bowed, ‘a lady of a very superior and
4761 agreeable appearance, I considered that I could not do better than take
4762 the liberty of asking that lady where Mr. Bounderby the Banker _does_
4763 live. Which I accordingly venture, with all suitable apologies, to do.’
4764
4765 The inattention and indolence of his manner were sufficiently relieved,
4766 to Mrs. Sparsit’s thinking, by a certain gallantry at ease, which offered
4767 her homage too. Here he was, for instance, at this moment, all but
4768 sitting on the table, and yet lazily bending over her, as if he
4769 acknowledged an attraction in her that made her charming—in her way.
4770
4771 ‘Banks, I know, are always suspicious, and officially must be,’ said the
4772 stranger, whose lightness and smoothness of speech were pleasant
4773 likewise; suggesting matter far more sensible and humorous than it ever
4774 contained—which was perhaps a shrewd device of the founder of this
4775 numerous sect, whosoever may have been that great man: ‘therefore I may
4776 observe that my letter—here it is—is from the member for this
4777 place—Gradgrind—whom I have had the pleasure of knowing in London.’
4778
4779 Mrs. Sparsit recognized the hand, intimated that such confirmation was
4780 quite unnecessary, and gave Mr. Bounderby’s address, with all needful
4781 clues and directions in aid.
4782
4783 ‘Thousand thanks,’ said the stranger. ‘Of course you know the Banker
4784 well?’
4785
4786 ‘Yes, sir,’ rejoined Mrs. Sparsit. ‘In my dependent relation towards
4787 him, I have known him ten years.’
4788
4789 ‘Quite an eternity! I think he married Gradgrind’s daughter?’
4790
4791 ‘Yes,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, suddenly compressing her mouth, ‘he had
4792 that—honour.’
4793
4794 ‘The lady is quite a philosopher, I am told?’
4795
4796 ‘Indeed, sir,’ said Mrs. Sparsit. ‘_Is_ she?’
4797
4798 ‘Excuse my impertinent curiosity,’ pursued the stranger, fluttering over
4799 Mrs. Sparsit’s eyebrows, with a propitiatory air, ‘but you know the
4800 family, and know the world. I am about to know the family, and may have
4801 much to do with them. Is the lady so very alarming? Her father gives
4802 her such a portentously hard-headed reputation, that I have a burning
4803 desire to know. Is she absolutely unapproachable? Repellently and
4804 stunningly clever? I see, by your meaning smile, you think not. You
4805 have poured balm into my anxious soul. As to age, now. Forty? Five and
4806 thirty?’
4807
4808 Mrs. Sparsit laughed outright. ‘A chit,’ said she. ‘Not twenty when she
4809 was married.’
4810
4811 ‘I give you my honour, Mrs. Powler,’ returned the stranger, detaching
4812 himself from the table, ‘that I never was so astonished in my life!’
4813
4814 It really did seem to impress him, to the utmost extent of his capacity
4815 of being impressed. He looked at his informant for full a quarter of a
4816 minute, and appeared to have the surprise in his mind all the time. ‘I
4817 assure you, Mrs. Powler,’ he then said, much exhausted, ‘that the
4818 father’s manner prepared me for a grim and stony maturity. I am obliged
4819 to you, of all things, for correcting so absurd a mistake. Pray excuse
4820 my intrusion. Many thanks. Good day!’
4821
4822 He bowed himself out; and Mrs. Sparsit, hiding in the window curtain, saw
4823 him languishing down the street on the shady side of the way, observed of
4824 all the town.
4825
4826 ‘What do you think of the gentleman, Bitzer?’ she asked the light porter,
4827 when he came to take away.
4828
4829 ‘Spends a deal of money on his dress, ma’am.’
4830
4831 ‘It must be admitted,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, ‘that it’s very tasteful.’
4832
4833 ‘Yes, ma’am,’ returned Bitzer, ‘if that’s worth the money.’
4834
4835 ‘Besides which, ma’am,’ resumed Bitzer, while he was polishing the table,
4836 ‘he looks to me as if he gamed.’
4837
4838 ‘It’s immoral to game,’ said Mrs. Sparsit.
4839
4840 ‘It’s ridiculous, ma’am,’ said Bitzer, ‘because the chances are against
4841 the players.’
4842
4843 Whether it was that the heat prevented Mrs. Sparsit from working, or
4844 whether it was that her hand was out, she did no work that night. She
4845 sat at the window, when the sun began to sink behind the smoke; she sat
4846 there, when the smoke was burning red, when the colour faded from it,
4847 when darkness seemed to rise slowly out of the ground, and creep upward,
4848 upward, up to the house-tops, up the church steeple, up to the summits of
4849 the factory chimneys, up to the sky. Without a candle in the room, Mrs.
4850 Sparsit sat at the window, with her hands before her, not thinking much
4851 of the sounds of evening; the whooping of boys, the barking of dogs, the
4852 rumbling of wheels, the steps and voices of passengers, the shrill street
4853 cries, the clogs upon the pavement when it was their hour for going by,
4854 the shutting-up of shop-shutters. Not until the light porter announced
4855 that her nocturnal sweetbread was ready, did Mrs. Sparsit arouse herself
4856 from her reverie, and convey her dense black eyebrows—by that time
4857 creased with meditation, as if they needed ironing out-up-stairs.
4858
4859 ‘O, you Fool!’ said Mrs. Sparsit, when she was alone at her supper. Whom
4860 she meant, she did not say; but she could scarcely have meant the
4861 sweetbread.
4862
4863
4864
4865 CHAPTER II
4866 MR. JAMES HARTHOUSE
4867
4868
4869 THE Gradgrind party wanted assistance in cutting the throats of the
4870 Graces. They went about recruiting; and where could they enlist recruits
4871 more hopefully, than among the fine gentlemen who, having found out
4872 everything to be worth nothing, were equally ready for anything?
4873
4874 Moreover, the healthy spirits who had mounted to this sublime height were
4875 attractive to many of the Gradgrind school. They liked fine gentlemen;
4876 they pretended that they did not, but they did. They became exhausted in
4877 imitation of them; and they yaw-yawed in their speech like them; and they
4878 served out, with an enervated air, the little mouldy rations of political
4879 economy, on which they regaled their disciples. There never before was
4880 seen on earth such a wonderful hybrid race as was thus produced.
4881
4882 Among the fine gentlemen not regularly belonging to the Gradgrind school,
4883 there was one of a good family and a better appearance, with a happy turn
4884 of humour which had told immensely with the House of Commons on the
4885 occasion of his entertaining it with his (and the Board of Directors)
4886 view of a railway accident, in which the most careful officers ever
4887 known, employed by the most liberal managers ever heard of, assisted by
4888 the finest mechanical contrivances ever devised, the whole in action on
4889 the best line ever constructed, had killed five people and wounded
4890 thirty-two, by a casualty without which the excellence of the whole
4891 system would have been positively incomplete. Among the slain was a cow,
4892 and among the scattered articles unowned, a widow’s cap. And the
4893 honourable member had so tickled the House (which has a delicate sense of
4894 humour) by putting the cap on the cow, that it became impatient of any
4895 serious reference to the Coroner’s Inquest, and brought the railway off
4896 with Cheers and Laughter.
4897
4898 Now, this gentleman had a younger brother of still better appearance than
4899 himself, who had tried life as a Cornet of Dragoons, and found it a bore;
4900 and had afterwards tried it in the train of an English minister abroad,
4901 and found it a bore; and had then strolled to Jerusalem, and got bored
4902 there; and had then gone yachting about the world, and got bored
4903 everywhere. To whom this honourable and jocular, member fraternally said
4904 one day, ‘Jem, there’s a good opening among the hard Fact fellows, and
4905 they want men. I wonder you don’t go in for statistics.’ Jem, rather
4906 taken by the novelty of the idea, and very hard up for a change, was as
4907 ready to ‘go in’ for statistics as for anything else. So, he went in.
4908 He coached himself up with a blue-book or two; and his brother put it
4909 about among the hard Fact fellows, and said, ‘If you want to bring in,
4910 for any place, a handsome dog who can make you a devilish good speech,
4911 look after my brother Jem, for he’s your man.’ After a few dashes in the
4912 public meeting way, Mr. Gradgrind and a council of political sages
4913 approved of Jem, and it was resolved to send him down to Coketown, to
4914 become known there and in the neighbourhood. Hence the letter Jem had
4915 last night shown to Mrs. Sparsit, which Mr. Bounderby now held in his
4916 hand; superscribed, ‘Josiah Bounderby, Esquire, Banker, Coketown.
4917 Specially to introduce James Harthouse, Esquire. Thomas Gradgrind.’
4918
4919 Within an hour of the receipt of this dispatch and Mr. James Harthouse’s
4920 card, Mr. Bounderby put on his hat and went down to the Hotel. There he
4921 found Mr. James Harthouse looking out of window, in a state of mind so
4922 disconsolate, that he was already half-disposed to ‘go in’ for something
4923 else.
4924
4925 ‘My name, sir,’ said his visitor, ‘is Josiah Bounderby, of Coketown.’
4926
4927 Mr. James Harthouse was very happy indeed (though he scarcely looked so)
4928 to have a pleasure he had long expected.
4929
4930 ‘Coketown, sir,’ said Bounderby, obstinately taking a chair, ‘is not the
4931 kind of place you have been accustomed to. Therefore, if you will allow
4932 me—or whether you will or not, for I am a plain man—I’ll tell you
4933 something about it before we go any further.’
4934
4935 Mr. Harthouse would be charmed.
4936
4937 ‘Don’t be too sure of that,’ said Bounderby. ‘I don’t promise it. First
4938 of all, you see our smoke. That’s meat and drink to us. It’s the
4939 healthiest thing in the world in all respects, and particularly for the
4940 lungs. If you are one of those who want us to consume it, I differ from
4941 you. We are not going to wear the bottoms of our boilers out any faster
4942 than we wear ’em out now, for all the humbugging sentiment in Great
4943 Britain and Ireland.’
4944
4945 By way of ‘going in’ to the fullest extent, Mr. Harthouse rejoined, ‘Mr.
4946 Bounderby, I assure you I am entirely and completely of your way of
4947 thinking. On conviction.’
4948
4949 ‘I am glad to hear it,’ said Bounderby. ‘Now, you have heard a lot of
4950 talk about the work in our mills, no doubt. You have? Very good. I’ll
4951 state the fact of it to you. It’s the pleasantest work there is, and
4952 it’s the lightest work there is, and it’s the best-paid work there is.
4953 More than that, we couldn’t improve the mills themselves, unless we laid
4954 down Turkey carpets on the floors. Which we’re not a-going to do.’
4955
4956 ‘Mr. Bounderby, perfectly right.’
4957
4958 ‘Lastly,’ said Bounderby, ‘as to our Hands. There’s not a Hand in this
4959 town, sir, man, woman, or child, but has one ultimate object in life.
4960 That object is, to be fed on turtle soup and venison with a gold spoon.
4961 Now, they’re not a-going—none of ’em—ever to be fed on turtle soup and
4962 venison with a gold spoon. And now you know the place.’
4963
4964 Mr. Harthouse professed himself in the highest degree instructed and
4965 refreshed, by this condensed epitome of the whole Coketown question.
4966
4967 ‘Why, you see,’ replied Mr. Bounderby, ‘it suits my disposition to have a
4968 full understanding with a man, particularly with a public man, when I
4969 make his acquaintance. I have only one thing more to say to you, Mr.
4970 Harthouse, before assuring you of the pleasure with which I shall
4971 respond, to the utmost of my poor ability, to my friend Tom Gradgrind’s
4972 letter of introduction. You are a man of family. Don’t you deceive
4973 yourself by supposing for a moment that I am a man of family. I am a bit
4974 of dirty riff-raff, and a genuine scrap of tag, rag, and bobtail.’
4975
4976 If anything could have exalted Jem’s interest in Mr. Bounderby, it would
4977 have been this very circumstance. Or, so he told him.
4978
4979 ‘So now,’ said Bounderby, ‘we may shake hands on equal terms. I say,
4980 equal terms, because although I know what I am, and the exact depth of
4981 the gutter I have lifted myself out of, better than any man does, I am as
4982 proud as you are. I am just as proud as you are. Having now asserted my
4983 independence in a proper manner, I may come to how do you find yourself,
4984 and I hope you’re pretty well.’
4985
4986 The better, Mr. Harthouse gave him to understand as they shook hands, for
4987 the salubrious air of Coketown. Mr. Bounderby received the answer with
4988 favour.
4989
4990 ‘Perhaps you know,’ said he, ‘or perhaps you don’t know, I married Tom
4991 Gradgrind’s daughter. If you have nothing better to do than to walk up
4992 town with me, I shall be glad to introduce you to Tom Gradgrind’s
4993 daughter.’
4994
4995 ‘Mr. Bounderby,’ said Jem, ‘you anticipate my dearest wishes.’
4996
4997 They went out without further discourse; and Mr. Bounderby piloted the
4998 new acquaintance who so strongly contrasted with him, to the private red
4999 brick dwelling, with the black outside shutters, the green inside blinds,
5000 and the black street door up the two white steps. In the drawing-room of
5001 which mansion, there presently entered to them the most remarkable girl
5002 Mr. James Harthouse had ever seen. She was so constrained, and yet so
5003 careless; so reserved, and yet so watchful; so cold and proud, and yet so
5004 sensitively ashamed of her husband’s braggart humility—from which she
5005 shrunk as if every example of it were a cut or a blow; that it was quite
5006 a new sensation to observe her. In face she was no less remarkable than
5007 in manner. Her features were handsome; but their natural play was so
5008 locked up, that it seemed impossible to guess at their genuine
5009 expression. Utterly indifferent, perfectly self-reliant, never at a
5010 loss, and yet never at her ease, with her figure in company with them
5011 there, and her mind apparently quite alone—it was of no use ‘going in’
5012 yet awhile to comprehend this girl, for she baffled all penetration.
5013
5014 From the mistress of the house, the visitor glanced to the house itself.
5015 There was no mute sign of a woman in the room. No graceful little
5016 adornment, no fanciful little device, however trivial, anywhere expressed
5017 her influence. Cheerless and comfortless, boastfully and doggedly rich,
5018 there the room stared at its present occupants, unsoftened and unrelieved
5019 by the least trace of any womanly occupation. As Mr. Bounderby stood in
5020 the midst of his household gods, so those unrelenting divinities occupied
5021 their places around Mr. Bounderby, and they were worthy of one another,
5022 and well matched.
5023
5024 ‘This, sir,’ said Bounderby, ‘is my wife, Mrs. Bounderby: Tom Gradgrind’s
5025 eldest daughter. Loo, Mr. James Harthouse. Mr. Harthouse has joined
5026 your father’s muster-roll. If he is not Tom Gradgrind’s colleague before
5027 long, I believe we shall at least hear of him in connexion with one of
5028 our neighbouring towns. You observe, Mr. Harthouse, that my wife is my
5029 junior. I don’t know what she saw in me to marry me, but she saw
5030 something in me, I suppose, or she wouldn’t have married me. She has
5031 lots of expensive knowledge, sir, political and otherwise. If you want
5032 to cram for anything, I should be troubled to recommend you to a better
5033 adviser than Loo Bounderby.’
5034
5035 To a more agreeable adviser, or one from whom he would be more likely to
5036 learn, Mr. Harthouse could never be recommended.
5037
5038 ‘Come!’ said his host. ‘If you’re in the complimentary line, you’ll get
5039 on here, for you’ll meet with no competition. I have never been in the
5040 way of learning compliments myself, and I don’t profess to understand the
5041 art of paying ’em. In fact, despise ’em. But, your bringing-up was
5042 different from mine; mine was a real thing, by George! You’re a
5043 gentleman, and I don’t pretend to be one. I am Josiah Bounderby of
5044 Coketown, and that’s enough for me. However, though I am not influenced
5045 by manners and station, Loo Bounderby may be. She hadn’t my
5046 advantages—disadvantages you would call ’em, but I call ’em advantages—so
5047 you’ll not waste your power, I dare say.’
5048
5049 ‘Mr. Bounderby,’ said Jem, turning with a smile to Louisa, ‘is a noble
5050 animal in a comparatively natural state, quite free from the harness in
5051 which a conventional hack like myself works.’
5052
5053 ‘You respect Mr. Bounderby very much,’ she quietly returned. ‘It is
5054 natural that you should.’
5055
5056 He was disgracefully thrown out, for a gentleman who had seen so much of
5057 the world, and thought, ‘Now, how am I to take this?’
5058
5059 ‘You are going to devote yourself, as I gather from what Mr. Bounderby
5060 has said, to the service of your country. You have made up your mind,’
5061 said Louisa, still standing before him where she had first stopped—in all
5062 the singular contrariety of her self-possession, and her being obviously
5063 very ill at ease—‘to show the nation the way out of all its
5064 difficulties.’
5065
5066 ‘Mrs. Bounderby,’ he returned, laughing, ‘upon my honour, no. I will
5067 make no such pretence to you. I have seen a little, here and there, up
5068 and down; I have found it all to be very worthless, as everybody has, and
5069 as some confess they have, and some do not; and I am going in for your
5070 respected father’s opinions—really because I have no choice of opinions,
5071 and may as well back them as anything else.’
5072
5073 ‘Have you none of your own?’ asked Louisa.
5074
5075 ‘I have not so much as the slightest predilection left. I assure you I
5076 attach not the least importance to any opinions. The result of the
5077 varieties of boredom I have undergone, is a conviction (unless conviction
5078 is too industrious a word for the lazy sentiment I entertain on the
5079 subject), that any set of ideas will do just as much good as any other
5080 set, and just as much harm as any other set. There’s an English family
5081 with a charming Italian motto. What will be, will be. It’s the only
5082 truth going!’
5083
5084 This vicious assumption of honesty in dishonesty—a vice so dangerous, so
5085 deadly, and so common—seemed, he observed, a little to impress her in his
5086 favour. He followed up the advantage, by saying in his pleasantest
5087 manner: a manner to which she might attach as much or as little meaning
5088 as she pleased: ‘The side that can prove anything in a line of units,
5089 tens, hundreds, and thousands, Mrs. Bounderby, seems to me to afford the
5090 most fun, and to give a man the best chance. I am quite as much attached
5091 to it as if I believed it. I am quite ready to go in for it, to the same
5092 extent as if I believed it. And what more could I possibly do, if I did
5093 believe it!’
5094
5095 ‘You are a singular politician,’ said Louisa.
5096
5097 ‘Pardon me; I have not even that merit. We are the largest party in the
5098 state, I assure you, Mrs. Bounderby, if we all fell out of our adopted
5099 ranks and were reviewed together.’
5100
5101 Mr. Bounderby, who had been in danger of bursting in silence, interposed
5102 here with a project for postponing the family dinner till half-past six,
5103 and taking Mr. James Harthouse in the meantime on a round of visits to
5104 the voting and interesting notabilities of Coketown and its vicinity.
5105 The round of visits was made; and Mr. James Harthouse, with a discreet
5106 use of his blue coaching, came off triumphantly, though with a
5107 considerable accession of boredom.
5108
5109 In the evening, he found the dinner-table laid for four, but they sat
5110 down only three. It was an appropriate occasion for Mr. Bounderby to
5111 discuss the flavour of the hap’orth of stewed eels he had purchased in
5112 the streets at eight years old; and also of the inferior water, specially
5113 used for laying the dust, with which he had washed down that repast. He
5114 likewise entertained his guest over the soup and fish, with the
5115 calculation that he (Bounderby) had eaten in his youth at least three
5116 horses under the guise of polonies and saveloys. These recitals, Jem, in
5117 a languid manner, received with ‘charming!’ every now and then; and they
5118 probably would have decided him to ‘go in’ for Jerusalem again to-morrow
5119 morning, had he been less curious respecting Louisa.
5120
5121 ‘Is there nothing,’ he thought, glancing at her as she sat at the head of
5122 the table, where her youthful figure, small and slight, but very
5123 graceful, looked as pretty as it looked misplaced; ‘is there nothing that
5124 will move that face?’
5125
5126 Yes! By Jupiter, there was something, and here it was, in an unexpected
5127 shape. Tom appeared. She changed as the door opened, and broke into a
5128 beaming smile.
5129
5130 A beautiful smile. Mr. James Harthouse might not have thought so much of
5131 it, but that he had wondered so long at her impassive face. She put out
5132 her hand—a pretty little soft hand; and her fingers closed upon her
5133 brother’s, as if she would have carried them to her lips.
5134
5135 ‘Ay, ay?’ thought the visitor. ‘This whelp is the only creature she
5136 cares for. So, so!’
5137
5138 The whelp was presented, and took his chair. The appellation was not
5139 flattering, but not unmerited.
5140
5141 ‘When I was your age, young Tom,’ said Bounderby, ‘I was punctual, or I
5142 got no dinner!’
5143
5144 ‘When you were my age,’ resumed Tom, ‘you hadn’t a wrong balance to get
5145 right, and hadn’t to dress afterwards.’
5146
5147 ‘Never mind that now,’ said Bounderby.
5148
5149 ‘Well, then,’ grumbled Tom. ‘Don’t begin with me.’
5150
5151 ‘Mrs. Bounderby,’ said Harthouse, perfectly hearing this under-strain as
5152 it went on; ‘your brother’s face is quite familiar to me. Can I have
5153 seen him abroad? Or at some public school, perhaps?’
5154
5155 ‘No,’ she resumed, quite interested, ‘he has never been abroad yet, and
5156 was educated here, at home. Tom, love, I am telling Mr. Harthouse that
5157 he never saw you abroad.’
5158
5159 ‘No such luck, sir,’ said Tom.
5160
5161 There was little enough in him to brighten her face, for he was a sullen
5162 young fellow, and ungracious in his manner even to her. So much the
5163 greater must have been the solitude of her heart, and her need of some
5164 one on whom to bestow it. ‘So much the more is this whelp the only
5165 creature she has ever cared for,’ thought Mr. James Harthouse, turning it
5166 over and over. ‘So much the more. So much the more.’
5167
5168 Both in his sister’s presence, and after she had left the room, the whelp
5169 took no pains to hide his contempt for Mr. Bounderby, whenever he could
5170 indulge it without the observation of that independent man, by making wry
5171 faces, or shutting one eye. Without responding to these telegraphic
5172 communications, Mr. Harthouse encouraged him much in the course of the
5173 evening, and showed an unusual liking for him. At last, when he rose to
5174 return to his hotel, and was a little doubtful whether he knew the way by
5175 night, the whelp immediately proffered his services as guide, and turned
5176 out with him to escort him thither.
5177
5178 [Picture: Mr. Harthouse dines at the Bounderby’s]
5179
5180
5181
5182 CHAPTER III
5183 THE WHELP
5184
5185
5186 IT was very remarkable that a young gentleman who had been brought up
5187 under one continuous system of unnatural restraint, should be a
5188 hypocrite; but it was certainly the case with Tom. It was very strange
5189 that a young gentleman who had never been left to his own guidance for
5190 five consecutive minutes, should be incapable at last of governing
5191 himself; but so it was with Tom. It was altogether unaccountable that a
5192 young gentleman whose imagination had been strangled in his cradle,
5193 should be still inconvenienced by its ghost in the form of grovelling
5194 sensualities; but such a monster, beyond all doubt, was Tom.
5195
5196 ‘Do you smoke?’ asked Mr. James Harthouse, when they came to the hotel.
5197
5198 ‘I believe you!’ said Tom.
5199
5200 He could do no less than ask Tom up; and Tom could do no less than go up.
5201 What with a cooling drink adapted to the weather, but not so weak as
5202 cool; and what with a rarer tobacco than was to be bought in those parts;
5203 Tom was soon in a highly free and easy state at his end of the sofa, and
5204 more than ever disposed to admire his new friend at the other end.
5205
5206 Tom blew his smoke aside, after he had been smoking a little while, and
5207 took an observation of his friend. ‘He don’t seem to care about his
5208 dress,’ thought Tom, ‘and yet how capitally he does it. What an easy
5209 swell he is!’
5210
5211 Mr. James Harthouse, happening to catch Tom’s eye, remarked that he drank
5212 nothing, and filled his glass with his own negligent hand.
5213
5214 ‘Thank’ee,’ said Tom. ‘Thank’ee. Well, Mr. Harthouse, I hope you have
5215 had about a dose of old Bounderby to-night.’ Tom said this with one eye
5216 shut up again, and looking over his glass knowingly, at his entertainer.
5217
5218 ‘A very good fellow indeed!’ returned Mr. James Harthouse.
5219
5220 ‘You think so, don’t you?’ said Tom. And shut up his eye again.
5221
5222 Mr. James Harthouse smiled; and rising from his end of the sofa, and
5223 lounging with his back against the chimney-piece, so that he stood before
5224 the empty fire-grate as he smoked, in front of Tom and looking down at
5225 him, observed:
5226
5227 ‘What a comical brother-in-law you are!’
5228
5229 ‘What a comical brother-in-law old Bounderby is, I think you mean,’ said
5230 Tom.
5231
5232 ‘You are a piece of caustic, Tom,’ retorted Mr. James Harthouse.
5233
5234 There was something so very agreeable in being so intimate with such a
5235 waistcoat; in being called Tom, in such an intimate way, by such a voice;
5236 in being on such off-hand terms so soon, with such a pair of whiskers;
5237 that Tom was uncommonly pleased with himself.
5238
5239 ‘Oh! I don’t care for old Bounderby,’ said he, ‘if you mean that. I
5240 have always called old Bounderby by the same name when I have talked
5241 about him, and I have always thought of him in the same way. I am not
5242 going to begin to be polite now, about old Bounderby. It would be rather
5243 late in the day.’
5244
5245 ‘Don’t mind me,’ returned James; ‘but take care when his wife is by, you
5246 know.’
5247
5248 ‘His wife?’ said Tom. ‘My sister Loo? O yes!’ And he laughed, and took
5249 a little more of the cooling drink.
5250
5251 James Harthouse continued to lounge in the same place and attitude,
5252 smoking his cigar in his own easy way, and looking pleasantly at the
5253 whelp, as if he knew himself to be a kind of agreeable demon who had only
5254 to hover over him, and he must give up his whole soul if required. It
5255 certainly did seem that the whelp yielded to this influence. He looked
5256 at his companion sneakingly, he looked at him admiringly, he looked at
5257 him boldly, and put up one leg on the sofa.
5258
5259 ‘My sister Loo?’ said Tom. ‘_She_ never cared for old Bounderby.’
5260
5261 ‘That’s the past tense, Tom,’ returned Mr. James Harthouse, striking the
5262 ash from his cigar with his little finger. ‘We are in the present tense,
5263 now.’
5264
5265 ‘Verb neuter, not to care. Indicative mood, present tense. First person
5266 singular, I do not care; second person singular, thou dost not care;
5267 third person singular, she does not care,’ returned Tom.
5268
5269 ‘Good! Very quaint!’ said his friend. ‘Though you don’t mean it.’
5270
5271 ‘But I _do_ mean it,’ cried Tom. ‘Upon my honour! Why, you won’t tell
5272 me, Mr. Harthouse, that you really suppose my sister Loo does care for
5273 old Bounderby.’
5274
5275 ‘My dear fellow,’ returned the other, ‘what am I bound to suppose, when I
5276 find two married people living in harmony and happiness?’
5277
5278 Tom had by this time got both his legs on the sofa. If his second leg
5279 had not been already there when he was called a dear fellow, he would
5280 have put it up at that great stage of the conversation. Feeling it
5281 necessary to do something then, he stretched himself out at greater
5282 length, and, reclining with the back of his head on the end of the sofa,
5283 and smoking with an infinite assumption of negligence, turned his common
5284 face, and not too sober eyes, towards the face looking down upon him so
5285 carelessly yet so potently.
5286
5287 ‘You know our governor, Mr. Harthouse,’ said Tom, ‘and therefore, you
5288 needn’t be surprised that Loo married old Bounderby. She never had a
5289 lover, and the governor proposed old Bounderby, and she took him.’
5290
5291 ‘Very dutiful in your interesting sister,’ said Mr. James Harthouse.
5292
5293 ‘Yes, but she wouldn’t have been as dutiful, and it would not have come
5294 off as easily,’ returned the whelp, ‘if it hadn’t been for me.’
5295
5296 The tempter merely lifted his eyebrows; but the whelp was obliged to go
5297 on.
5298
5299 ‘_I_ persuaded her,’ he said, with an edifying air of superiority. ‘I
5300 was stuck into old Bounderby’s bank (where I never wanted to be), and I
5301 knew I should get into scrapes there, if she put old Bounderby’s pipe
5302 out; so I told her my wishes, and she came into them. She would do
5303 anything for me. It was very game of her, wasn’t it?’
5304
5305 ‘It was charming, Tom!’
5306
5307 ‘Not that it was altogether so important to her as it was to me,’
5308 continued Tom coolly, ‘because my liberty and comfort, and perhaps my
5309 getting on, depended on it; and she had no other lover, and staying at
5310 home was like staying in jail—especially when I was gone. It wasn’t as
5311 if she gave up another lover for old Bounderby; but still it was a good
5312 thing in her.’
5313
5314 ‘Perfectly delightful. And she gets on so placidly.’
5315
5316 ‘Oh,’ returned Tom, with contemptuous patronage, ‘she’s a regular girl.
5317 A girl can get on anywhere. She has settled down to the life, and _she_
5318 don’t mind. It does just as well as another. Besides, though Loo is a
5319 girl, she’s not a common sort of girl. She can shut herself up within
5320 herself, and think—as I have often known her sit and watch the fire—for
5321 an hour at a stretch.’
5322
5323 ‘Ay, ay? Has resources of her own,’ said Harthouse, smoking quietly.
5324
5325 ‘Not so much of that as you may suppose,’ returned Tom; ‘for our governor
5326 had her crammed with all sorts of dry bones and sawdust. It’s his
5327 system.’
5328
5329 ‘Formed his daughter on his own model?’ suggested Harthouse.
5330
5331 ‘His daughter? Ah! and everybody else. Why, he formed Me that way!’
5332 said Tom.
5333
5334 ‘Impossible!’
5335
5336 ‘He did, though,’ said Tom, shaking his head. ‘I mean to say, Mr.
5337 Harthouse, that when I first left home and went to old Bounderby’s, I was
5338 as flat as a warming-pan, and knew no more about life, than any oyster
5339 does.’
5340
5341 ‘Come, Tom! I can hardly believe that. A joke’s a joke.’
5342
5343 ‘Upon my soul!’ said the whelp. ‘I am serious; I am indeed!’ He smoked
5344 with great gravity and dignity for a little while, and then added, in a
5345 highly complacent tone, ‘Oh! I have picked up a little since. I don’t
5346 deny that. But I have done it myself; no thanks to the governor.’
5347
5348 ‘And your intelligent sister?’
5349
5350 ‘My intelligent sister is about where she was. She used to complain to
5351 me that she had nothing to fall back upon, that girls usually fall back
5352 upon; and I don’t see how she is to have got over that since. But _she_
5353 don’t mind,’ he sagaciously added, puffing at his cigar again. ‘Girls
5354 can always get on, somehow.’
5355
5356 ‘Calling at the Bank yesterday evening, for Mr. Bounderby’s address, I
5357 found an ancient lady there, who seems to entertain great admiration for
5358 your sister,’ observed Mr. James Harthouse, throwing away the last small
5359 remnant of the cigar he had now smoked out.
5360
5361 ‘Mother Sparsit!’ said Tom. ‘What! you have seen her already, have you?’
5362
5363 His friend nodded. Tom took his cigar out of his mouth, to shut up his
5364 eye (which had grown rather unmanageable) with the greater expression,
5365 and to tap his nose several times with his finger.
5366
5367 ‘Mother Sparsit’s feeling for Loo is more than admiration, I should
5368 think,’ said Tom. ‘Say affection and devotion. Mother Sparsit never set
5369 her cap at Bounderby when he was a bachelor. Oh no!’
5370
5371 These were the last words spoken by the whelp, before a giddy drowsiness
5372 came upon him, followed by complete oblivion. He was roused from the
5373 latter state by an uneasy dream of being stirred up with a boot, and also
5374 of a voice saying: ‘Come, it’s late. Be off!’
5375
5376 ‘Well!’ he said, scrambling from the sofa. ‘I must take my leave of you
5377 though. I say. Yours is very good tobacco. But it’s too mild.’
5378
5379 ‘Yes, it’s too mild,’ returned his entertainer.
5380
5381 ‘It’s—it’s ridiculously mild,’ said Tom. ‘Where’s the door! Good
5382 night!’
5383
5384 ‘He had another odd dream of being taken by a waiter through a mist,
5385 which, after giving him some trouble and difficulty, resolved itself into
5386 the main street, in which he stood alone. He then walked home pretty
5387 easily, though not yet free from an impression of the presence and
5388 influence of his new friend—as if he were lounging somewhere in the air,
5389 in the same negligent attitude, regarding him with the same look.
5390
5391 The whelp went home, and went to bed. If he had had any sense of what he
5392 had done that night, and had been less of a whelp and more of a brother,
5393 he might have turned short on the road, might have gone down to the
5394 ill-smelling river that was dyed black, might have gone to bed in it for
5395 good and all, and have curtained his head for ever with its filthy
5396 waters.
5397
5398
5399
5400 CHAPTER IV
5401 MEN AND BROTHERS
5402
5403
5404 ‘OH, my friends, the down-trodden operatives of Coketown! Oh, my friends
5405 and fellow-countrymen, the slaves of an iron-handed and a grinding
5406 despotism! Oh, my friends and fellow-sufferers, and fellow-workmen, and
5407 fellow-men! I tell you that the hour is come, when we must rally round
5408 one another as One united power, and crumble into dust the oppressors
5409 that too long have battened upon the plunder of our families, upon the
5410 sweat of our brows, upon the labour of our hands, upon the strength of
5411 our sinews, upon the God-created glorious rights of Humanity, and upon
5412 the holy and eternal privileges of Brotherhood!’
5413
5414 ‘Good!’ ‘Hear, hear, hear!’ ‘Hurrah!’ and other cries, arose in many
5415 voices from various parts of the densely crowded and suffocatingly close
5416 Hall, in which the orator, perched on a stage, delivered himself of this
5417 and what other froth and fume he had in him. He had declaimed himself
5418 into a violent heat, and was as hoarse as he was hot. By dint of roaring
5419 at the top of his voice under a flaring gaslight, clenching his fists,
5420 knitting his brows, setting his teeth, and pounding with his arms, he had
5421 taken so much out of himself by this time, that he was brought to a stop,
5422 and called for a glass of water.
5423
5424 As he stood there, trying to quench his fiery face with his drink of
5425 water, the comparison between the orator and the crowd of attentive faces
5426 turned towards him, was extremely to his disadvantage. Judging him by
5427 Nature’s evidence, he was above the mass in very little but the stage on
5428 which he stood. In many great respects he was essentially below them.
5429 He was not so honest, he was not so manly, he was not so good-humoured;
5430 he substituted cunning for their simplicity, and passion for their safe
5431 solid sense. An ill-made, high-shouldered man, with lowering brows, and
5432 his features crushed into an habitually sour expression, he contrasted
5433 most unfavourably, even in his mongrel dress, with the great body of his
5434 hearers in their plain working clothes. Strange as it always is to
5435 consider any assembly in the act of submissively resigning itself to the
5436 dreariness of some complacent person, lord or commoner, whom
5437 three-fourths of it could, by no human means, raise out of the slough of
5438 inanity to their own intellectual level, it was particularly strange, and
5439 it was even particularly affecting, to see this crowd of earnest faces,
5440 whose honesty in the main no competent observer free from bias could
5441 doubt, so agitated by such a leader.
5442
5443 Good! Hear, hear! Hurrah! The eagerness both of attention and
5444 intention, exhibited in all the countenances, made them a most impressive
5445 sight. There was no carelessness, no languor, no idle curiosity; none of
5446 the many shades of indifference to be seen in all other assemblies,
5447 visible for one moment there. That every man felt his condition to be,
5448 somehow or other, worse than it might be; that every man considered it
5449 incumbent on him to join the rest, towards the making of it better; that
5450 every man felt his only hope to be in his allying himself to the comrades
5451 by whom he was surrounded; and that in this belief, right or wrong
5452 (unhappily wrong then), the whole of that crowd were gravely, deeply,
5453 faithfully in earnest; must have been as plain to any one who chose to
5454 see what was there, as the bare beams of the roof and the whitened brick
5455 walls. Nor could any such spectator fail to know in his own breast, that
5456 these men, through their very delusions, showed great qualities,
5457 susceptible of being turned to the happiest and best account; and that to
5458 pretend (on the strength of sweeping axioms, howsoever cut and dried)
5459 that they went astray wholly without cause, and of their own irrational
5460 wills, was to pretend that there could be smoke without fire, death
5461 without birth, harvest without seed, anything or everything produced from
5462 nothing.
5463
5464 The orator having refreshed himself, wiped his corrugated forehead from
5465 left to right several times with his handkerchief folded into a pad, and
5466 concentrated all his revived forces, in a sneer of great disdain and
5467 bitterness.
5468
5469 ‘But oh, my friends and brothers! Oh, men and Englishmen, the
5470 down-trodden operatives of Coketown! What shall we say of that man—that
5471 working-man, that I should find it necessary so to libel the glorious
5472 name—who, being practically and well acquainted with the grievances and
5473 wrongs of you, the injured pith and marrow of this land, and having heard
5474 you, with a noble and majestic unanimity that will make Tyrants tremble,
5475 resolve for to subscribe to the funds of the United Aggregate Tribunal,
5476 and to abide by the injunctions issued by that body for your benefit,
5477 whatever they may be—what, I ask you, will you say of that working-man,
5478 since such I must acknowledge him to be, who, at such a time, deserts his
5479 post, and sells his flag; who, at such a time, turns a traitor and a
5480 craven and a recreant, who, at such a time, is not ashamed to make to you
5481 the dastardly and humiliating avowal that he will hold himself aloof, and
5482 will _not_ be one of those associated in the gallant stand for Freedom
5483 and for Right?’
5484
5485 The assembly was divided at this point. There were some groans and
5486 hisses, but the general sense of honour was much too strong for the
5487 condemnation of a man unheard. ‘Be sure you’re right, Slackbridge!’
5488 ‘Put him up!’ ‘Let’s hear him!’ Such things were said on many sides.
5489 Finally, one strong voice called out, ‘Is the man heer? If the man’s
5490 heer, Slackbridge, let’s hear the man himseln, ’stead o’ yo.’ Which was
5491 received with a round of applause.
5492
5493 Slackbridge, the orator, looked about him with a withering smile; and,
5494 holding out his right hand at arm’s length (as the manner of all
5495 Slackbridges is), to still the thundering sea, waited until there was a
5496 profound silence.
5497
5498 ‘Oh, my friends and fellow-men!’ said Slackbridge then, shaking his head
5499 with violent scorn, ‘I do not wonder that you, the prostrate sons of
5500 labour, are incredulous of the existence of such a man. But he who sold
5501 his birthright for a mess of pottage existed, and Judas Iscariot existed,
5502 and Castlereagh existed, and this man exists!’
5503
5504 Here, a brief press and confusion near the stage, ended in the man
5505 himself standing at the orator’s side before the concourse. He was pale
5506 and a little moved in the face—his lips especially showed it; but he
5507 stood quiet, with his left hand at his chin, waiting to be heard. There
5508 was a chairman to regulate the proceedings, and this functionary now took
5509 the case into his own hands.
5510
5511 ‘My friends,’ said he, ‘by virtue o’ my office as your president, I askes
5512 o’ our friend Slackbridge, who may be a little over hetter in this
5513 business, to take his seat, whiles this man Stephen Blackpool is heern.
5514 You all know this man Stephen Blackpool. You know him awlung o’ his
5515 misfort’ns, and his good name.’
5516
5517 With that, the chairman shook him frankly by the hand, and sat down
5518 again. Slackbridge likewise sat down, wiping his hot forehead—always
5519 from left to right, and never the reverse way.
5520
5521 ‘My friends,’ Stephen began, in the midst of a dead calm; ‘I ha’ hed
5522 what’s been spok’n o’ me, and ’tis lickly that I shan’t mend it. But I’d
5523 liefer you’d hearn the truth concernin myseln, fro my lips than fro onny
5524 other man’s, though I never cud’n speak afore so monny, wi’out bein
5525 moydert and muddled.’
5526
5527 Slackbridge shook his head as if he would shake it off, in his
5528 bitterness.
5529
5530 ‘I’m th’ one single Hand in Bounderby’s mill, o’ a’ the men theer, as
5531 don’t coom in wi’ th’ proposed reg’lations. I canna coom in wi’ ’em. My
5532 friends, I doubt their doin’ yo onny good. Licker they’ll do yo hurt.’
5533
5534 Slackbridge laughed, folded his arms, and frowned sarcastically.
5535
5536 ‘But ’t an’t sommuch for that as I stands out. If that were aw, I’d coom
5537 in wi’ th’ rest. But I ha’ my reasons—mine, yo see—for being hindered;
5538 not on’y now, but awlus—awlus—life long!’
5539
5540 Slackbridge jumped up and stood beside him, gnashing and tearing. ‘Oh,
5541 my friends, what but this did I tell you? Oh, my fellow-countrymen, what
5542 warning but this did I give you? And how shows this recreant conduct in
5543 a man on whom unequal laws are known to have fallen heavy? Oh, you
5544 Englishmen, I ask you how does this subornation show in one of
5545 yourselves, who is thus consenting to his own undoing and to yours, and
5546 to your children’s and your children’s children’s?’
5547
5548 There was some applause, and some crying of Shame upon the man; but the
5549 greater part of the audience were quiet. They looked at Stephen’s worn
5550 face, rendered more pathetic by the homely emotions it evinced; and, in
5551 the kindness of their nature, they were more sorry than indignant.
5552
5553 ‘’Tis this Delegate’s trade for t’ speak,’ said Stephen, ‘an’ he’s paid
5554 for ’t, an’ he knows his work. Let him keep to ’t. Let him give no heed
5555 to what I ha had’n to bear. That’s not for him. That’s not for nobbody
5556 but me.’
5557
5558 There was a propriety, not to say a dignity in these words, that made the
5559 hearers yet more quiet and attentive. The same strong voice called out,
5560 ‘Slackbridge, let the man be heern, and howd thee tongue!’ Then the
5561 place was wonderfully still.
5562
5563 ‘My brothers,’ said Stephen, whose low voice was distinctly heard, ‘and
5564 my fellow-workmen—for that yo are to me, though not, as I knows on, to
5565 this delegate here—I ha but a word to sen, and I could sen nommore if I
5566 was to speak till Strike o’ day. I know weel, aw what’s afore me. I
5567 know weel that yo aw resolve to ha nommore ado wi’ a man who is not wi’
5568 yo in this matther. I know weel that if I was a lyin parisht i’ th’
5569 road, yo’d feel it right to pass me by, as a forrenner and stranger.
5570 What I ha getn, I mun mak th’ best on.’
5571
5572 ‘Stephen Blackpool,’ said the chairman, rising, ‘think on ’t agen. Think
5573 on ’t once agen, lad, afore thou’rt shunned by aw owd friends.’
5574
5575 There was an universal murmur to the same effect, though no man
5576 articulated a word. Every eye was fixed on Stephen’s face. To repent of
5577 his determination, would be to take a load from all their minds. He
5578 looked around him, and knew that it was so. Not a grain of anger with
5579 them was in his heart; he knew them, far below their surface weaknesses
5580 and misconceptions, as no one but their fellow-labourer could.
5581
5582 ‘I ha thowt on ’t, above a bit, sir. I simply canna coom in. I mun go
5583 th’ way as lays afore me. I mun tak my leave o’ aw heer.’
5584
5585 He made a sort of reverence to them by holding up his arms, and stood for
5586 the moment in that attitude; not speaking until they slowly dropped at
5587 his sides.
5588
5589 ‘Monny’s the pleasant word as soom heer has spok’n wi’ me; monny’s the
5590 face I see heer, as I first seen when I were yoong and lighter heart’n
5591 than now. I ha’ never had no fratch afore, sin ever I were born, wi’ any
5592 o’ my like; Gonnows I ha’ none now that’s o’ my makin’. Yo’ll ca’ me
5593 traitor and that—yo I mean t’ say,’ addressing Slackbridge, ‘but ’tis
5594 easier to ca’ than mak’ out. So let be.’
5595
5596 He had moved away a pace or two to come down from the platform, when he
5597 remembered something he had not said, and returned again.
5598
5599 ‘Haply,’ he said, turning his furrowed face slowly about, that he might
5600 as it were individually address the whole audience, those both near and
5601 distant; ‘haply, when this question has been tak’n up and discoosed,
5602 there’ll be a threat to turn out if I’m let to work among yo. I hope I
5603 shall die ere ever such a time cooms, and I shall work solitary among yo
5604 unless it cooms—truly, I mun do ’t, my friends; not to brave yo, but to
5605 live. I ha nobbut work to live by; and wheerever can I go, I who ha
5606 worked sin I were no heighth at aw, in Coketown heer? I mak’ no
5607 complaints o’ bein turned to the wa’, o’ bein outcasten and overlooken
5608 fro this time forrard, but hope I shall be let to work. If there is any
5609 right for me at aw, my friends, I think ’tis that.’
5610
5611 Not a word was spoken. Not a sound was audible in the building, but the
5612 slight rustle of men moving a little apart, all along the centre of the
5613 room, to open a means of passing out, to the man with whom they had all
5614 bound themselves to renounce companionship. Looking at no one, and going
5615 his way with a lowly steadiness upon him that asserted nothing and sought
5616 nothing, Old Stephen, with all his troubles on his head, left the scene.
5617
5618 Then Slackbridge, who had kept his oratorical arm extended during the
5619 going out, as if he were repressing with infinite solicitude and by a
5620 wonderful moral power the vehement passions of the multitude, applied
5621 himself to raising their spirits. Had not the Roman Brutus, oh, my
5622 British countrymen, condemned his son to death; and had not the Spartan
5623 mothers, oh my soon to be victorious friends, driven their flying
5624 children on the points of their enemies’ swords? Then was it not the
5625 sacred duty of the men of Coketown, with forefathers before them, an
5626 admiring world in company with them, and a posterity to come after them,
5627 to hurl out traitors from the tents they had pitched in a sacred and a
5628 God-like cause? The winds of heaven answered Yes; and bore Yes, east,
5629 west, north, and south. And consequently three cheers for the United
5630 Aggregate Tribunal!
5631
5632 Slackbridge acted as fugleman, and gave the time. The multitude of
5633 doubtful faces (a little conscience-stricken) brightened at the sound,
5634 and took it up. Private feeling must yield to the common cause. Hurrah!
5635 The roof yet vibrated with the cheering, when the assembly dispersed.
5636
5637 Thus easily did Stephen Blackpool fall into the loneliest of lives, the
5638 life of solitude among a familiar crowd. The stranger in the land who
5639 looks into ten thousand faces for some answering look and never finds it,
5640 is in cheering society as compared with him who passes ten averted faces
5641 daily, that were once the countenances of friends. Such experience was
5642 to be Stephen’s now, in every waking moment of his life; at his work, on
5643 his way to it and from it, at his door, at his window, everywhere. By
5644 general consent, they even avoided that side of the street on which he
5645 habitually walked; and left it, of all the working men, to him only.
5646
5647 He had been for many years, a quiet silent man, associating but little
5648 with other men, and used to companionship with his own thoughts. He had
5649 never known before the strength of the want in his heart for the frequent
5650 recognition of a nod, a look, a word; or the immense amount of relief
5651 that had been poured into it by drops through such small means. It was
5652 even harder than he could have believed possible, to separate in his own
5653 conscience his abandonment by all his fellows from a baseless sense of
5654 shame and disgrace.
5655
5656 The first four days of his endurance were days so long and heavy, that he
5657 began to be appalled by the prospect before him. Not only did he see no
5658 Rachael all the time, but he avoided every chance of seeing her; for,
5659 although he knew that the prohibition did not yet formally extend to the
5660 women working in the factories, he found that some of them with whom he
5661 was acquainted were changed to him, and he feared to try others, and
5662 dreaded that Rachael might be even singled out from the rest if she were
5663 seen in his company. So, he had been quite alone during the four days,
5664 and had spoken to no one, when, as he was leaving his work at night, a
5665 young man of a very light complexion accosted him in the street.
5666
5667 ‘Your name’s Blackpool, ain’t it?’ said the young man.
5668
5669 Stephen coloured to find himself with his hat in his hand, in his
5670 gratitude for being spoken to, or in the suddenness of it, or both. He
5671 made a feint of adjusting the lining, and said, ‘Yes.’
5672
5673 ‘You are the Hand they have sent to Coventry, I mean?’ said Bitzer, the
5674 very light young man in question.
5675
5676 Stephen answered ‘Yes,’ again.
5677
5678 ‘I supposed so, from their all appearing to keep away from you. Mr.
5679 Bounderby wants to speak to you. You know his house, don’t you?’
5680
5681 Stephen said ‘Yes,’ again.
5682
5683 ‘Then go straight up there, will you?’ said Bitzer. ‘You’re expected,
5684 and have only to tell the servant it’s you. I belong to the Bank; so, if
5685 you go straight up without me (I was sent to fetch you), you’ll save me a
5686 walk.’
5687
5688 Stephen, whose way had been in the contrary direction, turned about, and
5689 betook himself as in duty bound, to the red brick castle of the giant
5690 Bounderby.
5691
5692
5693
5694 CHAPTER V
5695 MEN AND MASTERS
5696
5697
5698 ‘WELL, Stephen,’ said Bounderby, in his windy manner, ‘what’s this I
5699 hear? What have these pests of the earth been doing to _you_? Come in,
5700 and speak up.’
5701
5702 It was into the drawing-room that he was thus bidden. A tea-table was
5703 set out; and Mr. Bounderby’s young wife, and her brother, and a great
5704 gentleman from London, were present. To whom Stephen made his obeisance,
5705 closing the door and standing near it, with his hat in his hand.
5706
5707 ‘This is the man I was telling you about, Harthouse,’ said Mr. Bounderby.
5708 The gentleman he addressed, who was talking to Mrs. Bounderby on the
5709 sofa, got up, saying in an indolent way, ‘Oh really?’ and dawdled to the
5710 hearthrug where Mr. Bounderby stood.
5711
5712 ‘Now,’ said Bounderby, ‘speak up!’
5713
5714 After the four days he had passed, this address fell rudely and
5715 discordantly on Stephen’s ear. Besides being a rough handling of his
5716 wounded mind, it seemed to assume that he really was the self-interested
5717 deserter he had been called.
5718
5719 ‘What were it, sir,’ said Stephen, ‘as yo were pleased to want wi’ me?’
5720
5721 ‘Why, I have told you,’ returned Bounderby. ‘Speak up like a man, since
5722 you are a man, and tell us about yourself and this Combination.’
5723
5724 ‘Wi’ yor pardon, sir,’ said Stephen Blackpool, ‘I ha’ nowt to sen about
5725 it.’
5726
5727 Mr. Bounderby, who was always more or less like a Wind, finding something
5728 in his way here, began to blow at it directly.
5729
5730 ‘Now, look here, Harthouse,’ said he, ‘here’s a specimen of ’em. When
5731 this man was here once before, I warned this man against the mischievous
5732 strangers who are always about—and who ought to be hanged wherever they
5733 are found—and I told this man that he was going in the wrong direction.
5734 Now, would you believe it, that although they have put this mark upon
5735 him, he is such a slave to them still, that he’s afraid to open his lips
5736 about them?’
5737
5738 ‘I sed as I had nowt to sen, sir; not as I was fearfo’ o’ openin’ my
5739 lips.’
5740
5741 ‘You said! Ah! _I_ know what you said; more than that, I know what you
5742 mean, you see. Not always the same thing, by the Lord Harry! Quite
5743 different things. You had better tell us at once, that that fellow
5744 Slackbridge is not in the town, stirring up the people to mutiny; and
5745 that he is not a regular qualified leader of the people: that is, a most
5746 confounded scoundrel. You had better tell us so at once; you can’t
5747 deceive me. You want to tell us so. Why don’t you?’
5748
5749 ‘I’m as sooary as yo, sir, when the people’s leaders is bad,’ said
5750 Stephen, shaking his head. ‘They taks such as offers. Haply ’tis na’
5751 the sma’est o’ their misfortuns when they can get no better.’
5752
5753 The wind began to get boisterous.
5754
5755 ‘Now, you’ll think this pretty well, Harthouse,’ said Mr. Bounderby.
5756 ‘You’ll think this tolerably strong. You’ll say, upon my soul this is a
5757 tidy specimen of what my friends have to deal with; but this is nothing,
5758 sir! You shall hear me ask this man a question. Pray, Mr.
5759 Blackpool’—wind springing up very fast—‘may I take the liberty of asking
5760 you how it happens that you refused to be in this Combination?’
5761
5762 ‘How ’t happens?’
5763
5764 ‘Ah!’ said Mr. Bounderby, with his thumbs in the arms of his coat, and
5765 jerking his head and shutting his eyes in confidence with the opposite
5766 wall: ‘how it happens.’
5767
5768 ‘I’d leefer not coom to ’t, sir; but sin you put th’ question—an’ not
5769 want’n t’ be ill-manner’n—I’ll answer. I ha passed a promess.’
5770
5771 ‘Not to me, you know,’ said Bounderby. (Gusty weather with deceitful
5772 calms. One now prevailing.)
5773
5774 ‘O no, sir. Not to yo.’
5775
5776 ‘As for me, any consideration for me has had just nothing at all to do
5777 with it,’ said Bounderby, still in confidence with the wall. ‘If only
5778 Josiah Bounderby of Coketown had been in question, you would have joined
5779 and made no bones about it?’
5780
5781 ‘Why yes, sir. ’Tis true.’
5782
5783 ‘Though he knows,’ said Mr. Bounderby, now blowing a gale, ‘that there
5784 are a set of rascals and rebels whom transportation is too good for!
5785 Now, Mr. Harthouse, you have been knocking about in the world some time.
5786 Did you ever meet with anything like that man out of this blessed
5787 country?’ And Mr. Bounderby pointed him out for inspection, with an
5788 angry finger.
5789
5790 ‘Nay, ma’am,’ said Stephen Blackpool, staunchly protesting against the
5791 words that had been used, and instinctively addressing himself to Louisa,
5792 after glancing at her face. ‘Not rebels, nor yet rascals. Nowt o’ th’
5793 kind, ma’am, nowt o’ th’ kind. They’ve not doon me a kindness, ma’am, as
5794 I know and feel. But there’s not a dozen men amoong ’em, ma’am—a dozen?
5795 Not six—but what believes as he has doon his duty by the rest and by
5796 himseln. God forbid as I, that ha’ known, and had’n experience o’ these
5797 men aw my life—I, that ha’ ett’n an’ droonken wi’ ’em, an’ seet’n wi’
5798 ’em, and toil’n wi’ ’em, and lov’n ’em, should fail fur to stan by ’em
5799 wi’ the truth, let ’em ha’ doon to me what they may!’
5800
5801 He spoke with the rugged earnestness of his place and character—deepened
5802 perhaps by a proud consciousness that he was faithful to his class under
5803 all their mistrust; but he fully remembered where he was, and did not
5804 even raise his voice.
5805
5806 ‘No, ma’am, no. They’re true to one another, faithfo’ to one another,
5807 ’fectionate to one another, e’en to death. Be poor amoong ’em, be sick
5808 amoong ’em, grieve amoong ’em for onny o’ th’ monny causes that carries
5809 grief to the poor man’s door, an’ they’ll be tender wi’ yo, gentle wi’
5810 yo, comfortable wi’ yo, Chrisen wi’ yo. Be sure o’ that, ma’am. They’d
5811 be riven to bits, ere ever they’d be different.’
5812
5813 ‘In short,’ said Mr. Bounderby, ‘it’s because they are so full of virtues
5814 that they have turned you adrift. Go through with it while you are about
5815 it. Out with it.’
5816
5817 ‘How ’tis, ma’am,’ resumed Stephen, appearing still to find his natural
5818 refuge in Louisa’s face, ‘that what is best in us fok, seems to turn us
5819 most to trouble an’ misfort’n an’ mistake, I dunno. But ’tis so. I know
5820 ’tis, as I know the heavens is over me ahint the smoke. We’re patient
5821 too, an’ wants in general to do right. An’ I canna think the fawt is aw
5822 wi’ us.’
5823
5824 ‘Now, my friend,’ said Mr. Bounderby, whom he could not have exasperated
5825 more, quite unconscious of it though he was, than by seeming to appeal to
5826 any one else, ‘if you will favour me with your attention for half a
5827 minute, I should like to have a word or two with you. You said just now,
5828 that you had nothing to tell us about this business. You are quite sure
5829 of that before we go any further.’
5830
5831 ‘Sir, I am sure on ’t.’
5832
5833 ‘Here’s a gentleman from London present,’ Mr. Bounderby made a backhanded
5834 point at Mr. James Harthouse with his thumb, ‘a Parliament gentleman. I
5835 should like him to hear a short bit of dialogue between you and me,
5836 instead of taking the substance of it—for I know precious well,
5837 beforehand, what it will be; nobody knows better than I do, take
5838 notice!—instead of receiving it on trust from my mouth.’
5839
5840 Stephen bent his head to the gentleman from London, and showed a rather
5841 more troubled mind than usual. He turned his eyes involuntarily to his
5842 former refuge, but at a look from that quarter (expressive though
5843 instantaneous) he settled them on Mr. Bounderby’s face.
5844
5845 ‘Now, what do you complain of?’ asked Mr. Bounderby.
5846
5847 ‘I ha’ not coom here, sir,’ Stephen reminded him, ‘to complain. I coom
5848 for that I were sent for.’
5849
5850 ‘What,’ repeated Mr. Bounderby, folding his arms, ‘do you people, in a
5851 general way, complain of?’
5852
5853 Stephen looked at him with some little irresolution for a moment, and
5854 then seemed to make up his mind.
5855
5856 ‘Sir, I were never good at showin o ’t, though I ha had’n my share in
5857 feeling o ’t. ’Deed we are in a muddle, sir. Look round town—so rich as
5858 ’tis—and see the numbers o’ people as has been broughten into bein heer,
5859 fur to weave, an’ to card, an’ to piece out a livin’, aw the same one
5860 way, somehows, ’twixt their cradles and their graves. Look how we live,
5861 an’ wheer we live, an’ in what numbers, an’ by what chances, and wi’ what
5862 sameness; and look how the mills is awlus a goin, and how they never
5863 works us no nigher to ony dis’ant object—ceptin awlus, Death. Look how
5864 you considers of us, and writes of us, and talks of us, and goes up wi’
5865 yor deputations to Secretaries o’ State ’bout us, and how yo are awlus
5866 right, and how we are awlus wrong, and never had’n no reason in us sin
5867 ever we were born. Look how this ha growen an’ growen, sir, bigger an’
5868 bigger, broader an’ broader, harder an’ harder, fro year to year, fro
5869 generation unto generation. Who can look on ’t, sir, and fairly tell a
5870 man ’tis not a muddle?’
5871
5872 ‘Of course,’ said Mr. Bounderby. ‘Now perhaps you’ll let the gentleman
5873 know, how you would set this muddle (as you’re so fond of calling it) to
5874 rights.’
5875
5876 ‘I donno, sir. I canna be expecten to ’t. ’Tis not me as should be
5877 looken to for that, sir. ’Tis them as is put ower me, and ower aw the
5878 rest of us. What do they tak upon themseln, sir, if not to do’t?’
5879
5880 ‘I’ll tell you something towards it, at any rate,’ returned Mr.
5881 Bounderby. ‘We will make an example of half a dozen Slackbridges. We’ll
5882 indict the blackguards for felony, and get ’em shipped off to penal
5883 settlements.’
5884
5885 Stephen gravely shook his head.
5886
5887 ‘Don’t tell me we won’t, man,’ said Mr. Bounderby, by this time blowing a
5888 hurricane, ‘because we will, I tell you!’
5889
5890 ‘Sir,’ returned Stephen, with the quiet confidence of absolute certainty,
5891 ‘if yo was t’ tak a hundred Slackbridges—aw as there is, and aw the
5892 number ten times towd—an’ was t’ sew ’em up in separate sacks, an’ sink
5893 ’em in the deepest ocean as were made ere ever dry land coom to be, yo’d
5894 leave the muddle just wheer ’tis. Mischeevous strangers!’ said Stephen,
5895 with an anxious smile; ‘when ha we not heern, I am sure, sin ever we can
5896 call to mind, o’ th’ mischeevous strangers! ’Tis not by _them_ the
5897 trouble’s made, sir. ’Tis not wi’ _them_ ’t commences. I ha no favour
5898 for ’em—I ha no reason to favour ’em—but ’tis hopeless and useless to
5899 dream o’ takin them fro their trade, ’stead o’ takin their trade fro
5900 them! Aw that’s now about me in this room were heer afore I coom, an’
5901 will be heer when I am gone. Put that clock aboard a ship an’ pack it
5902 off to Norfolk Island, an’ the time will go on just the same. So ’tis
5903 wi’ Slackbridge every bit.’
5904
5905 Reverting for a moment to his former refuge, he observed a cautionary
5906 movement of her eyes towards the door. Stepping back, he put his hand
5907 upon the lock. But he had not spoken out of his own will and desire; and
5908 he felt it in his heart a noble return for his late injurious treatment
5909 to be faithful to the last to those who had repudiated him. He stayed to
5910 finish what was in his mind.
5911
5912 ‘Sir, I canna, wi’ my little learning an’ my common way, tell the
5913 genelman what will better aw this—though some working men o’ this town
5914 could, above my powers—but I can tell him what I know will never do ’t.
5915 The strong hand will never do ’t. Vict’ry and triumph will never do ’t.
5916 Agreeing fur to mak one side unnat’rally awlus and for ever right, and
5917 toother side unnat’rally awlus and for ever wrong, will never, never do
5918 ’t. Nor yet lettin alone will never do ’t. Let thousands upon thousands
5919 alone, aw leading the like lives and aw faw’en into the like muddle, and
5920 they will be as one, and yo will be as anoother, wi’ a black unpassable
5921 world betwixt yo, just as long or short a time as sich-like misery can
5922 last. Not drawin nigh to fok, wi’ kindness and patience an’ cheery ways,
5923 that so draws nigh to one another in their monny troubles, and so
5924 cherishes one another in their distresses wi’ what they need
5925 themseln—like, I humbly believe, as no people the genelman ha seen in aw
5926 his travels can beat—will never do ’t till th’ Sun turns t’ ice. Most o’
5927 aw, rating ’em as so much Power, and reg’latin ’em as if they was figures
5928 in a soom, or machines: wi’out loves and likens, wi’out memories and
5929 inclinations, wi’out souls to weary and souls to hope—when aw goes quiet,
5930 draggin on wi’ ’em as if they’d nowt o’ th’ kind, and when aw goes
5931 onquiet, reproachin ’em for their want o’ sitch humanly feelins in their
5932 dealins wi’ yo—this will never do ’t, sir, till God’s work is onmade.’
5933
5934 Stephen stood with the open door in his hand, waiting to know if anything
5935 more were expected of him.
5936
5937 ‘Just stop a moment,’ said Mr. Bounderby, excessively red in the face.
5938 ‘I told you, the last time you were here with a grievance, that you had
5939 better turn about and come out of that. And I also told you, if you
5940 remember, that I was up to the gold spoon look-out.’
5941
5942 ‘I were not up to ’t myseln, sir; I do assure yo.’
5943
5944 ‘Now it’s clear to me,’ said Mr. Bounderby, ‘that you are one of those
5945 chaps who have always got a grievance. And you go about, sowing it and
5946 raising crops. That’s the business of _your_ life, my friend.’
5947
5948 Stephen shook his head, mutely protesting that indeed he had other
5949 business to do for his life.
5950
5951 ‘You are such a waspish, raspish, ill-conditioned chap, you see,’ said
5952 Mr. Bounderby, ‘that even your own Union, the men who know you best, will
5953 have nothing to do with you. I never thought those fellows could be
5954 right in anything; but I tell you what! I so far go along with them for
5955 a novelty, that _I_’ll have nothing to do with you either.’
5956
5957 Stephen raised his eyes quickly to his face.
5958
5959 ‘You can finish off what you’re at,’ said Mr. Bounderby, with a meaning
5960 nod, ‘and then go elsewhere.’
5961
5962 ‘Sir, yo know weel,’ said Stephen expressively, ‘that if I canna get work
5963 wi’ yo, I canna get it elsewheer.’
5964
5965 The reply was, ‘What I know, I know; and what you know, you know. I have
5966 no more to say about it.’
5967
5968 Stephen glanced at Louisa again, but her eyes were raised to his no more;
5969 therefore, with a sigh, and saying, barely above his breath, ‘Heaven help
5970 us aw in this world!’ he departed.
5971
5972
5973
5974 CHAPTER VI
5975 FADING AWAY
5976
5977
5978 IT was falling dark when Stephen came out of Mr. Bounderby’s house. The
5979 shadows of night had gathered so fast, that he did not look about him
5980 when he closed the door, but plodded straight along the street. Nothing
5981 was further from his thoughts than the curious old woman he had
5982 encountered on his previous visit to the same house, when he heard a step
5983 behind him that he knew, and turning, saw her in Rachael’s company.
5984
5985 He saw Rachael first, as he had heard her only.
5986
5987 ‘Ah, Rachael, my dear! Missus, thou wi’ her!’
5988
5989 ‘Well, and now you are surprised to be sure, and with reason I must say,’
5990 the old woman returned. ‘Here I am again, you see.’
5991
5992 ‘But how wi’ Rachael?’ said Stephen, falling into their step, walking
5993 between them, and looking from the one to the other.
5994
5995 ‘Why, I come to be with this good lass pretty much as I came to be with
5996 you,’ said the old woman, cheerfully, taking the reply upon herself. ‘My
5997 visiting time is later this year than usual, for I have been rather
5998 troubled with shortness of breath, and so put it off till the weather was
5999 fine and warm. For the same reason I don’t make all my journey in one
6000 day, but divide it into two days, and get a bed to-night at the
6001 Travellers’ Coffee House down by the railroad (a nice clean house), and
6002 go back Parliamentary, at six in the morning. Well, but what has this to
6003 do with this good lass, says you? I’m going to tell you. I have heard
6004 of Mr. Bounderby being married. I read it in the paper, where it looked
6005 grand—oh, it looked fine!’ the old woman dwelt on it with strange
6006 enthusiasm: ‘and I want to see his wife. I have never seen her yet.
6007 Now, if you’ll believe me, she hasn’t come out of that house since noon
6008 to-day. So not to give her up too easily, I was waiting about, a little
6009 last bit more, when I passed close to this good lass two or three times;
6010 and her face being so friendly I spoke to her, and she spoke to me.
6011 There!’ said the old woman to Stephen, ‘you can make all the rest out for
6012 yourself now, a deal shorter than I can, I dare say!’
6013
6014 Once again, Stephen had to conquer an instinctive propensity to dislike
6015 this old woman, though her manner was as honest and simple as a manner
6016 possibly could be. With a gentleness that was as natural to him as he
6017 knew it to be to Rachael, he pursued the subject that interested her in
6018 her old age.
6019
6020 ‘Well, missus,’ said he, ‘I ha seen the lady, and she were young and
6021 hansom. Wi’ fine dark thinkin eyes, and a still way, Rachael, as I ha
6022 never seen the like on.’
6023
6024 ‘Young and handsome. Yes!’ cried the old woman, quite delighted. ‘As
6025 bonny as a rose! And what a happy wife!’
6026
6027 ‘Aye, missus, I suppose she be,’ said Stephen. But with a doubtful
6028 glance at Rachael.
6029
6030 ‘Suppose she be? She must be. She’s your master’s wife,’ returned the
6031 old woman.
6032
6033 Stephen nodded assent. ‘Though as to master,’ said he, glancing again at
6034 Rachael, ‘not master onny more. That’s aw enden ’twixt him and me.’
6035
6036 ‘Have you left his work, Stephen?’ asked Rachael, anxiously and quickly.
6037
6038 ‘Why, Rachael,’ he replied, ‘whether I ha lef’n his work, or whether his
6039 work ha lef’n me, cooms t’ th’ same. His work and me are parted. ’Tis
6040 as weel so—better, I were thinkin when yo coom up wi’ me. It would ha
6041 brought’n trouble upon trouble if I had stayed theer. Haply ’tis a
6042 kindness to monny that I go; haply ’tis a kindness to myseln; anyways it
6043 mun be done. I mun turn my face fro Coketown fur th’ time, and seek a
6044 fort’n, dear, by beginnin fresh.’
6045
6046 ‘Where will you go, Stephen?’
6047
6048 ‘I donno t’night,’ said he, lifting off his hat, and smoothing his thin
6049 hair with the flat of his hand. ‘But I’m not goin t’night, Rachael, nor
6050 yet t’morrow. ’Tan’t easy overmuch t’ know wheer t’ turn, but a good
6051 heart will coom to me.’
6052
6053 Herein, too, the sense of even thinking unselfishly aided him. Before he
6054 had so much as closed Mr. Bounderby’s door, he had reflected that at
6055 least his being obliged to go away was good for her, as it would save her
6056 from the chance of being brought into question for not withdrawing from
6057 him. Though it would cost him a hard pang to leave her, and though he
6058 could think of no similar place in which his condemnation would not
6059 pursue him, perhaps it was almost a relief to be forced away from the
6060 endurance of the last four days, even to unknown difficulties and
6061 distresses.
6062
6063 So he said, with truth, ‘I’m more leetsome, Rachael, under ’t, than I
6064 could’n ha believed.’ It was not her part to make his burden heavier.
6065 She answered with her comforting smile, and the three walked on together.
6066
6067 Age, especially when it strives to be self-reliant and cheerful, finds
6068 much consideration among the poor. The old woman was so decent and
6069 contented, and made so light of her infirmities, though they had
6070 increased upon her since her former interview with Stephen, that they
6071 both took an interest in her. She was too sprightly to allow of their
6072 walking at a slow pace on her account, but she was very grateful to be
6073 talked to, and very willing to talk to any extent: so, when they came to
6074 their part of the town, she was more brisk and vivacious than ever.
6075
6076 ‘Come to my poor place, missus,’ said Stephen, ‘and tak a coop o’ tea.
6077 Rachael will coom then; and arterwards I’ll see thee safe t’ thy
6078 Travellers’ lodgin. ’T may be long, Rachael, ere ever I ha th’ chance o’
6079 thy coompany agen.’
6080
6081 They complied, and the three went on to the house where he lodged. When
6082 they turned into a narrow street, Stephen glanced at his window with a
6083 dread that always haunted his desolate home; but it was open, as he had
6084 left it, and no one was there. The evil spirit of his life had flitted
6085 away again, months ago, and he had heard no more of her since. The only
6086 evidence of her last return now, were the scantier moveables in his room,
6087 and the grayer hair upon his head.
6088
6089 He lighted a candle, set out his little tea-board, got hot water from
6090 below, and brought in small portions of tea and sugar, a loaf, and some
6091 butter from the nearest shop. The bread was new and crusty, the butter
6092 fresh, and the sugar lump, of course—in fulfilment of the standard
6093 testimony of the Coketown magnates, that these people lived like princes,
6094 sir. Rachael made the tea (so large a party necessitated the borrowing
6095 of a cup), and the visitor enjoyed it mightily. It was the first glimpse
6096 of sociality the host had had for many days. He too, with the world a
6097 wide heath before him, enjoyed the meal—again in corroboration of the
6098 magnates, as exemplifying the utter want of calculation on the part of
6099 these people, sir.
6100
6101 ‘I ha never thowt yet, missus,’ said Stephen, ‘o’ askin thy name.’
6102
6103 The old lady announced herself as ‘Mrs. Pegler.’
6104
6105 ‘A widder, I think?’ said Stephen.
6106
6107 ‘Oh, many long years!’ Mrs. Pegler’s husband (one of the best on record)
6108 was already dead, by Mrs. Pegler’s calculation, when Stephen was born.
6109
6110 ‘’Twere a bad job, too, to lose so good a one,’ said Stephen. ‘Onny
6111 children?’
6112
6113 Mrs. Pegler’s cup, rattling against her saucer as she held it, denoted
6114 some nervousness on her part. ‘No,’ she said. ‘Not now, not now.’
6115
6116 ‘Dead, Stephen,’ Rachael softly hinted.
6117
6118 ‘I’m sooary I ha spok’n on ’t,’ said Stephen, ‘I ought t’ hadn in my mind
6119 as I might touch a sore place. I—I blame myseln.’
6120
6121 While he excused himself, the old lady’s cup rattled more and more. ‘I
6122 had a son,’ she said, curiously distressed, and not by any of the usual
6123 appearances of sorrow; ‘and he did well, wonderfully well. But he is not
6124 to be spoken of if you please. He is—’ Putting down her cup, she moved
6125 her hands as if she would have added, by her action, ‘dead!’ Then she
6126 said aloud, ‘I have lost him.’
6127
6128 Stephen had not yet got the better of his having given the old lady pain,
6129 when his landlady came stumbling up the narrow stairs, and calling him to
6130 the door, whispered in his ear. Mrs. Pegler was by no means deaf, for
6131 she caught a word as it was uttered.
6132
6133 ‘Bounderby!’ she cried, in a suppressed voice, starting up from the
6134 table. ‘Oh hide me! Don’t let me be seen for the world. Don’t let him
6135 come up till I’ve got away. Pray, pray!’ She trembled, and was
6136 excessively agitated; getting behind Rachael, when Rachael tried to
6137 reassure her; and not seeming to know what she was about.
6138
6139 ‘But hearken, missus, hearken,’ said Stephen, astonished. ‘’Tisn’t Mr.
6140 Bounderby; ’tis his wife. Yo’r not fearfo’ o’ her. Yo was hey-go-mad
6141 about her, but an hour sin.’
6142
6143 ‘But are you sure it’s the lady, and not the gentleman?’ she asked, still
6144 trembling.
6145
6146 ‘Certain sure!’
6147
6148 ‘Well then, pray don’t speak to me, nor yet take any notice of me,’ said
6149 the old woman. ‘Let me be quite to myself in this corner.’
6150
6151 Stephen nodded; looking to Rachael for an explanation, which she was
6152 quite unable to give him; took the candle, went downstairs, and in a few
6153 moments returned, lighting Louisa into the room. She was followed by the
6154 whelp.
6155
6156 Rachael had risen, and stood apart with her shawl and bonnet in her hand,
6157 when Stephen, himself profoundly astonished by this visit, put the candle
6158 on the table. Then he too stood, with his doubled hand upon the table
6159 near it, waiting to be addressed.
6160
6161 For the first time in her life Louisa had come into one of the dwellings
6162 of the Coketown Hands; for the first time in her life she was face to
6163 face with anything like individuality in connection with them. She knew
6164 of their existence by hundreds and by thousands. She knew what results
6165 in work a given number of them would produce in a given space of time.
6166 She knew them in crowds passing to and from their nests, like ants or
6167 beetles. But she knew from her reading infinitely more of the ways of
6168 toiling insects than of these toiling men and women.
6169
6170 Something to be worked so much and paid so much, and there ended;
6171 something to be infallibly settled by laws of supply and demand;
6172 something that blundered against those laws, and floundered into
6173 difficulty; something that was a little pinched when wheat was dear, and
6174 over-ate itself when wheat was cheap; something that increased at such a
6175 rate of percentage, and yielded such another percentage of crime, and
6176 such another percentage of pauperism; something wholesale, of which vast
6177 fortunes were made; something that occasionally rose like a sea, and did
6178 some harm and waste (chiefly to itself), and fell again; this she knew
6179 the Coketown Hands to be. But, she had scarcely thought more of
6180 separating them into units, than of separating the sea itself into its
6181 component drops.
6182
6183 She stood for some moments looking round the room. From the few chairs,
6184 the few books, the common prints, and the bed, she glanced to the two
6185 women, and to Stephen.
6186
6187 ‘I have come to speak to you, in consequence of what passed just now. I
6188 should like to be serviceable to you, if you will let me. Is this your
6189 wife?’
6190
6191 Rachael raised her eyes, and they sufficiently answered no, and dropped
6192 again.
6193
6194 ‘I remember,’ said Louisa, reddening at her mistake; ‘I recollect, now,
6195 to have heard your domestic misfortunes spoken of, though I was not
6196 attending to the particulars at the time. It was not my meaning to ask a
6197 question that would give pain to any one here. If I should ask any other
6198 question that may happen to have that result, give me credit, if you
6199 please, for being in ignorance how to speak to you as I ought.’
6200
6201 As Stephen had but a little while ago instinctively addressed himself to
6202 her, so she now instinctively addressed herself to Rachael. Her manner
6203 was short and abrupt, yet faltering and timid.
6204
6205 ‘He has told you what has passed between himself and my husband? You
6206 would be his first resource, I think.’
6207
6208 ‘I have heard the end of it, young lady,’ said Rachael.
6209
6210 ‘Did I understand, that, being rejected by one employer, he would
6211 probably be rejected by all? I thought he said as much?’
6212
6213 ‘The chances are very small, young lady—next to nothing—for a man who
6214 gets a bad name among them.’
6215
6216 ‘What shall I understand that you mean by a bad name?’
6217
6218 ‘The name of being troublesome.’
6219
6220 ‘Then, by the prejudices of his own class, and by the prejudices of the
6221 other, he is sacrificed alike? Are the two so deeply separated in this
6222 town, that there is no place whatever for an honest workman between
6223 them?’
6224
6225 Rachael shook her head in silence.
6226
6227 ‘He fell into suspicion,’ said Louisa, ‘with his fellow-weavers,
6228 because—he had made a promise not to be one of them. I think it must
6229 have been to you that he made that promise. Might I ask you why he made
6230 it?’
6231
6232 Rachael burst into tears. ‘I didn’t seek it of him, poor lad. I prayed
6233 him to avoid trouble for his own good, little thinking he’d come to it
6234 through me. But I know he’d die a hundred deaths, ere ever he’d break
6235 his word. I know that of him well.’
6236
6237 Stephen had remained quietly attentive, in his usual thoughtful attitude,
6238 with his hand at his chin. He now spoke in a voice rather less steady
6239 than usual.
6240
6241 ‘No one, excepting myseln, can ever know what honour, an’ what love, an’
6242 respect, I bear to Rachael, or wi’ what cause. When I passed that
6243 promess, I towd her true, she were th’ Angel o’ my life. ’Twere a solemn
6244 promess. ’Tis gone fro’ me, for ever.’
6245
6246 Louisa turned her head to him, and bent it with a deference that was new
6247 in her. She looked from him to Rachael, and her features softened.
6248 ‘What will you do?’ she asked him. And her voice had softened too.
6249
6250 ‘Weel, ma’am,’ said Stephen, making the best of it, with a smile; ‘when I
6251 ha finished off, I mun quit this part, and try another. Fortnet or
6252 misfortnet, a man can but try; there’s nowt to be done wi’out tryin’—cept
6253 laying down and dying.’
6254
6255 ‘How will you travel?’
6256
6257 ‘Afoot, my kind ledy, afoot.’
6258
6259 Louisa coloured, and a purse appeared in her hand. The rustling of a
6260 bank-note was audible, as she unfolded one and laid it on the table.
6261
6262 ‘Rachael, will you tell him—for you know how, without offence—that this
6263 is freely his, to help him on his way? Will you entreat him to take it?’
6264
6265 ‘I canna do that, young lady,’ she answered, turning her head aside.
6266 ‘Bless you for thinking o’ the poor lad wi’ such tenderness. But ’tis
6267 for him to know his heart, and what is right according to it.’
6268
6269 Louisa looked, in part incredulous, in part frightened, in part overcome
6270 with quick sympathy, when this man of so much self-command, who had been
6271 so plain and steady through the late interview, lost his composure in a
6272 moment, and now stood with his hand before his face. She stretched out
6273 hers, as if she would have touched him; then checked herself, and
6274 remained still.
6275
6276 ‘Not e’en Rachael,’ said Stephen, when he stood again with his face
6277 uncovered, ‘could mak sitch a kind offerin, by onny words, kinder. T’
6278 show that I’m not a man wi’out reason and gratitude, I’ll tak two pound.
6279 I’ll borrow ’t for t’ pay ’t back. ’Twill be the sweetest work as ever I
6280 ha done, that puts it in my power t’ acknowledge once more my lastin
6281 thankfulness for this present action.’
6282
6283 She was fain to take up the note again, and to substitute the much
6284 smaller sum he had named. He was neither courtly, nor handsome, nor
6285 picturesque, in any respect; and yet his manner of accepting it, and of
6286 expressing his thanks without more words, had a grace in it that Lord
6287 Chesterfield could not have taught his son in a century.
6288
6289 Tom had sat upon the bed, swinging one leg and sucking his walking-stick
6290 with sufficient unconcern, until the visit had attained this stage.
6291 Seeing his sister ready to depart, he got up, rather hurriedly, and put
6292 in a word.
6293
6294 ‘Just wait a moment, Loo! Before we go, I should like to speak to him a
6295 moment. Something comes into my head. If you’ll step out on the stairs,
6296 Blackpool, I’ll mention it. Never mind a light, man!’ Tom was
6297 remarkably impatient of his moving towards the cupboard, to get one. ‘It
6298 don’t want a light.’
6299
6300 Stephen followed him out, and Tom closed the room door, and held the lock
6301 in his hand.
6302
6303 ‘I say!’ he whispered. ‘I think I can do you a good turn. Don’t ask me
6304 what it is, because it may not come to anything. But there’s no harm in
6305 my trying.’
6306
6307 His breath fell like a flame of fire on Stephen’s ear, it was so hot.
6308
6309 ‘That was our light porter at the Bank,’ said Tom, ‘who brought you the
6310 message to-night. I call him our light porter, because I belong to the
6311 Bank too.’
6312
6313 Stephen thought, ‘What a hurry he is in!’ He spoke so confusedly.
6314
6315 ‘Well!’ said Tom. ‘Now look here! When are you off?’
6316
6317 ‘T’ day’s Monday,’ replied Stephen, considering. ‘Why, sir, Friday or
6318 Saturday, nigh ’bout.’
6319
6320 ‘Friday or Saturday,’ said Tom. ‘Now look here! I am not sure that I
6321 can do you the good turn I want to do you—that’s my sister, you know, in
6322 your room—but I may be able to, and if I should not be able to, there’s
6323 no harm done. So I tell you what. You’ll know our light porter again?’
6324
6325 ‘Yes, sure,’ said Stephen.
6326
6327 ‘Very well,’ returned Tom. ‘When you leave work of a night, between this
6328 and your going away, just hang about the Bank an hour or so, will you?
6329 Don’t take on, as if you meant anything, if he should see you hanging
6330 about there; because I shan’t put him up to speak to you, unless I find I
6331 can do you the service I want to do you. In that case he’ll have a note
6332 or a message for you, but not else. Now look here! You are sure you
6333 understand.’
6334
6335 He had wormed a finger, in the darkness, through a button-hole of
6336 Stephen’s coat, and was screwing that corner of the garment tight up
6337 round and round, in an extraordinary manner.
6338
6339 ‘I understand, sir,’ said Stephen.
6340
6341 ‘Now look here!’ repeated Tom. ‘Be sure you don’t make any mistake then,
6342 and don’t forget. I shall tell my sister as we go home, what I have in
6343 view, and she’ll approve, I know. Now look here! You’re all right, are
6344 you? You understand all about it? Very well then. Come along, Loo!’
6345
6346 He pushed the door open as he called to her, but did not return into the
6347 room, or wait to be lighted down the narrow stairs. He was at the bottom
6348 when she began to descend, and was in the street before she could take
6349 his arm.
6350
6351 Mrs. Pegler remained in her corner until the brother and sister were
6352 gone, and until Stephen came back with the candle in his hand. She was
6353 in a state of inexpressible admiration of Mrs. Bounderby, and, like an
6354 unaccountable old woman, wept, ‘because she was such a pretty dear.’ Yet
6355 Mrs. Pegler was so flurried lest the object of her admiration should
6356 return by chance, or anybody else should come, that her cheerfulness was
6357 ended for that night. It was late too, to people who rose early and
6358 worked hard; therefore the party broke up; and Stephen and Rachael
6359 escorted their mysterious acquaintance to the door of the Travellers’
6360 Coffee House, where they parted from her.
6361
6362 They walked back together to the corner of the street where Rachael
6363 lived, and as they drew nearer and nearer to it, silence crept upon them.
6364 When they came to the dark corner where their unfrequent meetings always
6365 ended, they stopped, still silent, as if both were afraid to speak.
6366
6367 ‘I shall strive t’ see thee agen, Rachael, afore I go, but if not—’
6368
6369 ‘Thou wilt not, Stephen, I know. ’Tis better that we make up our minds
6370 to be open wi’ one another.’
6371
6372 ‘Thou’rt awlus right. ’Tis bolder and better. I ha been thinkin then,
6373 Rachael, that as ’tis but a day or two that remains, ’twere better for
6374 thee, my dear, not t’ be seen wi’ me. ’T might bring thee into trouble,
6375 fur no good.’
6376
6377 ‘’Tis not for that, Stephen, that I mind. But thou know’st our old
6378 agreement. ’Tis for that.’
6379
6380 ‘Well, well,’ said he. ‘’Tis better, onnyways.’
6381
6382 ‘Thou’lt write to me, and tell me all that happens, Stephen?’
6383
6384 ‘Yes. What can I say now, but Heaven be wi’ thee, Heaven bless thee,
6385 Heaven thank thee and reward thee!’
6386
6387 ‘May it bless thee, Stephen, too, in all thy wanderings, and send thee
6388 peace and rest at last!’
6389
6390 ‘I towd thee, my dear,’ said Stephen Blackpool—‘that night—that I would
6391 never see or think o’ onnything that angered me, but thou, so much better
6392 than me, should’st be beside it. Thou’rt beside it now. Thou mak’st me
6393 see it wi’ a better eye. Bless thee. Good night. Good-bye!’
6394
6395 It was but a hurried parting in a common street, yet it was a sacred
6396 remembrance to these two common people. Utilitarian economists,
6397 skeletons of schoolmasters, Commissioners of Fact, genteel and used-up
6398 infidels, gabblers of many little dog’s-eared creeds, the poor you will
6399 have always with you. Cultivate in them, while there is yet time, the
6400 utmost graces of the fancies and affections, to adorn their lives so much
6401 in need of ornament; or, in the day of your triumph, when romance is
6402 utterly driven out of their souls, and they and a bare existence stand
6403 face to face, Reality will take a wolfish turn, and make an end of you.
6404
6405 Stephen worked the next day, and the next, uncheered by a word from any
6406 one, and shunned in all his comings and goings as before. At the end of
6407 the second day, he saw land; at the end of the third, his loom stood
6408 empty.
6409
6410 He had overstayed his hour in the street outside the Bank, on each of the
6411 two first evenings; and nothing had happened there, good or bad. That he
6412 might not be remiss in his part of the engagement, he resolved to wait
6413 full two hours, on this third and last night.
6414
6415 There was the lady who had once kept Mr. Bounderby’s house, sitting at
6416 the first-floor window as he had seen her before; and there was the light
6417 porter, sometimes talking with her there, and sometimes looking over the
6418 blind below which had BANK upon it, and sometimes coming to the door and
6419 standing on the steps for a breath of air. When he first came out,
6420 Stephen thought he might be looking for him, and passed near; but the
6421 light porter only cast his winking eyes upon him slightly, and said
6422 nothing.
6423
6424 Two hours were a long stretch of lounging about, after a long day’s
6425 labour. Stephen sat upon the step of a door, leaned against a wall under
6426 an archway, strolled up and down, listened for the church clock, stopped
6427 and watched children playing in the street. Some purpose or other is so
6428 natural to every one, that a mere loiterer always looks and feels
6429 remarkable. When the first hour was out, Stephen even began to have an
6430 uncomfortable sensation upon him of being for the time a disreputable
6431 character.
6432
6433 Then came the lamplighter, and two lengthening lines of light all down
6434 the long perspective of the street, until they were blended and lost in
6435 the distance. Mrs. Sparsit closed the first-floor window, drew down the
6436 blind, and went up-stairs. Presently, a light went up-stairs after her,
6437 passing first the fanlight of the door, and afterwards the two staircase
6438 windows, on its way up. By and by, one corner of the second-floor blind
6439 was disturbed, as if Mrs. Sparsit’s eye were there; also the other
6440 corner, as if the light porter’s eye were on that side. Still, no
6441 communication was made to Stephen. Much relieved when the two hours were
6442 at last accomplished, he went away at a quick pace, as a recompense for
6443 so much loitering.
6444
6445 He had only to take leave of his landlady, and lie down on his temporary
6446 bed upon the floor; for his bundle was made up for to-morrow, and all was
6447 arranged for his departure. He meant to be clear of the town very early;
6448 before the Hands were in the streets.
6449
6450 It was barely daybreak, when, with a parting look round his room,
6451 mournfully wondering whether he should ever see it again, he went out.
6452 The town was as entirely deserted as if the inhabitants had abandoned it,
6453 rather than hold communication with him. Everything looked wan at that
6454 hour. Even the coming sun made but a pale waste in the sky, like a sad
6455 sea.
6456
6457 By the place where Rachael lived, though it was not in his way; by the
6458 red brick streets; by the great silent factories, not trembling yet; by
6459 the railway, where the danger-lights were waning in the strengthening
6460 day; by the railway’s crazy neighbourhood, half pulled down and half
6461 built up; by scattered red brick villas, where the besmoked evergreens
6462 were sprinkled with a dirty powder, like untidy snuff-takers; by
6463 coal-dust paths and many varieties of ugliness; Stephen got to the top of
6464 the hill, and looked back.
6465
6466 Day was shining radiantly upon the town then, and the bells were going
6467 for the morning work. Domestic fires were not yet lighted, and the high
6468 chimneys had the sky to themselves. Puffing out their poisonous volumes,
6469 they would not be long in hiding it; but, for half an hour, some of the
6470 many windows were golden, which showed the Coketown people a sun
6471 eternally in eclipse, through a medium of smoked glass.
6472
6473 So strange to turn from the chimneys to the birds. So strange, to have
6474 the road-dust on his feet instead of the coal-grit. So strange to have
6475 lived to his time of life, and yet to be beginning like a boy this summer
6476 morning! With these musings in his mind, and his bundle under his arm,
6477 Stephen took his attentive face along the high road. And the trees
6478 arched over him, whispering that he left a true and loving heart behind.
6479
6480
6481
6482 CHAPTER VII
6483 GUNPOWDER
6484
6485
6486 MR. JAMES HARTHOUSE, ‘going in’ for his adopted party, soon began to
6487 score. With the aid of a little more coaching for the political sages, a
6488 little more genteel listlessness for the general society, and a tolerable
6489 management of the assumed honesty in dishonesty, most effective and most
6490 patronized of the polite deadly sins, he speedily came to be considered
6491 of much promise. The not being troubled with earnestness was a grand
6492 point in his favour, enabling him to take to the hard Fact fellows with
6493 as good a grace as if he had been born one of the tribe, and to throw all
6494 other tribes overboard, as conscious hypocrites.
6495
6496 ‘Whom none of us believe, my dear Mrs. Bounderby, and who do not believe
6497 themselves. The only difference between us and the professors of virtue
6498 or benevolence, or philanthropy—never mind the name—is, that we know it
6499 is all meaningless, and say so; while they know it equally and will never
6500 say so.’
6501
6502 Why should she be shocked or warned by this reiteration? It was not so
6503 unlike her father’s principles, and her early training, that it need
6504 startle her. Where was the great difference between the two schools,
6505 when each chained her down to material realities, and inspired her with
6506 no faith in anything else? What was there in her soul for James
6507 Harthouse to destroy, which Thomas Gradgrind had nurtured there in its
6508 state of innocence!
6509
6510 It was even the worse for her at this pass, that in her mind—implanted
6511 there before her eminently practical father began to form it—a struggling
6512 disposition to believe in a wider and nobler humanity than she had ever
6513 heard of, constantly strove with doubts and resentments. With doubts,
6514 because the aspiration had been so laid waste in her youth. With
6515 resentments, because of the wrong that had been done her, if it were
6516 indeed a whisper of the truth. Upon a nature long accustomed to
6517 self-suppression, thus torn and divided, the Harthouse philosophy came as
6518 a relief and justification. Everything being hollow and worthless, she
6519 had missed nothing and sacrificed nothing. What did it matter, she had
6520 said to her father, when he proposed her husband. What did it matter,
6521 she said still. With a scornful self-reliance, she asked herself, What
6522 did anything matter—and went on.
6523
6524 Towards what? Step by step, onward and downward, towards some end, yet
6525 so gradually, that she believed herself to remain motionless. As to Mr.
6526 Harthouse, whither _he_ tended, he neither considered nor cared. He had
6527 no particular design or plan before him: no energetic wickedness ruffled
6528 his lassitude. He was as much amused and interested, at present, as it
6529 became so fine a gentleman to be; perhaps even more than it would have
6530 been consistent with his reputation to confess. Soon after his arrival
6531 he languidly wrote to his brother, the honourable and jocular member,
6532 that the Bounderbys were ‘great fun;’ and further, that the female
6533 Bounderby, instead of being the Gorgon he had expected, was young, and
6534 remarkably pretty. After that, he wrote no more about them, and devoted
6535 his leisure chiefly to their house. He was very often in their house, in
6536 his flittings and visitings about the Coketown district; and was much
6537 encouraged by Mr. Bounderby. It was quite in Mr. Bounderby’s gusty way
6538 to boast to all his world that _he_ didn’t care about your highly
6539 connected people, but that if his wife Tom Gradgrind’s daughter did, she
6540 was welcome to their company.
6541
6542 Mr. James Harthouse began to think it would be a new sensation, if the
6543 face which changed so beautifully for the whelp, would change for him.
6544
6545 He was quick enough to observe; he had a good memory, and did not forget
6546 a word of the brother’s revelations. He interwove them with everything
6547 he saw of the sister, and he began to understand her. To be sure, the
6548 better and profounder part of her character was not within his scope of
6549 perception; for in natures, as in seas, depth answers unto depth; but he
6550 soon began to read the rest with a student’s eye.
6551
6552 Mr. Bounderby had taken possession of a house and grounds, about fifteen
6553 miles from the town, and accessible within a mile or two, by a railway
6554 striding on many arches over a wild country, undermined by deserted
6555 coal-shafts, and spotted at night by fires and black shapes of stationary
6556 engines at pits’ mouths. This country, gradually softening towards the
6557 neighbourhood of Mr. Bounderby’s retreat, there mellowed into a rustic
6558 landscape, golden with heath, and snowy with hawthorn in the spring of
6559 the year, and tremulous with leaves and their shadows all the summer
6560 time. The bank had foreclosed a mortgage effected on the property thus
6561 pleasantly situated, by one of the Coketown magnates, who, in his
6562 determination to make a shorter cut than usual to an enormous fortune,
6563 overspeculated himself by about two hundred thousand pounds. These
6564 accidents did sometimes happen in the best regulated families of
6565 Coketown, but the bankrupts had no connexion whatever with the
6566 improvident classes.
6567
6568 It afforded Mr. Bounderby supreme satisfaction to instal himself in this
6569 snug little estate, and with demonstrative humility to grow cabbages in
6570 the flower-garden. He delighted to live, barrack-fashion, among the
6571 elegant furniture, and he bullied the very pictures with his origin.
6572 ‘Why, sir,’ he would say to a visitor, ‘I am told that Nickits,’ the late
6573 owner, ‘gave seven hundred pound for that Seabeach. Now, to be plain
6574 with you, if I ever, in the whole course of my life, take seven looks at
6575 it, at a hundred pound a look, it will be as much as I shall do. No, by
6576 George! I don’t forget that I am Josiah Bounderby of Coketown. For
6577 years upon years, the only pictures in my possession, or that I could
6578 have got into my possession, by any means, unless I stole ’em, were the
6579 engravings of a man shaving himself in a boot, on the blacking bottles
6580 that I was overjoyed to use in cleaning boots with, and that I sold when
6581 they were empty for a farthing a-piece, and glad to get it!’
6582
6583 Then he would address Mr. Harthouse in the same style.
6584
6585 ‘Harthouse, you have a couple of horses down here. Bring half a dozen
6586 more if you like, and we’ll find room for ’em. There’s stabling in this
6587 place for a dozen horses; and unless Nickits is belied, he kept the full
6588 number. A round dozen of ’em, sir. When that man was a boy, he went to
6589 Westminster School. Went to Westminster School as a King’s Scholar, when
6590 I was principally living on garbage, and sleeping in market baskets.
6591 Why, if I wanted to keep a dozen horses—which I don’t, for one’s enough
6592 for me—I couldn’t bear to see ’em in their stalls here, and think what my
6593 own lodging used to be. I couldn’t look at ’em, sir, and not order ’em
6594 out. Yet so things come round. You see this place; you know what sort
6595 of a place it is; you are aware that there’s not a completer place of its
6596 size in this kingdom or elsewhere—I don’t care where—and here, got into
6597 the middle of it, like a maggot into a nut, is Josiah Bounderby. While
6598 Nickits (as a man came into my office, and told me yesterday), Nickits,
6599 who used to act in Latin, in the Westminster School plays, with the
6600 chief-justices and nobility of this country applauding him till they were
6601 black in the face, is drivelling at this minute—drivelling, sir!—in a
6602 fifth floor, up a narrow dark back street in Antwerp.’
6603
6604 It was among the leafy shadows of this retirement, in the long sultry
6605 summer days, that Mr. Harthouse began to prove the face which had set him
6606 wondering when he first saw it, and to try if it would change for him.
6607
6608 ‘Mrs. Bounderby, I esteem it a most fortunate accident that I find you
6609 alone here. I have for some time had a particular wish to speak to you.’
6610
6611 It was not by any wonderful accident that he found her, the time of day
6612 being that at which she was always alone, and the place being her
6613 favourite resort. It was an opening in a dark wood, where some felled
6614 trees lay, and where she would sit watching the fallen leaves of last
6615 year, as she had watched the falling ashes at home.
6616
6617 He sat down beside her, with a glance at her face.
6618
6619 ‘Your brother. My young friend Tom—’
6620
6621 Her colour brightened, and she turned to him with a look of interest. ‘I
6622 never in my life,’ he thought, ‘saw anything so remarkable and so
6623 captivating as the lighting of those features!’ His face betrayed his
6624 thoughts—perhaps without betraying him, for it might have been according
6625 to its instructions so to do.
6626
6627 ‘Pardon me. The expression of your sisterly interest is so beautiful—Tom
6628 should be so proud of it—I know this is inexcusable, but I am so
6629 compelled to admire.’
6630
6631 ‘Being so impulsive,’ she said composedly.
6632
6633 ‘Mrs. Bounderby, no: you know I make no pretence with you. You know I am
6634 a sordid piece of human nature, ready to sell myself at any time for any
6635 reasonable sum, and altogether incapable of any Arcadian proceeding
6636 whatever.’
6637
6638 ‘I am waiting,’ she returned, ‘for your further reference to my brother.’
6639
6640 ‘You are rigid with me, and I deserve it. I am as worthless a dog as you
6641 will find, except that I am not false—not false. But you surprised and
6642 started me from my subject, which was your brother. I have an interest
6643 in him.’
6644
6645 ‘Have you an interest in anything, Mr. Harthouse?’ she asked, half
6646 incredulously and half gratefully.
6647
6648 ‘If you had asked me when I first came here, I should have said no. I
6649 must say now—even at the hazard of appearing to make a pretence, and of
6650 justly awakening your incredulity—yes.’
6651
6652 She made a slight movement, as if she were trying to speak, but could not
6653 find voice; at length she said, ‘Mr. Harthouse, I give you credit for
6654 being interested in my brother.’
6655
6656 ‘Thank you. I claim to deserve it. You know how little I do claim, but
6657 I will go that length. You have done so much for him, you are so fond of
6658 him; your whole life, Mrs. Bounderby, expresses such charming
6659 self-forgetfulness on his account—pardon me again—I am running wide of
6660 the subject. I am interested in him for his own sake.’
6661
6662 She had made the slightest action possible, as if she would have risen in
6663 a hurry and gone away. He had turned the course of what he said at that
6664 instant, and she remained.
6665
6666 ‘Mrs. Bounderby,’ he resumed, in a lighter manner, and yet with a show of
6667 effort in assuming it, which was even more expressive than the manner he
6668 dismissed; ‘it is no irrevocable offence in a young fellow of your
6669 brother’s years, if he is heedless, inconsiderate, and expensive—a little
6670 dissipated, in the common phrase. Is he?’
6671
6672 ‘Yes.’
6673
6674 ‘Allow me to be frank. Do you think he games at all?’
6675
6676 ‘I think he makes bets.’ Mr. Harthouse waiting, as if that were not her
6677 whole answer, she added, ‘I know he does.’
6678
6679 ‘Of course he loses?’
6680
6681 ‘Yes.’
6682
6683 ‘Everybody does lose who bets. May I hint at the probability of your
6684 sometimes supplying him with money for these purposes?’
6685
6686 She sat, looking down; but, at this question, raised her eyes searchingly
6687 and a little resentfully.
6688
6689 ‘Acquit me of impertinent curiosity, my dear Mrs. Bounderby. I think Tom
6690 may be gradually falling into trouble, and I wish to stretch out a
6691 helping hand to him from the depths of my wicked experience.—Shall I say
6692 again, for his sake? Is that necessary?’
6693
6694 She seemed to try to answer, but nothing came of it.
6695
6696 ‘Candidly to confess everything that has occurred to me,’ said James
6697 Harthouse, again gliding with the same appearance of effort into his more
6698 airy manner; ‘I will confide to you my doubt whether he has had many
6699 advantages. Whether—forgive my plainness—whether any great amount of
6700 confidence is likely to have been established between himself and his
6701 most worthy father.’
6702
6703 ‘I do not,’ said Louisa, flushing with her own great remembrance in that
6704 wise, ‘think it likely.’
6705
6706 ‘Or, between himself, and—I may trust to your perfect understanding of my
6707 meaning, I am sure—and his highly esteemed brother-in-law.’
6708
6709 She flushed deeper and deeper, and was burning red when she replied in a
6710 fainter voice, ‘I do not think that likely, either.’
6711
6712 ‘Mrs. Bounderby,’ said Harthouse, after a short silence, ‘may there be a
6713 better confidence between yourself and me? Tom has borrowed a
6714 considerable sum of you?’
6715
6716 ‘You will understand, Mr. Harthouse,’ she returned, after some
6717 indecision: she had been more or less uncertain, and troubled throughout
6718 the conversation, and yet had in the main preserved her self-contained
6719 manner; ‘you will understand that if I tell you what you press to know,
6720 it is not by way of complaint or regret. I would never complain of
6721 anything, and what I have done I do not in the least regret.’
6722
6723 ‘So spirited, too!’ thought James Harthouse.
6724
6725 ‘When I married, I found that my brother was even at that time heavily in
6726 debt. Heavily for him, I mean. Heavily enough to oblige me to sell some
6727 trinkets. They were no sacrifice. I sold them very willingly. I
6728 attached no value to them. They, were quite worthless to me.’
6729
6730 Either she saw in his face that he knew, or she only feared in her
6731 conscience that he knew, that she spoke of some of her husband’s gifts.
6732 She stopped, and reddened again. If he had not known it before, he would
6733 have known it then, though he had been a much duller man than he was.
6734
6735 ‘Since then, I have given my brother, at various times, what money I
6736 could spare: in short, what money I have had. Confiding in you at all,
6737 on the faith of the interest you profess for him, I will not do so by
6738 halves. Since you have been in the habit of visiting here, he has wanted
6739 in one sum as much as a hundred pounds. I have not been able to give it
6740 to him. I have felt uneasy for the consequences of his being so
6741 involved, but I have kept these secrets until now, when I trust them to
6742 your honour. I have held no confidence with any one, because—you
6743 anticipated my reason just now.’ She abruptly broke off.
6744
6745 He was a ready man, and he saw, and seized, an opportunity here of
6746 presenting her own image to her, slightly disguised as her brother.
6747
6748 ‘Mrs. Bounderby, though a graceless person, of the world worldly, I feel
6749 the utmost interest, I assure you, in what you tell me. I cannot
6750 possibly be hard upon your brother. I understand and share the wise
6751 consideration with which you regard his errors. With all possible
6752 respect both for Mr. Gradgrind and for Mr. Bounderby, I think I perceive
6753 that he has not been fortunate in his training. Bred at a disadvantage
6754 towards the society in which he has his part to play, he rushes into
6755 these extremes for himself, from opposite extremes that have long been
6756 forced—with the very best intentions we have no doubt—upon him. Mr.
6757 Bounderby’s fine bluff English independence, though a most charming
6758 characteristic, does not—as we have agreed—invite confidence. If I might
6759 venture to remark that it is the least in the world deficient in that
6760 delicacy to which a youth mistaken, a character misconceived, and
6761 abilities misdirected, would turn for relief and guidance, I should
6762 express what it presents to my own view.’
6763
6764 As she sat looking straight before her, across the changing lights upon
6765 the grass into the darkness of the wood beyond, he saw in her face her
6766 application of his very distinctly uttered words.
6767
6768 ‘All allowance,’ he continued, ‘must be made. I have one great fault to
6769 find with Tom, however, which I cannot forgive, and for which I take him
6770 heavily to account.’
6771
6772 Louisa turned her eyes to his face, and asked him what fault was that?
6773
6774 ‘Perhaps,’ he returned, ‘I have said enough. Perhaps it would have been
6775 better, on the whole, if no allusion to it had escaped me.’
6776
6777 ‘You alarm me, Mr. Harthouse. Pray let me know it.’
6778
6779 ‘To relieve you from needless apprehension—and as this confidence
6780 regarding your brother, which I prize I am sure above all possible
6781 things, has been established between us—I obey. I cannot forgive him for
6782 not being more sensible in every word, look, and act of his life, of the
6783 affection of his best friend; of the devotion of his best friend; of her
6784 unselfishness; of her sacrifice. The return he makes her, within my
6785 observation, is a very poor one. What she has done for him demands his
6786 constant love and gratitude, not his ill-humour and caprice. Careless
6787 fellow as I am, I am not so indifferent, Mrs. Bounderby, as to be
6788 regardless of this vice in your brother, or inclined to consider it a
6789 venial offence.’
6790
6791 The wood floated before her, for her eyes were suffused with tears. They
6792 rose from a deep well, long concealed, and her heart was filled with
6793 acute pain that found no relief in them.
6794
6795 ‘In a word, it is to correct your brother in this, Mrs. Bounderby, that I
6796 must aspire. My better knowledge of his circumstances, and my direction
6797 and advice in extricating them—rather valuable, I hope, as coming from a
6798 scapegrace on a much larger scale—will give me some influence over him,
6799 and all I gain I shall certainly use towards this end. I have said
6800 enough, and more than enough. I seem to be protesting that I am a sort
6801 of good fellow, when, upon my honour, I have not the least intention to
6802 make any protestation to that effect, and openly announce that I am
6803 nothing of the sort. Yonder, among the trees,’ he added, having lifted
6804 up his eyes and looked about; for he had watched her closely until now;
6805 ‘is your brother himself; no doubt, just come down. As he seems to be
6806 loitering in this direction, it may be as well, perhaps, to walk towards
6807 him, and throw ourselves in his way. He has been very silent and doleful
6808 of late. Perhaps, his brotherly conscience is touched—if there are such
6809 things as consciences. Though, upon my honour, I hear of them much too
6810 often to believe in them.’
6811
6812 He assisted her to rise, and she took his arm, and they advanced to meet
6813 the whelp. He was idly beating the branches as he lounged along: or he
6814 stooped viciously to rip the moss from the trees with his stick. He was
6815 startled when they came upon him while he was engaged in this latter
6816 pastime, and his colour changed.
6817
6818 ‘Halloa!’ he stammered; ‘I didn’t know you were here.’
6819
6820 ‘Whose name, Tom,’ said Mr. Harthouse, putting his hand upon his shoulder
6821 and turning him, so that they all three walked towards the house
6822 together, ‘have you been carving on the trees?’
6823
6824 ‘Whose name?’ returned Tom. ‘Oh! You mean what girl’s name?’
6825
6826 ‘You have a suspicious appearance of inscribing some fair creature’s on
6827 the bark, Tom.’
6828
6829 [Picture: Mr. Harthouse and Tom Gradgrind in the garden]
6830
6831 ‘Not much of that, Mr. Harthouse, unless some fair creature with a
6832 slashing fortune at her own disposal would take a fancy to me. Or she
6833 might be as ugly as she was rich, without any fear of losing me. I’d
6834 carve her name as often as she liked.’
6835
6836 ‘I am afraid you are mercenary, Tom.’
6837
6838 ‘Mercenary,’ repeated Tom. ‘Who is not mercenary? Ask my sister.’
6839
6840 ‘Have you so proved it to be a failing of mine, Tom?’ said Louisa,
6841 showing no other sense of his discontent and ill-nature.
6842
6843 ‘You know whether the cap fits you, Loo,’ returned her brother sulkily.
6844 ‘If it does, you can wear it.’
6845
6846 ‘Tom is misanthropical to-day, as all bored people are now and then,’
6847 said Mr. Harthouse. ‘Don’t believe him, Mrs. Bounderby. He knows much
6848 better. I shall disclose some of his opinions of you, privately
6849 expressed to me, unless he relents a little.’
6850
6851 ‘At all events, Mr. Harthouse,’ said Tom, softening in his admiration of
6852 his patron, but shaking his head sullenly too, ‘you can’t tell her that I
6853 ever praised her for being mercenary. I may have praised her for being
6854 the contrary, and I should do it again, if I had as good reason.
6855 However, never mind this now; it’s not very interesting to you, and I am
6856 sick of the subject.’
6857
6858 They walked on to the house, where Louisa quitted her visitor’s arm and
6859 went in. He stood looking after her, as she ascended the steps, and
6860 passed into the shadow of the door; then put his hand upon her brother’s
6861 shoulder again, and invited him with a confidential nod to a walk in the
6862 garden.
6863
6864 ‘Tom, my fine fellow, I want to have a word with you.’
6865
6866 They had stopped among a disorder of roses—it was part of Mr. Bounderby’s
6867 humility to keep Nickits’s roses on a reduced scale—and Tom sat down on a
6868 terrace-parapet, plucking buds and picking them to pieces; while his
6869 powerful Familiar stood over him, with a foot upon the parapet, and his
6870 figure easily resting on the arm supported by that knee. They were just
6871 visible from her window. Perhaps she saw them.
6872
6873 ‘Tom, what’s the matter?’
6874
6875 ‘Oh! Mr. Harthouse,’ said Tom with a groan, ‘I am hard up, and bothered
6876 out of my life.’
6877
6878 ‘My good fellow, so am I.’
6879
6880 ‘You!’ returned Tom. ‘You are the picture of independence. Mr.
6881 Harthouse, I am in a horrible mess. You have no idea what a state I have
6882 got myself into—what a state my sister might have got me out of, if she
6883 would only have done it.’
6884
6885 He took to biting the rosebuds now, and tearing them away from his teeth
6886 with a hand that trembled like an infirm old man’s. After one
6887 exceedingly observant look at him, his companion relapsed into his
6888 lightest air.
6889
6890 ‘Tom, you are inconsiderate: you expect too much of your sister. You
6891 have had money of her, you dog, you know you have.’
6892
6893 ‘Well, Mr. Harthouse, I know I have. How else was I to get it? Here’s
6894 old Bounderby always boasting that at my age he lived upon twopence a
6895 month, or something of that sort. Here’s my father drawing what he calls
6896 a line, and tying me down to it from a baby, neck and heels. Here’s my
6897 mother who never has anything of her own, except her complaints. What
6898 _is_ a fellow to do for money, and where _am_ I to look for it, if not to
6899 my sister?’
6900
6901 He was almost crying, and scattered the buds about by dozens. Mr.
6902 Harthouse took him persuasively by the coat.
6903
6904 ‘But, my dear Tom, if your sister has not got it—’
6905
6906 ‘Not got it, Mr. Harthouse? I don’t say she has got it. I may have
6907 wanted more than she was likely to have got. But then she ought to get
6908 it. She could get it. It’s of no use pretending to make a secret of
6909 matters now, after what I have told you already; you know she didn’t
6910 marry old Bounderby for her own sake, or for his sake, but for my sake.
6911 Then why doesn’t she get what I want, out of him, for my sake? She is
6912 not obliged to say what she is going to do with it; she is sharp enough;
6913 she could manage to coax it out of him, if she chose. Then why doesn’t
6914 she choose, when I tell her of what consequence it is? But no. There
6915 she sits in his company like a stone, instead of making herself agreeable
6916 and getting it easily. I don’t know what you may call this, but I call
6917 it unnatural conduct.’
6918
6919 There was a piece of ornamental water immediately below the parapet, on
6920 the other side, into which Mr. James Harthouse had a very strong
6921 inclination to pitch Mr. Thomas Gradgrind junior, as the injured men of
6922 Coketown threatened to pitch their property into the Atlantic. But he
6923 preserved his easy attitude; and nothing more solid went over the stone
6924 balustrades than the accumulated rosebuds now floating about, a little
6925 surface-island.
6926
6927 ‘My dear Tom,’ said Harthouse, ‘let me try to be your banker.’
6928
6929 ‘For God’s sake,’ replied Tom, suddenly, ‘don’t talk about bankers!’ And
6930 very white he looked, in contrast with the roses. Very white.
6931
6932 Mr. Harthouse, as a thoroughly well-bred man, accustomed to the best
6933 society, was not to be surprised—he could as soon have been affected—but
6934 he raised his eyelids a little more, as if they were lifted by a feeble
6935 touch of wonder. Albeit it was as much against the precepts of his
6936 school to wonder, as it was against the doctrines of the Gradgrind
6937 College.
6938
6939 ‘What is the present need, Tom? Three figures? Out with them. Say what
6940 they are.’
6941
6942 ‘Mr. Harthouse,’ returned Tom, now actually crying; and his tears were
6943 better than his injuries, however pitiful a figure he made: ‘it’s too
6944 late; the money is of no use to me at present. I should have had it
6945 before to be of use to me. But I am very much obliged to you; you’re a
6946 true friend.’
6947
6948 A true friend! ‘Whelp, whelp!’ thought Mr. Harthouse, lazily; ‘what an
6949 Ass you are!’
6950
6951 ‘And I take your offer as a great kindness,’ said Tom, grasping his hand.
6952 ‘As a great kindness, Mr. Harthouse.’
6953
6954 ‘Well,’ returned the other, ‘it may be of more use by and by. And, my
6955 good fellow, if you will open your bedevilments to me when they come
6956 thick upon you, I may show you better ways out of them than you can find
6957 for yourself.’
6958
6959 ‘Thank you,’ said Tom, shaking his head dismally, and chewing rosebuds.
6960 ‘I wish I had known you sooner, Mr. Harthouse.’
6961
6962 ‘Now, you see, Tom,’ said Mr. Harthouse in conclusion, himself tossing
6963 over a rose or two, as a contribution to the island, which was always
6964 drifting to the wall as if it wanted to become a part of the mainland:
6965 ‘every man is selfish in everything he does, and I am exactly like the
6966 rest of my fellow-creatures. I am desperately intent;’ the languor of
6967 his desperation being quite tropical; ‘on your softening towards your
6968 sister—which you ought to do; and on your being a more loving and
6969 agreeable sort of brother—which you ought to be.’
6970
6971 ‘I will be, Mr. Harthouse.’
6972
6973 ‘No time like the present, Tom. Begin at once.’
6974
6975 ‘Certainly I will. And my sister Loo shall say so.’
6976
6977 ‘Having made which bargain, Tom,’ said Harthouse, clapping him on the
6978 shoulder again, with an air which left him at liberty to infer—as he did,
6979 poor fool—that this condition was imposed upon him in mere careless good
6980 nature to lessen his sense of obligation, ‘we will tear ourselves asunder
6981 until dinner-time.’
6982
6983 When Tom appeared before dinner, though his mind seemed heavy enough, his
6984 body was on the alert; and he appeared before Mr. Bounderby came in. ‘I
6985 didn’t mean to be cross, Loo,’ he said, giving her his hand, and kissing
6986 her. ‘I know you are fond of me, and you know I am fond of you.’
6987
6988 After this, there was a smile upon Louisa’s face that day, for some one
6989 else. Alas, for some one else!
6990
6991 ‘So much the less is the whelp the only creature that she cares for,’
6992 thought James Harthouse, reversing the reflection of his first day’s
6993 knowledge of her pretty face. ‘So much the less, so much the less.’
6994
6995
6996
6997 CHAPTER VIII
6998 EXPLOSION
6999
7000
7001 THE next morning was too bright a morning for sleep, and James Harthouse
7002 rose early, and sat in the pleasant bay window of his dressing-room,
7003 smoking the rare tobacco that had had so wholesome an influence on his
7004 young friend. Reposing in the sunlight, with the fragrance of his
7005 eastern pipe about him, and the dreamy smoke vanishing into the air, so
7006 rich and soft with summer odours, he reckoned up his advantages as an
7007 idle winner might count his gains. He was not at all bored for the time,
7008 and could give his mind to it.
7009
7010 He had established a confidence with her, from which her husband was
7011 excluded. He had established a confidence with her, that absolutely
7012 turned upon her indifference towards her husband, and the absence, now
7013 and at all times, of any congeniality between them. He had artfully, but
7014 plainly, assured her that he knew her heart in its last most delicate
7015 recesses; he had come so near to her through its tenderest sentiment; he
7016 had associated himself with that feeling; and the barrier behind which
7017 she lived, had melted away. All very odd, and very satisfactory!
7018
7019 And yet he had not, even now, any earnest wickedness of purpose in him.
7020 Publicly and privately, it were much better for the age in which he
7021 lived, that he and the legion of whom he was one were designedly bad,
7022 than indifferent and purposeless. It is the drifting icebergs setting
7023 with any current anywhere, that wreck the ships.
7024
7025 When the Devil goeth about like a roaring lion, he goeth about in a shape
7026 by which few but savages and hunters are attracted. But, when he is
7027 trimmed, smoothed, and varnished, according to the mode; when he is
7028 aweary of vice, and aweary of virtue, used up as to brimstone, and used
7029 up as to bliss; then, whether he take to the serving out of red tape, or
7030 to the kindling of red fire, he is the very Devil.
7031
7032 So James Harthouse reclined in the window, indolently smoking, and
7033 reckoning up the steps he had taken on the road by which he happened to
7034 be travelling. The end to which it led was before him, pretty plainly;
7035 but he troubled himself with no calculations about it. What will be,
7036 will be.
7037
7038 As he had rather a long ride to take that day—for there was a public
7039 occasion ‘to do’ at some distance, which afforded a tolerable opportunity
7040 of going in for the Gradgrind men—he dressed early and went down to
7041 breakfast. He was anxious to see if she had relapsed since the previous
7042 evening. No. He resumed where he had left off. There was a look of
7043 interest for him again.
7044
7045 He got through the day as much (or as little) to his own satisfaction, as
7046 was to be expected under the fatiguing circumstances; and came riding
7047 back at six o’clock. There was a sweep of some half-mile between the
7048 lodge and the house, and he was riding along at a foot pace over the
7049 smooth gravel, once Nickits’s, when Mr. Bounderby burst out of the
7050 shrubbery, with such violence as to make his horse shy across the road.
7051
7052 ‘Harthouse!’ cried Mr. Bounderby. ‘Have you heard?’
7053
7054 ‘Heard what?’ said Harthouse, soothing his horse, and inwardly favouring
7055 Mr. Bounderby with no good wishes.
7056
7057 ‘Then you _haven’t_ heard!’
7058
7059 ‘I have heard you, and so has this brute. I have heard nothing else.’
7060
7061 Mr. Bounderby, red and hot, planted himself in the centre of the path
7062 before the horse’s head, to explode his bombshell with more effect.
7063
7064 ‘The Bank’s robbed!’
7065
7066 ‘You don’t mean it!’
7067
7068 ‘Robbed last night, sir. Robbed in an extraordinary manner. Robbed with
7069 a false key.’
7070
7071 ‘Of much?’
7072
7073 Mr. Bounderby, in his desire to make the most of it, really seemed
7074 mortified by being obliged to reply, ‘Why, no; not of very much. But it
7075 might have been.’
7076
7077 ‘Of how much?’
7078
7079 ‘Oh! as a sum—if you stick to a sum—of not more than a hundred and fifty
7080 pound,’ said Bounderby, with impatience. ‘But it’s not the sum; it’s the
7081 fact. It’s the fact of the Bank being robbed, that’s the important
7082 circumstance. I am surprised you don’t see it.’
7083
7084 ‘My dear Bounderby,’ said James, dismounting, and giving his bridle to
7085 his servant, ‘I _do_ see it; and am as overcome as you can possibly
7086 desire me to be, by the spectacle afforded to my mental view.
7087 Nevertheless, I may be allowed, I hope, to congratulate you—which I do
7088 with all my soul, I assure you—on your not having sustained a greater
7089 loss.’
7090
7091 ‘Thank’ee,’ replied Bounderby, in a short, ungracious manner. ‘But I
7092 tell you what. It might have been twenty thousand pound.’
7093
7094 ‘I suppose it might.’
7095
7096 ‘Suppose it might! By the Lord, you _may_ suppose so. By George!’ said
7097 Mr. Bounderby, with sundry menacing nods and shakes of his head. ‘It
7098 might have been twice twenty. There’s no knowing what it would have
7099 been, or wouldn’t have been, as it was, but for the fellows’ being
7100 disturbed.’
7101
7102 Louisa had come up now, and Mrs. Sparsit, and Bitzer.
7103
7104 ‘Here’s Tom Gradgrind’s daughter knows pretty well what it might have
7105 been, if you don’t,’ blustered Bounderby. ‘Dropped, sir, as if she was
7106 shot when I told her! Never knew her do such a thing before. Does her
7107 credit, under the circumstances, in my opinion!’
7108
7109 She still looked faint and pale. James Harthouse begged her to take his
7110 arm; and as they moved on very slowly, asked her how the robbery had been
7111 committed.
7112
7113 ‘Why, I am going to tell you,’ said Bounderby, irritably giving his arm
7114 to Mrs. Sparsit. ‘If you hadn’t been so mighty particular about the sum,
7115 I should have begun to tell you before. You know this lady (for she _is_
7116 a lady), Mrs. Sparsit?’
7117
7118 ‘I have already had the honour—’
7119
7120 ‘Very well. And this young man, Bitzer, you saw him too on the same
7121 occasion?’ Mr. Harthouse inclined his head in assent, and Bitzer
7122 knuckled his forehead.
7123
7124 ‘Very well. They live at the Bank. You know they live at the Bank,
7125 perhaps? Very well. Yesterday afternoon, at the close of business
7126 hours, everything was put away as usual. In the iron room that this
7127 young fellow sleeps outside of, there was never mind how much. In the
7128 little safe in young Tom’s closet, the safe used for petty purposes,
7129 there was a hundred and fifty odd pound.’
7130
7131 ‘A hundred and fifty-four, seven, one,’ said Bitzer.
7132
7133 ‘Come!’ retorted Bounderby, stopping to wheel round upon him, ‘let’s have
7134 none of _your_ interruptions. It’s enough to be robbed while you’re
7135 snoring because you’re too comfortable, without being put right with
7136 _your_ four seven ones. I didn’t snore, myself, when I was your age, let
7137 me tell you. I hadn’t victuals enough to snore. And I didn’t four seven
7138 one. Not if I knew it.’
7139
7140 Bitzer knuckled his forehead again, in a sneaking manner, and seemed at
7141 once particularly impressed and depressed by the instance last given of
7142 Mr. Bounderby’s moral abstinence.
7143
7144 ‘A hundred and fifty odd pound,’ resumed Mr. Bounderby. ‘That sum of
7145 money, young Tom locked in his safe, not a very strong safe, but that’s
7146 no matter now. Everything was left, all right. Some time in the night,
7147 while this young fellow snored—Mrs. Sparsit, ma’am, you say you have
7148 heard him snore?’
7149
7150 ‘Sir,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit, ‘I cannot say that I have heard him
7151 precisely snore, and therefore must not make that statement. But on
7152 winter evenings, when he has fallen asleep at his table, I have heard
7153 him, what I should prefer to describe as partially choke. I have heard
7154 him on such occasions produce sounds of a nature similar to what may be
7155 sometimes heard in Dutch clocks. Not,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, with a lofty
7156 sense of giving strict evidence, ‘that I would convey any imputation on
7157 his moral character. Far from it. I have always considered Bitzer a
7158 young man of the most upright principle; and to that I beg to bear my
7159 testimony.’
7160
7161 ‘Well!’ said the exasperated Bounderby, ‘while he was snoring, _or_
7162 choking, _or_ Dutch-clocking, _or_ something _or_ other—being asleep—some
7163 fellows, somehow, whether previously concealed in the house or not
7164 remains to be seen, got to young Tom’s safe, forced it, and abstracted
7165 the contents. Being then disturbed, they made off; letting themselves
7166 out at the main door, and double-locking it again (it was double-locked,
7167 and the key under Mrs. Sparsit’s pillow) with a false key, which was
7168 picked up in the street near the Bank, about twelve o’clock to-day. No
7169 alarm takes place, till this chap, Bitzer, turns out this morning, and
7170 begins to open and prepare the offices for business. Then, looking at
7171 Tom’s safe, he sees the door ajar, and finds the lock forced, and the
7172 money gone.’
7173
7174 ‘Where is Tom, by the by?’ asked Harthouse, glancing round.
7175
7176 ‘He has been helping the police,’ said Bounderby, ‘and stays behind at
7177 the Bank. I wish these fellows had tried to rob me when I was at his
7178 time of life. They would have been out of pocket if they had invested
7179 eighteenpence in the job; I can tell ’em that.’
7180
7181 ‘Is anybody suspected?’
7182
7183 ‘Suspected? I should think there was somebody suspected. Egod!’ said
7184 Bounderby, relinquishing Mrs. Sparsit’s arm to wipe his heated head.
7185 ‘Josiah Bounderby of Coketown is not to be plundered and nobody
7186 suspected. No, thank you!’
7187
7188 Might Mr. Harthouse inquire Who was suspected?
7189
7190 ‘Well,’ said Bounderby, stopping and facing about to confront them all,
7191 ‘I’ll tell you. It’s not to be mentioned everywhere; it’s not to be
7192 mentioned anywhere: in order that the scoundrels concerned (there’s a
7193 gang of ’em) may be thrown off their guard. So take this in confidence.
7194 Now wait a bit.’ Mr. Bounderby wiped his head again. ‘What should you
7195 say to;’ here he violently exploded: ‘to a Hand being in it?’
7196
7197 ‘I hope,’ said Harthouse, lazily, ‘not our friend Blackpot?’
7198
7199 ‘Say Pool instead of Pot, sir,’ returned Bounderby, ‘and that’s the man.’
7200
7201 Louisa faintly uttered some word of incredulity and surprise.
7202
7203 ‘O yes! I know!’ said Bounderby, immediately catching at the sound. ‘I
7204 know! I am used to that. I know all about it. They are the finest
7205 people in the world, these fellows are. They have got the gift of the
7206 gab, they have. They only want to have their rights explained to them,
7207 they do. But I tell you what. Show me a dissatisfied Hand, and I’ll
7208 show you a man that’s fit for anything bad, I don’t care what it is.’
7209
7210 Another of the popular fictions of Coketown, which some pains had been
7211 taken to disseminate—and which some people really believed.
7212
7213 ‘But I am acquainted with these chaps,’ said Bounderby. ‘I can read ’em
7214 off, like books. Mrs. Sparsit, ma’am, I appeal to you. What warning did
7215 I give that fellow, the first time he set foot in the house, when the
7216 express object of his visit was to know how he could knock Religion over,
7217 and floor the Established Church? Mrs. Sparsit, in point of high
7218 connexions, you are on a level with the aristocracy,—did I say, or did I
7219 not say, to that fellow, “you can’t hide the truth from me: you are not
7220 the kind of fellow I like; you’ll come to no good”?’
7221
7222 ‘Assuredly, sir,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit, ‘you did, in a highly impressive
7223 manner, give him such an admonition.’
7224
7225 ‘When he shocked you, ma’am,’ said Bounderby; ‘when he shocked your
7226 feelings?’
7227
7228 ‘Yes, sir,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit, with a meek shake of her head, ‘he
7229 certainly did so. Though I do not mean to say but that my feelings may
7230 be weaker on such points—more foolish if the term is preferred—than they
7231 might have been, if I had always occupied my present position.’
7232
7233 Mr. Bounderby stared with a bursting pride at Mr. Harthouse, as much as
7234 to say, ‘I am the proprietor of this female, and she’s worth your
7235 attention, I think.’ Then, resumed his discourse.
7236
7237 ‘You can recall for yourself, Harthouse, what I said to him when you saw
7238 him. I didn’t mince the matter with him. I am never mealy with ’em. I
7239 KNOW ’em. Very well, sir. Three days after that, he bolted. Went off,
7240 nobody knows where: as my mother did in my infancy—only with this
7241 difference, that he is a worse subject than my mother, if possible. What
7242 did he do before he went? What do you say;’ Mr. Bounderby, with his hat
7243 in his hand, gave a beat upon the crown at every little division of his
7244 sentences, as if it were a tambourine; ‘to his being seen—night after
7245 night—watching the Bank?—to his lurking about there—after dark?—To its
7246 striking Mrs. Sparsit—that he could be lurking for no good—To her calling
7247 Bitzer’s attention to him, and their both taking notice of him—And to its
7248 appearing on inquiry to-day—that he was also noticed by the neighbours?’
7249 Having come to the climax, Mr. Bounderby, like an oriental dancer, put
7250 his tambourine on his head.
7251
7252 ‘Suspicious,’ said James Harthouse, ‘certainly.’
7253
7254 ‘I think so, sir,’ said Bounderby, with a defiant nod. ‘I think so. But
7255 there are more of ’em in it. There’s an old woman. One never hears of
7256 these things till the mischief’s done; all sorts of defects are found out
7257 in the stable door after the horse is stolen; there’s an old woman turns
7258 up now. An old woman who seems to have been flying into town on a
7259 broomstick, every now and then. _She_ watches the place a whole day
7260 before this fellow begins, and on the night when you saw him, she steals
7261 away with him and holds a council with him—I suppose, to make her report
7262 on going off duty, and be damned to her.’
7263
7264 There was such a person in the room that night, and she shrunk from
7265 observation, thought Louisa.
7266
7267 ‘This is not all of ’em, even as we already know ’em,’ said Bounderby,
7268 with many nods of hidden meaning. ‘But I have said enough for the
7269 present. You’ll have the goodness to keep it quiet, and mention it to no
7270 one. It may take time, but we shall have ’em. It’s policy to give ’em
7271 line enough, and there’s no objection to that.’
7272
7273 ‘Of course, they will be punished with the utmost rigour of the law, as
7274 notice-boards observe,’ replied James Harthouse, ‘and serve them right.
7275 Fellows who go in for Banks must take the consequences. If there were no
7276 consequences, we should all go in for Banks.’ He had gently taken
7277 Louisa’s parasol from her hand, and had put it up for her; and she walked
7278 under its shade, though the sun did not shine there.
7279
7280 ‘For the present, Loo Bounderby,’ said her husband, ‘here’s Mrs. Sparsit
7281 to look after. Mrs. Sparsit’s nerves have been acted upon by this
7282 business, and she’ll stay here a day or two. So make her comfortable.’
7283
7284 ‘Thank you very much, sir,’ that discreet lady observed, ‘but pray do not
7285 let My comfort be a consideration. Anything will do for Me.’
7286
7287 It soon appeared that if Mrs. Sparsit had a failing in her association
7288 with that domestic establishment, it was that she was so excessively
7289 regardless of herself and regardful of others, as to be a nuisance. On
7290 being shown her chamber, she was so dreadfully sensible of its comforts
7291 as to suggest the inference that she would have preferred to pass the
7292 night on the mangle in the laundry. True, the Powlers and the Scadgerses
7293 were accustomed to splendour, ‘but it is my duty to remember,’ Mrs.
7294 Sparsit was fond of observing with a lofty grace: particularly when any
7295 of the domestics were present, ‘that what I was, I am no longer.
7296 Indeed,’ said she, ‘if I could altogether cancel the remembrance that Mr.
7297 Sparsit was a Powler, or that I myself am related to the Scadgers family;
7298 or if I could even revoke the fact, and make myself a person of common
7299 descent and ordinary connexions; I would gladly do so. I should think
7300 it, under existing circumstances, right to do so.’ The same Hermitical
7301 state of mind led to her renunciation of made dishes and wines at dinner,
7302 until fairly commanded by Mr. Bounderby to take them; when she said,
7303 ‘Indeed you are very good, sir;’ and departed from a resolution of which
7304 she had made rather formal and public announcement, to ‘wait for the
7305 simple mutton.’ She was likewise deeply apologetic for wanting the salt;
7306 and, feeling amiably bound to bear out Mr. Bounderby to the fullest
7307 extent in the testimony he had borne to her nerves, occasionally sat back
7308 in her chair and silently wept; at which periods a tear of large
7309 dimensions, like a crystal ear-ring, might be observed (or rather, must
7310 be, for it insisted on public notice) sliding down her Roman nose.
7311
7312 But Mrs. Sparsit’s greatest point, first and last, was her determination
7313 to pity Mr. Bounderby. There were occasions when in looking at him she
7314 was involuntarily moved to shake her head, as who would say, ‘Alas, poor
7315 Yorick!’ After allowing herself to be betrayed into these evidences of
7316 emotion, she would force a lambent brightness, and would be fitfully
7317 cheerful, and would say, ‘You have still good spirits, sir, I am thankful
7318 to find;’ and would appear to hail it as a blessed dispensation that Mr.
7319 Bounderby bore up as he did. One idiosyncrasy for which she often
7320 apologized, she found it excessively difficult to conquer. She had a
7321 curious propensity to call Mrs. Bounderby ‘Miss Gradgrind,’ and yielded
7322 to it some three or four score times in the course of the evening. Her
7323 repetition of this mistake covered Mrs. Sparsit with modest confusion;
7324 but indeed, she said, it seemed so natural to say Miss Gradgrind:
7325 whereas, to persuade herself that the young lady whom she had had the
7326 happiness of knowing from a child could be really and truly Mrs.
7327 Bounderby, she found almost impossible. It was a further singularity of
7328 this remarkable case, that the more she thought about it, the more
7329 impossible it appeared; ‘the differences,’ she observed, ‘being such.’
7330
7331 In the drawing-room after dinner, Mr. Bounderby tried the case of the
7332 robbery, examined the witnesses, made notes of the evidence, found the
7333 suspected persons guilty, and sentenced them to the extreme punishment of
7334 the law. That done, Bitzer was dismissed to town with instructions to
7335 recommend Tom to come home by the mail-train.
7336
7337 When candles were brought, Mrs. Sparsit murmured, ‘Don’t be low, sir.
7338 Pray let me see you cheerful, sir, as I used to do.’ Mr. Bounderby, upon
7339 whom these consolations had begun to produce the effect of making him, in
7340 a bull-headed blundering way, sentimental, sighed like some large
7341 sea-animal. ‘I cannot bear to see you so, sir,’ said Mrs. Sparsit. ‘Try
7342 a hand at backgammon, sir, as you used to do when I had the honour of
7343 living under your roof.’ ‘I haven’t played backgammon, ma’am,’ said Mr.
7344 Bounderby, ‘since that time.’ ‘No, sir,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, soothingly,
7345 ‘I am aware that you have not. I remember that Miss Gradgrind takes no
7346 interest in the game. But I shall be happy, sir, if you will
7347 condescend.’
7348
7349 They played near a window, opening on the garden. It was a fine night:
7350 not moonlight, but sultry and fragrant. Louisa and Mr. Harthouse
7351 strolled out into the garden, where their voices could be heard in the
7352 stillness, though not what they said. Mrs. Sparsit, from her place at
7353 the backgammon board, was constantly straining her eyes to pierce the
7354 shadows without. ‘What’s the matter, ma’am?’ said Mr. Bounderby; ‘you
7355 don’t see a Fire, do you?’ ‘Oh dear no, sir,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit, ‘I
7356 was thinking of the dew.’ ‘What have you got to do with the dew, ma’am?’
7357 said Mr. Bounderby. ‘It’s not myself, sir,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit, ‘I am
7358 fearful of Miss Gradgrind’s taking cold.’ ‘She never takes cold,’ said
7359 Mr. Bounderby. ‘Really, sir?’ said Mrs. Sparsit. And was affected with
7360 a cough in her throat.
7361
7362 When the time drew near for retiring, Mr. Bounderby took a glass of
7363 water. ‘Oh, sir?’ said Mrs. Sparsit. ‘Not your sherry warm, with
7364 lemon-peel and nutmeg?’ ‘Why, I have got out of the habit of taking it
7365 now, ma’am,’ said Mr. Bounderby. ‘The more’s the pity, sir,’ returned
7366 Mrs. Sparsit; ‘you are losing all your good old habits. Cheer up, sir!
7367 If Miss Gradgrind will permit me, I will offer to make it for you, as I
7368 have often done.’
7369
7370 Miss Gradgrind readily permitting Mrs. Sparsit to do anything she
7371 pleased, that considerate lady made the beverage, and handed it to Mr.
7372 Bounderby. ‘It will do you good, sir. It will warm your heart. It is
7373 the sort of thing you want, and ought to take, sir.’ And when Mr.
7374 Bounderby said, ‘Your health, ma’am!’ she answered with great feeling,
7375 ‘Thank you, sir. The same to you, and happiness also.’ Finally, she
7376 wished him good night, with great pathos; and Mr. Bounderby went to bed,
7377 with a maudlin persuasion that he had been crossed in something tender,
7378 though he could not, for his life, have mentioned what it was.
7379
7380 Long after Louisa had undressed and lain down, she watched and waited for
7381 her brother’s coming home. That could hardly be, she knew, until an hour
7382 past midnight; but in the country silence, which did anything but calm
7383 the trouble of her thoughts, time lagged wearily. At last, when the
7384 darkness and stillness had seemed for hours to thicken one another, she
7385 heard the bell at the gate. She felt as though she would have been glad
7386 that it rang on until daylight; but it ceased, and the circles of its
7387 last sound spread out fainter and wider in the air, and all was dead
7388 again.
7389
7390 She waited yet some quarter of an hour, as she judged. Then she arose,
7391 put on a loose robe, and went out of her room in the dark, and up the
7392 staircase to her brother’s room. His door being shut, she softly opened
7393 it and spoke to him, approaching his bed with a noiseless step.
7394
7395 She kneeled down beside it, passed her arm over his neck, and drew his
7396 face to hers. She knew that he only feigned to be asleep, but she said
7397 nothing to him.
7398
7399 He started by and by as if he were just then awakened, and asked who that
7400 was, and what was the matter?
7401
7402 ‘Tom, have you anything to tell me? If ever you loved me in your life,
7403 and have anything concealed from every one besides, tell it to me.’
7404
7405 ‘I don’t know what you mean, Loo. You have been dreaming.’
7406
7407 ‘My dear brother:’ she laid her head down on his pillow, and her hair
7408 flowed over him as if she would hide him from every one but herself: ‘is
7409 there nothing that you have to tell me? Is there nothing you can tell me
7410 if you will? You can tell me nothing that will change me. O Tom, tell
7411 me the truth!’
7412
7413 ‘I don’t know what you mean, Loo!’
7414
7415 ‘As you lie here alone, my dear, in the melancholy night, so you must lie
7416 somewhere one night, when even I, if I am living then, shall have left
7417 you. As I am here beside you, barefoot, unclothed, undistinguishable in
7418 darkness, so must I lie through all the night of my decay, until I am
7419 dust. In the name of that time, Tom, tell me the truth now!’
7420
7421 ‘What is it you want to know?’
7422
7423 ‘You may be certain;’ in the energy of her love she took him to her bosom
7424 as if he were a child; ‘that I will not reproach you. You may be certain
7425 that I will be compassionate and true to you. You may be certain that I
7426 will save you at whatever cost. O Tom, have you nothing to tell me?
7427 Whisper very softly. Say only “yes,” and I shall understand you!’
7428
7429 She turned her ear to his lips, but he remained doggedly silent.
7430
7431 ‘Not a word, Tom?’
7432
7433 ‘How can I say Yes, or how can I say No, when I don’t know what you mean?
7434 Loo, you are a brave, kind girl, worthy I begin to think of a better
7435 brother than I am. But I have nothing more to say. Go to bed, go to
7436 bed.’
7437
7438 ‘You are tired,’ she whispered presently, more in her usual way.
7439
7440 ‘Yes, I am quite tired out.’
7441
7442 ‘You have been so hurried and disturbed to-day. Have any fresh
7443 discoveries been made?’
7444
7445 ‘Only those you have heard of, from—him.’
7446
7447 ‘Tom, have you said to any one that we made a visit to those people, and
7448 that we saw those three together?’
7449
7450 ‘No. Didn’t you yourself particularly ask me to keep it quiet when you
7451 asked me to go there with you?’
7452
7453 ‘Yes. But I did not know then what was going to happen.’
7454
7455 ‘Nor I neither. How could I?’
7456
7457 He was very quick upon her with this retort.
7458
7459 ‘Ought I to say, after what has happened,’ said his sister, standing by
7460 the bed—she had gradually withdrawn herself and risen, ‘that I made that
7461 visit? Should I say so? Must I say so?’
7462
7463 ‘Good Heavens, Loo,’ returned her brother, ‘you are not in the habit of
7464 asking my advice. Say what you like. If you keep it to yourself, I
7465 shall keep it to _my_self. If you disclose it, there’s an end of it.’
7466
7467 It was too dark for either to see the other’s face; but each seemed very
7468 attentive, and to consider before speaking.
7469
7470 ‘Tom, do you believe the man I gave the money to, is really implicated in
7471 this crime?’
7472
7473 ‘I don’t know. I don’t see why he shouldn’t be.’
7474
7475 ‘He seemed to me an honest man.’
7476
7477 ‘Another person may seem to you dishonest, and yet not be so.’ There was
7478 a pause, for he had hesitated and stopped.
7479
7480 ‘In short,’ resumed Tom, as if he had made up his mind, ‘if you come to
7481 that, perhaps I was so far from being altogether in his favour, that I
7482 took him outside the door to tell him quietly, that I thought he might
7483 consider himself very well off to get such a windfall as he had got from
7484 my sister, and that I hoped he would make good use of it. You remember
7485 whether I took him out or not. I say nothing against the man; he may be
7486 a very good fellow, for anything I know; I hope he is.’
7487
7488 ‘Was he offended by what you said?’
7489
7490 ‘No, he took it pretty well; he was civil enough. Where are you, Loo?’
7491 He sat up in bed and kissed her. ‘Good night, my dear, good night.’
7492
7493 ‘You have nothing more to tell me?’
7494
7495 ‘No. What should I have? You wouldn’t have me tell you a lie!’
7496
7497 ‘I wouldn’t have you do that to-night, Tom, of all the nights in your
7498 life; many and much happier as I hope they will be.’
7499
7500 ‘Thank you, my dear Loo. I am so tired, that I am sure I wonder I don’t
7501 say anything to get to sleep. Go to bed, go to bed.’
7502
7503 Kissing her again, he turned round, drew the coverlet over his head, and
7504 lay as still as if that time had come by which she had adjured him. She
7505 stood for some time at the bedside before she slowly moved away. She
7506 stopped at the door, looked back when she had opened it, and asked him if
7507 he had called her? But he lay still, and she softly closed the door and
7508 returned to her room.
7509
7510 Then the wretched boy looked cautiously up and found her gone, crept out
7511 of bed, fastened his door, and threw himself upon his pillow again:
7512 tearing his hair, morosely crying, grudgingly loving her, hatefully but
7513 impenitently spurning himself, and no less hatefully and unprofitably
7514 spurning all the good in the world.
7515
7516
7517
7518 CHAPTER IX
7519 HEARING THE LAST OF IT
7520
7521
7522 MRS. SPARSIT, lying by to recover the tone of her nerves in Mr.
7523 Bounderby’s retreat, kept such a sharp look-out, night and day, under her
7524 Coriolanian eyebrows, that her eyes, like a couple of lighthouses on an
7525 iron-bound coast, might have warned all prudent mariners from that bold
7526 rock her Roman nose and the dark and craggy region in its neighbourhood,
7527 but for the placidity of her manner. Although it was hard to believe
7528 that her retiring for the night could be anything but a form, so severely
7529 wide awake were those classical eyes of hers, and so impossible did it
7530 seem that her rigid nose could yield to any relaxing influence, yet her
7531 manner of sitting, smoothing her uncomfortable, not to say, gritty
7532 mittens (they were constructed of a cool fabric like a meat-safe), or of
7533 ambling to unknown places of destination with her foot in her cotton
7534 stirrup, was so perfectly serene, that most observers would have been
7535 constrained to suppose her a dove, embodied by some freak of nature, in
7536 the earthly tabernacle of a bird of the hook-beaked order.
7537
7538 She was a most wonderful woman for prowling about the house. How she got
7539 from story to story was a mystery beyond solution. A lady so decorous in
7540 herself, and so highly connected, was not to be suspected of dropping
7541 over the banisters or sliding down them, yet her extraordinary facility
7542 of locomotion suggested the wild idea. Another noticeable circumstance
7543 in Mrs. Sparsit was, that she was never hurried. She would shoot with
7544 consummate velocity from the roof to the hall, yet would be in full
7545 possession of her breath and dignity on the moment of her arrival there.
7546 Neither was she ever seen by human vision to go at a great pace.
7547
7548 She took very kindly to Mr. Harthouse, and had some pleasant conversation
7549 with him soon after her arrival. She made him her stately curtsey in the
7550 garden, one morning before breakfast.
7551
7552 ‘It appears but yesterday, sir,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, ‘that I had the
7553 honour of receiving you at the Bank, when you were so good as to wish to
7554 be made acquainted with Mr. Bounderby’s address.’
7555
7556 ‘An occasion, I am sure, not to be forgotten by myself in the course of
7557 Ages,’ said Mr. Harthouse, inclining his head to Mrs. Sparsit with the
7558 most indolent of all possible airs.
7559
7560 ‘We live in a singular world, sir,’ said Mrs. Sparsit.
7561
7562 ‘I have had the honour, by a coincidence of which I am proud, to have
7563 made a remark, similar in effect, though not so epigrammatically
7564 expressed.’
7565
7566 ‘A singular world, I would say, sir,’ pursued Mrs. Sparsit; after
7567 acknowledging the compliment with a drooping of her dark eyebrows, not
7568 altogether so mild in its expression as her voice was in its dulcet
7569 tones; ‘as regards the intimacies we form at one time, with individuals
7570 we were quite ignorant of, at another. I recall, sir, that on that
7571 occasion you went so far as to say you were actually apprehensive of Miss
7572 Gradgrind.’
7573
7574 ‘Your memory does me more honour than my insignificance deserves. I
7575 availed myself of your obliging hints to correct my timidity, and it is
7576 unnecessary to add that they were perfectly accurate. Mrs. Sparsit’s
7577 talent for—in fact for anything requiring accuracy—with a combination of
7578 strength of mind—and Family—is too habitually developed to admit of any
7579 question.’ He was almost falling asleep over this compliment; it took
7580 him so long to get through, and his mind wandered so much in the course
7581 of its execution.
7582
7583 ‘You found Miss Gradgrind—I really cannot call her Mrs. Bounderby; it’s
7584 very absurd of me—as youthful as I described her?’ asked Mrs. Sparsit,
7585 sweetly.
7586
7587 ‘You drew her portrait perfectly,’ said Mr. Harthouse. ‘Presented her
7588 dead image.’
7589
7590 ‘Very engaging, sir,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, causing her mittens slowly to
7591 revolve over one another.
7592
7593 ‘Highly so.’
7594
7595 ‘It used to be considered,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, ‘that Miss Gradgrind was
7596 wanting in animation, but I confess she appears to me considerably and
7597 strikingly improved in that respect. Ay, and indeed here _is_ Mr.
7598 Bounderby!’ cried Mrs. Sparsit, nodding her head a great many times, as
7599 if she had been talking and thinking of no one else. ‘How do you find
7600 yourself this morning, sir? Pray let us see you cheerful, sir.’
7601
7602 Now, these persistent assuagements of his misery, and lightenings of his
7603 load, had by this time begun to have the effect of making Mr. Bounderby
7604 softer than usual towards Mrs. Sparsit, and harder than usual to most
7605 other people from his wife downward. So, when Mrs. Sparsit said with
7606 forced lightness of heart, ‘You want your breakfast, sir, but I dare say
7607 Miss Gradgrind will soon be here to preside at the table,’ Mr. Bounderby
7608 replied, ‘If I waited to be taken care of by my wife, ma’am, I believe
7609 you know pretty well I should wait till Doomsday, so I’ll trouble _you_
7610 to take charge of the teapot.’ Mrs. Sparsit complied, and assumed her
7611 old position at table.
7612
7613 This again made the excellent woman vastly sentimental. She was so
7614 humble withal, that when Louisa appeared, she rose, protesting she never
7615 could think of sitting in that place under existing circumstances, often
7616 as she had had the honour of making Mr. Bounderby’s breakfast, before
7617 Mrs. Gradgrind—she begged pardon, she meant to say Miss Bounderby—she
7618 hoped to be excused, but she really could not get it right yet, though
7619 she trusted to become familiar with it by and by—had assumed her present
7620 position. It was only (she observed) because Miss Gradgrind happened to
7621 be a little late, and Mr. Bounderby’s time was so very precious, and she
7622 knew it of old to be so essential that he should breakfast to the moment,
7623 that she had taken the liberty of complying with his request; long as his
7624 will had been a law to her.
7625
7626 ‘There! Stop where you are, ma’am,’ said Mr. Bounderby, ‘stop where you
7627 are! Mrs. Bounderby will be very glad to be relieved of the trouble, I
7628 believe.’
7629
7630 ‘Don’t say that, sir,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit, almost with severity,
7631 ‘because that is very unkind to Mrs. Bounderby. And to be unkind is not
7632 to be you, sir.’
7633
7634 ‘You may set your mind at rest, ma’am.—You can take it very quietly,
7635 can’t you, Loo?’ said Mr. Bounderby, in a blustering way to his wife.
7636
7637 ‘Of course. It is of no moment. Why should it be of any importance to
7638 me?’
7639
7640 ‘Why should it be of any importance to any one, Mrs. Sparsit, ma’am?’
7641 said Mr. Bounderby, swelling with a sense of slight. ‘You attach too
7642 much importance to these things, ma’am. By George, you’ll be corrupted
7643 in some of your notions here. You are old-fashioned, ma’am. You are
7644 behind Tom Gradgrind’s children’s time.’
7645
7646 ‘What is the matter with you?’ asked Louisa, coldly surprised. ‘What has
7647 given you offence?’
7648
7649 ‘Offence!’ repeated Bounderby. ‘Do you suppose if there was any offence
7650 given me, I shouldn’t name it, and request to have it corrected? I am a
7651 straightforward man, I believe. I don’t go beating about for
7652 side-winds.’
7653
7654 ‘I suppose no one ever had occasion to think you too diffident, or too
7655 delicate,’ Louisa answered him composedly: ‘I have never made that
7656 objection to you, either as a child or as a woman. I don’t understand
7657 what you would have.’
7658
7659 ‘Have?’ returned Mr. Bounderby. ‘Nothing. Otherwise, don’t you, Loo
7660 Bounderby, know thoroughly well that I, Josiah Bounderby of Coketown,
7661 would have it?’
7662
7663 She looked at him, as he struck the table and made the teacups ring, with
7664 a proud colour in her face that was a new change, Mr. Harthouse thought.
7665 ‘You are incomprehensible this morning,’ said Louisa. ‘Pray take no
7666 further trouble to explain yourself. I am not curious to know your
7667 meaning. What does it matter?’
7668
7669 Nothing more was said on this theme, and Mr. Harthouse was soon idly gay
7670 on indifferent subjects. But from this day, the Sparsit action upon Mr.
7671 Bounderby threw Louisa and James Harthouse more together, and
7672 strengthened the dangerous alienation from her husband and confidence
7673 against him with another, into which she had fallen by degrees so fine
7674 that she could not retrace them if she tried. But whether she ever tried
7675 or no, lay hidden in her own closed heart.
7676
7677 Mrs. Sparsit was so much affected on this particular occasion, that,
7678 assisting Mr. Bounderby to his hat after breakfast, and being then alone
7679 with him in the hall, she imprinted a chaste kiss upon his hand, murmured
7680 ‘My benefactor!’ and retired, overwhelmed with grief. Yet it is an
7681 indubitable fact, within the cognizance of this history, that five
7682 minutes after he had left the house in the self-same hat, the same
7683 descendant of the Scadgerses and connexion by matrimony of the Powlers,
7684 shook her right-hand mitten at his portrait, made a contemptuous grimace
7685 at that work of art, and said ‘Serve you right, you Noodle, and I am glad
7686 of it.’
7687
7688 Mr. Bounderby had not been long gone, when Bitzer appeared. Bitzer had
7689 come down by train, shrieking and rattling over the long line of arches
7690 that bestrode the wild country of past and present coal-pits, with an
7691 express from Stone Lodge. It was a hasty note to inform Louisa that Mrs.
7692 Gradgrind lay very ill. She had never been well within her daughter’s
7693 knowledge; but, she had declined within the last few days, had continued
7694 sinking all through the night, and was now as nearly dead, as her limited
7695 capacity of being in any state that implied the ghost of an intention to
7696 get out of it, allowed.
7697
7698 Accompanied by the lightest of porters, fit colourless servitor at
7699 Death’s door when Mrs. Gradgrind knocked, Louisa rumbled to Coketown,
7700 over the coal-pits past and present, and was whirled into its smoky jaws.
7701 She dismissed the messenger to his own devices, and rode away to her old
7702 home.
7703
7704 She had seldom been there since her marriage. Her father was usually
7705 sifting and sifting at his parliamentary cinder-heap in London (without
7706 being observed to turn up many precious articles among the rubbish), and
7707 was still hard at it in the national dust-yard. Her mother had taken it
7708 rather as a disturbance than otherwise, to be visited, as she reclined
7709 upon her sofa; young people, Louisa felt herself all unfit for; Sissy she
7710 had never softened to again, since the night when the stroller’s child
7711 had raised her eyes to look at Mr. Bounderby’s intended wife. She had no
7712 inducements to go back, and had rarely gone.
7713
7714 Neither, as she approached her old home now, did any of the best
7715 influences of old home descend upon her. The dreams of childhood—its
7716 airy fables; its graceful, beautiful, humane, impossible adornments of
7717 the world beyond: so good to be believed in once, so good to be
7718 remembered when outgrown, for then the least among them rises to the
7719 stature of a great Charity in the heart, suffering little children to
7720 come into the midst of it, and to keep with their pure hands a garden in
7721 the stony ways of this world, wherein it were better for all the children
7722 of Adam that they should oftener sun themselves, simple and trustful, and
7723 not worldly-wise—what had she to do with these? Remembrances of how she
7724 had journeyed to the little that she knew, by the enchanted roads of what
7725 she and millions of innocent creatures had hoped and imagined; of how,
7726 first coming upon Reason through the tender light of Fancy, she had seen
7727 it a beneficent god, deferring to gods as great as itself; not a grim
7728 Idol, cruel and cold, with its victims bound hand to foot, and its big
7729 dumb shape set up with a sightless stare, never to be moved by anything
7730 but so many calculated tons of leverage—what had she to do with these?
7731 Her remembrances of home and childhood were remembrances of the drying up
7732 of every spring and fountain in her young heart as it gushed out. The
7733 golden waters were not there. They were flowing for the fertilization of
7734 the land where grapes are gathered from thorns, and figs from thistles.
7735
7736 She went, with a heavy, hardened kind of sorrow upon her, into the house
7737 and into her mother’s room. Since the time of her leaving home, Sissy
7738 had lived with the rest of the family on equal terms. Sissy was at her
7739 mother’s side; and Jane, her sister, now ten or twelve years old, was in
7740 the room.
7741
7742 There was great trouble before it could be made known to Mrs. Gradgrind
7743 that her eldest child was there. She reclined, propped up, from mere
7744 habit, on a couch: as nearly in her old usual attitude, as anything so
7745 helpless could be kept in. She had positively refused to take to her
7746 bed; on the ground that if she did, she would never hear the last of it.
7747
7748 Her feeble voice sounded so far away in her bundle of shawls, and the
7749 sound of another voice addressing her seemed to take such a long time in
7750 getting down to her ears, that she might have been lying at the bottom of
7751 a well. The poor lady was nearer Truth than she ever had been: which had
7752 much to do with it.
7753
7754 On being told that Mrs. Bounderby was there, she replied, at
7755 cross-purposes, that she had never called him by that name since he
7756 married Louisa; that pending her choice of an objectionable name, she had
7757 called him J; and that she could not at present depart from that
7758 regulation, not being yet provided with a permanent substitute. Louisa
7759 had sat by her for some minutes, and had spoken to her often, before she
7760 arrived at a clear understanding who it was. She then seemed to come to
7761 it all at once.
7762
7763 ‘Well, my dear,’ said Mrs. Gradgrind, ‘and I hope you are going on
7764 satisfactorily to yourself. It was all your father’s doing. He set his
7765 heart upon it. And he ought to know.’
7766
7767 ‘I want to hear of you, mother; not of myself.’
7768
7769 ‘You want to hear of me, my dear? That’s something new, I am sure, when
7770 anybody wants to hear of me. Not at all well, Louisa. Very faint and
7771 giddy.’
7772
7773 ‘Are you in pain, dear mother?’
7774
7775 ‘I think there’s a pain somewhere in the room,’ said Mrs. Gradgrind, ‘but
7776 I couldn’t positively say that I have got it.’
7777
7778 After this strange speech, she lay silent for some time. Louisa, holding
7779 her hand, could feel no pulse; but kissing it, could see a slight thin
7780 thread of life in fluttering motion.
7781
7782 ‘You very seldom see your sister,’ said Mrs. Gradgrind. ‘She grows like
7783 you. I wish you would look at her. Sissy, bring her here.’
7784
7785 She was brought, and stood with her hand in her sister’s. Louisa had
7786 observed her with her arm round Sissy’s neck, and she felt the difference
7787 of this approach.
7788
7789 ‘Do you see the likeness, Louisa?’
7790
7791 ‘Yes, mother. I should think her like me. But—’
7792
7793 ‘Eh! Yes, I always say so,’ Mrs. Gradgrind cried, with unexpected
7794 quickness. ‘And that reminds me. I—I want to speak to you, my dear.
7795 Sissy, my good girl, leave us alone a minute.’ Louisa had relinquished
7796 the hand: had thought that her sister’s was a better and brighter face
7797 than hers had ever been: had seen in it, not without a rising feeling of
7798 resentment, even in that place and at that time, something of the
7799 gentleness of the other face in the room; the sweet face with the
7800 trusting eyes, made paler than watching and sympathy made it, by the rich
7801 dark hair.
7802
7803 Left alone with her mother, Louisa saw her lying with an awful lull upon
7804 her face, like one who was floating away upon some great water, all
7805 resistance over, content to be carried down the stream. She put the
7806 shadow of a hand to her lips again, and recalled her.
7807
7808 ‘You were going to speak to me, mother.’
7809
7810 ‘Eh? Yes, to be sure, my dear. You know your father is almost always
7811 away now, and therefore I must write to him about it.’
7812
7813 ‘About what, mother? Don’t be troubled. About what?’
7814
7815 ‘You must remember, my dear, that whenever I have said anything, on any
7816 subject, I have never heard the last of it: and consequently, that I have
7817 long left off saying anything.’
7818
7819 ‘I can hear you, mother.’ But, it was only by dint of bending down to
7820 her ear, and at the same time attentively watching the lips as they
7821 moved, that she could link such faint and broken sounds into any chain of
7822 connexion.
7823
7824 ‘You learnt a great deal, Louisa, and so did your brother. Ologies of
7825 all kinds from morning to night. If there is any Ology left, of any
7826 description, that has not been worn to rags in this house, all I can say
7827 is, I hope I shall never hear its name.’
7828
7829 ‘I can hear you, mother, when you have strength to go on.’ This, to keep
7830 her from floating away.
7831
7832 ‘But there is something—not an Ology at all—that your father has missed,
7833 or forgotten, Louisa. I don’t know what it is. I have often sat with
7834 Sissy near me, and thought about it. I shall never get its name now.
7835 But your father may. It makes me restless. I want to write to him, to
7836 find out for God’s sake, what it is. Give me a pen, give me a pen.’
7837
7838 Even the power of restlessness was gone, except from the poor head, which
7839 could just turn from side to side.
7840
7841 She fancied, however, that her request had been complied with, and that
7842 the pen she could not have held was in her hand. It matters little what
7843 figures of wonderful no-meaning she began to trace upon her wrappers.
7844 The hand soon stopped in the midst of them; the light that had always
7845 been feeble and dim behind the weak transparency, went out; and even Mrs.
7846 Gradgrind, emerged from the shadow in which man walketh and disquieteth
7847 himself in vain, took upon her the dread solemnity of the sages and
7848 patriarchs.
7849
7850
7851
7852 CHAPTER X
7853 MRS. SPARSIT’S STAIRCASE
7854
7855
7856 MRS. SPARSIT’S nerves being slow to recover their tone, the worthy woman
7857 made a stay of some weeks in duration at Mr. Bounderby’s retreat, where,
7858 notwithstanding her anchorite turn of mind based upon her becoming
7859 consciousness of her altered station, she resigned herself with noble
7860 fortitude to lodging, as one may say, in clover, and feeding on the fat
7861 of the land. During the whole term of this recess from the guardianship
7862 of the Bank, Mrs. Sparsit was a pattern of consistency; continuing to
7863 take such pity on Mr. Bounderby to his face, as is rarely taken on man,
7864 and to call his portrait a Noodle to _its_ face, with the greatest
7865 acrimony and contempt.
7866
7867 Mr. Bounderby, having got it into his explosive composition that Mrs.
7868 Sparsit was a highly superior woman to perceive that he had that general
7869 cross upon him in his deserts (for he had not yet settled what it was),
7870 and further that Louisa would have objected to her as a frequent visitor
7871 if it had comported with his greatness that she should object to anything
7872 he chose to do, resolved not to lose sight of Mrs. Sparsit easily. So
7873 when her nerves were strung up to the pitch of again consuming
7874 sweetbreads in solitude, he said to her at the dinner-table, on the day
7875 before her departure, ‘I tell you what, ma’am; you shall come down here
7876 of a Saturday, while the fine weather lasts, and stay till Monday.’ To
7877 which Mrs. Sparsit returned, in effect, though not of the Mahomedan
7878 persuasion: ‘To hear is to obey.’
7879
7880 Now, Mrs. Sparsit was not a poetical woman; but she took an idea in the
7881 nature of an allegorical fancy, into her head. Much watching of Louisa,
7882 and much consequent observation of her impenetrable demeanour, which
7883 keenly whetted and sharpened Mrs. Sparsit’s edge, must have given her as
7884 it were a lift, in the way of inspiration. She erected in her mind a
7885 mighty Staircase, with a dark pit of shame and ruin at the bottom; and
7886 down those stairs, from day to day and hour to hour, she saw Louisa
7887 coming.
7888
7889 It became the business of Mrs. Sparsit’s life, to look up at her
7890 staircase, and to watch Louisa coming down. Sometimes slowly, sometimes
7891 quickly, sometimes several steps at one bout, sometimes stopping, never
7892 turning back. If she had once turned back, it might have been the death
7893 of Mrs. Sparsit in spleen and grief.
7894
7895 She had been descending steadily, to the day, and on the day, when Mr.
7896 Bounderby issued the weekly invitation recorded above. Mrs. Sparsit was
7897 in good spirits, and inclined to be conversational.
7898
7899 ‘And pray, sir,’ said she, ‘if I may venture to ask a question
7900 appertaining to any subject on which you show reserve—which is indeed
7901 hardy in me, for I well know you have a reason for everything you do—have
7902 you received intelligence respecting the robbery?’
7903
7904 ‘Why, ma’am, no; not yet. Under the circumstances, I didn’t expect it
7905 yet. Rome wasn’t built in a day, ma’am.’
7906
7907 ‘Very true, sir,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, shaking her head.
7908
7909 ‘Nor yet in a week, ma’am.’
7910
7911 ‘No, indeed, sir,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit, with a gentle melancholy upon
7912 her.
7913
7914 ‘In a similar manner, ma’am,’ said Bounderby, ‘I can wait, you know. If
7915 Romulus and Remus could wait, Josiah Bounderby can wait. They were
7916 better off in their youth than I was, however. They had a she-wolf for a
7917 nurse; I had only a she-wolf for a grandmother. She didn’t give any
7918 milk, ma’am; she gave bruises. She was a regular Alderney at that.’
7919
7920 ‘Ah!’ Mrs. Sparsit sighed and shuddered.
7921
7922 ‘No, ma’am,’ continued Bounderby, ‘I have not heard anything more about
7923 it. It’s in hand, though; and young Tom, who rather sticks to business
7924 at present—something new for him; he hadn’t the schooling _I_ had—is
7925 helping. My injunction is, Keep it quiet, and let it seem to blow over.
7926 Do what you like under the rose, but don’t give a sign of what you’re
7927 about; or half a hundred of ’em will combine together and get this fellow
7928 who has bolted, out of reach for good. Keep it quiet, and the thieves
7929 will grow in confidence by little and little, and we shall have ’em.’
7930
7931 ‘Very sagacious indeed, sir,’ said Mrs. Sparsit. ‘Very interesting. The
7932 old woman you mentioned, sir—’
7933
7934 ‘The old woman I mentioned, ma’am,’ said Bounderby, cutting the matter
7935 short, as it was nothing to boast about, ‘is not laid hold of; but, she
7936 may take her oath she will be, if that is any satisfaction to her
7937 villainous old mind. In the mean time, ma’am, I am of opinion, if you
7938 ask me my opinion, that the less she is talked about, the better.’
7939
7940 The same evening, Mrs. Sparsit, in her chamber window, resting from her
7941 packing operations, looked towards her great staircase and saw Louisa
7942 still descending.
7943
7944 She sat by Mr. Harthouse, in an alcove in the garden, talking very low;
7945 he stood leaning over her, as they whispered together, and his face
7946 almost touched her hair. ‘If not quite!’ said Mrs. Sparsit, straining
7947 her hawk’s eyes to the utmost. Mrs. Sparsit was too distant to hear a
7948 word of their discourse, or even to know that they were speaking softly,
7949 otherwise than from the expression of their figures; but what they said
7950 was this:
7951
7952 ‘You recollect the man, Mr. Harthouse?’
7953
7954 ‘Oh, perfectly!’
7955
7956 ‘His face, and his manner, and what he said?’
7957
7958 ‘Perfectly. And an infinitely dreary person he appeared to me to be.
7959 Lengthy and prosy in the extreme. It was knowing to hold forth, in the
7960 humble-virtue school of eloquence; but, I assure you I thought at the
7961 time, “My good fellow, you are over-doing this!”’
7962
7963 ‘It has been very difficult to me to think ill of that man.’
7964
7965 ‘My dear Louisa—as Tom says.’ Which he never did say. ‘You know no good
7966 of the fellow?’
7967
7968 ‘No, certainly.’
7969
7970 ‘Nor of any other such person?’
7971
7972 ‘How can I,’ she returned, with more of her first manner on her than he
7973 had lately seen, ‘when I know nothing of them, men or women?’
7974
7975 ‘My dear Louisa, then consent to receive the submissive representation of
7976 your devoted friend, who knows something of several varieties of his
7977 excellent fellow-creatures—for excellent they are, I am quite ready to
7978 believe, in spite of such little foibles as always helping themselves to
7979 what they can get hold of. This fellow talks. Well; every fellow talks.
7980 He professes morality. Well; all sorts of humbugs profess morality.
7981 From the House of Commons to the House of Correction, there is a general
7982 profession of morality, except among our people; it really is that
7983 exception which makes our people quite reviving. You saw and heard the
7984 case. Here was one of the fluffy classes pulled up extremely short by my
7985 esteemed friend Mr. Bounderby—who, as we know, is not possessed of that
7986 delicacy which would soften so tight a hand. The member of the fluffy
7987 classes was injured, exasperated, left the house grumbling, met somebody
7988 who proposed to him to go in for some share in this Bank business, went
7989 in, put something in his pocket which had nothing in it before, and
7990 relieved his mind extremely. Really he would have been an uncommon,
7991 instead of a common, fellow, if he had not availed himself of such an
7992 opportunity. Or he may have originated it altogether, if he had the
7993 cleverness.’
7994
7995 ‘I almost feel as though it must be bad in me,’ returned Louisa, after
7996 sitting thoughtful awhile, ‘to be so ready to agree with you, and to be
7997 so lightened in my heart by what you say.’
7998
7999 ‘I only say what is reasonable; nothing worse. I have talked it over
8000 with my friend Tom more than once—of course I remain on terms of perfect
8001 confidence with Tom—and he is quite of my opinion, and I am quite of his.
8002 Will you walk?’
8003
8004 They strolled away, among the lanes beginning to be indistinct in the
8005 twilight—she leaning on his arm—and she little thought how she was going
8006 down, down, down, Mrs. Sparsit’s staircase.
8007
8008 Night and day, Mrs. Sparsit kept it standing. When Louisa had arrived at
8009 the bottom and disappeared in the gulf, it might fall in upon her if it
8010 would; but, until then, there it was to be, a Building, before Mrs.
8011 Sparsit’s eyes. And there Louisa always was, upon it.
8012
8013 And always gliding down, down, down!
8014
8015 Mrs. Sparsit saw James Harthouse come and go; she heard of him here and
8016 there; she saw the changes of the face he had studied; she, too, remarked
8017 to a nicety how and when it clouded, how and when it cleared; she kept
8018 her black eyes wide open, with no touch of pity, with no touch of
8019 compunction, all absorbed in interest. In the interest of seeing her,
8020 ever drawing, with no hand to stay her, nearer and nearer to the bottom
8021 of this new Giant’s Staircase.
8022
8023 With all her deference for Mr. Bounderby as contradistinguished from his
8024 portrait, Mrs. Sparsit had not the smallest intention of interrupting the
8025 descent. Eager to see it accomplished, and yet patient, she waited for
8026 the last fall, as for the ripeness and fulness of the harvest of her
8027 hopes. Hushed in expectancy, she kept her wary gaze upon the stairs; and
8028 seldom so much as darkly shook her right mitten (with her fist in it), at
8029 the figure coming down.
8030
8031
8032
8033 CHAPTER XI
8034 LOWER AND LOWER
8035
8036
8037 THE figure descended the great stairs, steadily, steadily; always
8038 verging, like a weight in deep water, to the black gulf at the bottom.
8039
8040 Mr. Gradgrind, apprised of his wife’s decease, made an expedition from
8041 London, and buried her in a business-like manner. He then returned with
8042 promptitude to the national cinder-heap, and resumed his sifting for the
8043 odds and ends he wanted, and his throwing of the dust about into the eyes
8044 of other people who wanted other odds and ends—in fact resumed his
8045 parliamentary duties.
8046
8047 In the meantime, Mrs. Sparsit kept unwinking watch and ward. Separated
8048 from her staircase, all the week, by the length of iron road dividing
8049 Coketown from the country house, she yet maintained her cat-like
8050 observation of Louisa, through her husband, through her brother, through
8051 James Harthouse, through the outsides of letters and packets, through
8052 everything animate and inanimate that at any time went near the stairs.
8053 ‘Your foot on the last step, my lady,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, apostrophizing
8054 the descending figure, with the aid of her threatening mitten, ‘and all
8055 your art shall never blind me.’
8056
8057 Art or nature though, the original stock of Louisa’s character or the
8058 graft of circumstances upon it,—her curious reserve did baffle, while it
8059 stimulated, one as sagacious as Mrs. Sparsit. There were times when Mr.
8060 James Harthouse was not sure of her. There were times when he could not
8061 read the face he had studied so long; and when this lonely girl was a
8062 greater mystery to him, than any woman of the world with a ring of
8063 satellites to help her.
8064
8065 So the time went on; until it happened that Mr. Bounderby was called away
8066 from home by business which required his presence elsewhere, for three or
8067 four days. It was on a Friday that he intimated this to Mrs. Sparsit at
8068 the Bank, adding: ‘But you’ll go down to-morrow, ma’am, all the same.
8069 You’ll go down just as if I was there. It will make no difference to
8070 you.’
8071
8072 ‘Pray, sir,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit, reproachfully, ‘let me beg you not to
8073 say that. Your absence will make a vast difference to me, sir, as I
8074 think you very well know.’
8075
8076 ‘Well, ma’am, then you must get on in my absence as well as you can,’
8077 said Mr. Bounderby, not displeased.
8078
8079 ‘Mr. Bounderby,’ retorted Mrs. Sparsit, ‘your will is to me a law, sir;
8080 otherwise, it might be my inclination to dispute your kind commands, not
8081 feeling sure that it will be quite so agreeable to Miss Gradgrind to
8082 receive me, as it ever is to your own munificent hospitality. But you
8083 shall say no more, sir. I will go, upon your invitation.’
8084
8085 ‘Why, when I invite you to my house, ma’am,’ said Bounderby, opening his
8086 eyes, ‘I should hope you want no other invitation.’
8087
8088 ‘No, indeed, sir,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit, ‘I should hope not. Say no
8089 more, sir. I would, sir, I could see you gay again.’
8090
8091 ‘What do you mean, ma’am?’ blustered Bounderby.
8092
8093 ‘Sir,’ rejoined Mrs. Sparsit, ‘there was wont to be an elasticity in you
8094 which I sadly miss. Be buoyant, sir!’
8095
8096 Mr. Bounderby, under the influence of this difficult adjuration, backed
8097 up by her compassionate eye, could only scratch his head in a feeble and
8098 ridiculous manner, and afterwards assert himself at a distance, by being
8099 heard to bully the small fry of business all the morning.
8100
8101 ‘Bitzer,’ said Mrs. Sparsit that afternoon, when her patron was gone on
8102 his journey, and the Bank was closing, ‘present my compliments to young
8103 Mr. Thomas, and ask him if he would step up and partake of a lamb chop
8104 and walnut ketchup, with a glass of India ale?’ Young Mr. Thomas being
8105 usually ready for anything in that way, returned a gracious answer, and
8106 followed on its heels. ‘Mr. Thomas,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, ‘these plain
8107 viands being on table, I thought you might be tempted.’
8108
8109 ‘Thank’ee, Mrs. Sparsit,’ said the whelp. And gloomily fell to.
8110
8111 ‘How is Mr. Harthouse, Mr. Tom?’ asked Mrs. Sparsit.
8112
8113 ‘Oh, he’s all right,’ said Tom.
8114
8115 ‘Where may he be at present?’ Mrs. Sparsit asked in a light
8116 conversational manner, after mentally devoting the whelp to the Furies
8117 for being so uncommunicative.
8118
8119 ‘He is shooting in Yorkshire,’ said Tom. ‘Sent Loo a basket half as big
8120 as a church, yesterday.’
8121
8122 ‘The kind of gentleman, now,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, sweetly, ‘whom one might
8123 wager to be a good shot!’
8124
8125 ‘Crack,’ said Tom.
8126
8127 He had long been a down-looking young fellow, but this characteristic had
8128 so increased of late, that he never raised his eyes to any face for three
8129 seconds together. Mrs. Sparsit consequently had ample means of watching
8130 his looks, if she were so inclined.
8131
8132 ‘Mr. Harthouse is a great favourite of mine,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, ‘as
8133 indeed he is of most people. May we expect to see him again shortly, Mr.
8134 Tom?’
8135
8136 ‘Why, _I_ expect to see him to-morrow,’ returned the whelp.
8137
8138 ‘Good news!’ cried Mrs. Sparsit, blandly.
8139
8140 ‘I have got an appointment with him to meet him in the evening at the
8141 station here,’ said Tom, ‘and I am going to dine with him afterwards, I
8142 believe. He is not coming down to the country house for a week or so,
8143 being due somewhere else. At least, he says so; but I shouldn’t wonder
8144 if he was to stop here over Sunday, and stray that way.’
8145
8146 ‘Which reminds me!’ said Mrs. Sparsit. ‘Would you remember a message to
8147 your sister, Mr. Tom, if I was to charge you with one?’
8148
8149 ‘Well? I’ll try,’ returned the reluctant whelp, ‘if it isn’t a long un.’
8150
8151 ‘It is merely my respectful compliments,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, ‘and I fear
8152 I may not trouble her with my society this week; being still a little
8153 nervous, and better perhaps by my poor self.’
8154
8155 ‘Oh! If that’s all,’ observed Tom, ‘it wouldn’t much matter, even if I
8156 was to forget it, for Loo’s not likely to think of you unless she sees
8157 you.’
8158
8159 Having paid for his entertainment with this agreeable compliment, he
8160 relapsed into a hangdog silence until there was no more India ale left,
8161 when he said, ‘Well, Mrs. Sparsit, I must be off!’ and went off.
8162
8163 Next day, Saturday, Mrs. Sparsit sat at her window all day long looking
8164 at the customers coming in and out, watching the postmen, keeping an eye
8165 on the general traffic of the street, revolving many things in her mind,
8166 but, above all, keeping her attention on her staircase. The evening
8167 come, she put on her bonnet and shawl, and went quietly out: having her
8168 reasons for hovering in a furtive way about the station by which a
8169 passenger would arrive from Yorkshire, and for preferring to peep into it
8170 round pillars and corners, and out of ladies’ waiting-room windows, to
8171 appearing in its precincts openly.
8172
8173 Tom was in attendance, and loitered about until the expected train came
8174 in. It brought no Mr. Harthouse. Tom waited until the crowd had
8175 dispersed, and the bustle was over; and then referred to a posted list of
8176 trains, and took counsel with porters. That done, he strolled away idly,
8177 stopping in the street and looking up it and down it, and lifting his hat
8178 off and putting it on again, and yawning and stretching himself, and
8179 exhibiting all the symptoms of mortal weariness to be expected in one who
8180 had still to wait until the next train should come in, an hour and forty
8181 minutes hence.
8182
8183 ‘This is a device to keep him out of the way,’ said Mrs. Sparsit,
8184 starting from the dull office window whence she had watched him last.
8185 ‘Harthouse is with his sister now!’
8186
8187 It was the conception of an inspired moment, and she shot off with her
8188 utmost swiftness to work it out. The station for the country house was
8189 at the opposite end of the town, the time was short, the road not easy;
8190 but she was so quick in pouncing on a disengaged coach, so quick in
8191 darting out of it, producing her money, seizing her ticket, and diving
8192 into the train, that she was borne along the arches spanning the land of
8193 coal-pits past and present, as if she had been caught up in a cloud and
8194 whirled away.
8195
8196 All the journey, immovable in the air though never left behind; plain to
8197 the dark eyes of her mind, as the electric wires which ruled a colossal
8198 strip of music-paper out of the evening sky, were plain to the dark eyes
8199 of her body; Mrs. Sparsit saw her staircase, with the figure coming down.
8200 Very near the bottom now. Upon the brink of the abyss.
8201
8202 An overcast September evening, just at nightfall, saw beneath its
8203 drooping eyelids Mrs. Sparsit glide out of her carriage, pass down the
8204 wooden steps of the little station into a stony road, cross it into a
8205 green lane, and become hidden in a summer-growth of leaves and branches.
8206 One or two late birds sleepily chirping in their nests, and a bat heavily
8207 crossing and recrossing her, and the reek of her own tread in the thick
8208 dust that felt like velvet, were all Mrs. Sparsit heard or saw until she
8209 very softly closed a gate.
8210
8211 She went up to the house, keeping within the shrubbery, and went round
8212 it, peeping between the leaves at the lower windows. Most of them were
8213 open, as they usually were in such warm weather, but there were no lights
8214 yet, and all was silent. She tried the garden with no better effect.
8215 She thought of the wood, and stole towards it, heedless of long grass and
8216 briers: of worms, snails, and slugs, and all the creeping things that be.
8217 With her dark eyes and her hook nose warily in advance of her, Mrs.
8218 Sparsit softly crushed her way through the thick undergrowth, so intent
8219 upon her object that she probably would have done no less, if the wood
8220 had been a wood of adders.
8221
8222 Hark!
8223
8224 The smaller birds might have tumbled out of their nests, fascinated by
8225 the glittering of Mrs. Sparsit’s eyes in the gloom, as she stopped and
8226 listened.
8227
8228 Low voices close at hand. His voice and hers. The appointment _was_ a
8229 device to keep the brother away! There they were yonder, by the felled
8230 tree.
8231
8232 Bending low among the dewy grass, Mrs. Sparsit advanced closer to them.
8233 She drew herself up, and stood behind a tree, like Robinson Crusoe in his
8234 ambuscade against the savages; so near to them that at a spring, and that
8235 no great one, she could have touched them both. He was there secretly,
8236 and had not shown himself at the house. He had come on horseback, and
8237 must have passed through the neighbouring fields; for his horse was tied
8238 to the meadow side of the fence, within a few paces.
8239
8240 ‘My dearest love,’ said he, ‘what could I do? Knowing you were alone,
8241 was it possible that I could stay away?’
8242
8243 ‘You may hang your head, to make yourself the more attractive; _I_ don’t
8244 know what they see in you when you hold it up,’ thought Mrs. Sparsit;
8245 ‘but you little think, my dearest love, whose eyes are on you!’
8246
8247 That she hung her head, was certain. She urged him to go away, she
8248 commanded him to go away; but she neither turned her face to him, nor
8249 raised it. Yet it was remarkable that she sat as still as ever the
8250 amiable woman in ambuscade had seen her sit, at any period in her life.
8251 Her hands rested in one another, like the hands of a statue; and even her
8252 manner of speaking was not hurried.
8253
8254 ‘My dear child,’ said Harthouse; Mrs. Sparsit saw with delight that his
8255 arm embraced her; ‘will you not bear with my society for a little while?’
8256
8257 ‘Not here.’
8258
8259 ‘Where, Louisa?
8260
8261 ‘Not here.’
8262
8263 ‘But we have so little time to make so much of, and I have come so far,
8264 and am altogether so devoted, and distracted. There never was a slave at
8265 once so devoted and ill-used by his mistress. To look for your sunny
8266 welcome that has warmed me into life, and to be received in your frozen
8267 manner, is heart-rending.’
8268
8269 ‘Am I to say again, that I must be left to myself here?’
8270
8271 ‘But we must meet, my dear Louisa. Where shall we meet?’
8272
8273 They both started. The listener started, guiltily, too; for she thought
8274 there was another listener among the trees. It was only rain, beginning
8275 to fall fast, in heavy drops.
8276
8277 ‘Shall I ride up to the house a few minutes hence, innocently supposing
8278 that its master is at home and will be charmed to receive me?’
8279
8280 ‘No!’
8281
8282 ‘Your cruel commands are implicitly to be obeyed; though I am the most
8283 unfortunate fellow in the world, I believe, to have been insensible to
8284 all other women, and to have fallen prostrate at last under the foot of
8285 the most beautiful, and the most engaging, and the most imperious. My
8286 dearest Louisa, I cannot go myself, or let you go, in this hard abuse of
8287 your power.’
8288
8289 Mrs. Sparsit saw him detain her with his encircling arm, and heard him
8290 then and there, within her (Mrs. Sparsit’s) greedy hearing, tell her how
8291 he loved her, and how she was the stake for which he ardently desired to
8292 play away all that he had in life. The objects he had lately pursued,
8293 turned worthless beside her; such success as was almost in his grasp, he
8294 flung away from him like the dirt it was, compared with her. Its
8295 pursuit, nevertheless, if it kept him near her, or its renunciation if it
8296 took him from her, or flight if she shared it, or secrecy if she
8297 commanded it, or any fate, or every fate, all was alike to him, so that
8298 she was true to him,—the man who had seen how cast away she was, whom she
8299 had inspired at their first meeting with an admiration, an interest, of
8300 which he had thought himself incapable, whom she had received into her
8301 confidence, who was devoted to her and adored her. All this, and more,
8302 in his hurry, and in hers, in the whirl of her own gratified malice, in
8303 the dread of being discovered, in the rapidly increasing noise of heavy
8304 rain among the leaves, and a thunderstorm rolling up—Mrs. Sparsit
8305 received into her mind, set off with such an unavoidable halo of
8306 confusion and indistinctness, that when at length he climbed the fence
8307 and led his horse away, she was not sure where they were to meet, or
8308 when, except that they had said it was to be that night.
8309
8310 But one of them yet remained in the darkness before her; and while she
8311 tracked that one she must be right. ‘Oh, my dearest love,’ thought Mrs.
8312 Sparsit, ‘you little think how well attended you are!’
8313
8314 Mrs. Sparsit saw her out of the wood, and saw her enter the house. What
8315 to do next? It rained now, in a sheet of water. Mrs. Sparsit’s white
8316 stockings were of many colours, green predominating; prickly things were
8317 in her shoes; caterpillars slung themselves, in hammocks of their own
8318 making, from various parts of her dress; rills ran from her bonnet, and
8319 her Roman nose. In such condition, Mrs. Sparsit stood hidden in the
8320 density of the shrubbery, considering what next?
8321
8322 Lo, Louisa coming out of the house! Hastily cloaked and muffled, and
8323 stealing away. She elopes! She falls from the lowermost stair, and is
8324 swallowed up in the gulf.
8325
8326 Indifferent to the rain, and moving with a quick determined step, she
8327 struck into a side-path parallel with the ride. Mrs. Sparsit followed in
8328 the shadow of the trees, at but a short distance; for it was not easy to
8329 keep a figure in view going quickly through the umbrageous darkness.
8330
8331 When she stopped to close the side-gate without noise, Mrs. Sparsit
8332 stopped. When she went on, Mrs. Sparsit went on. She went by the way
8333 Mrs. Sparsit had come, emerged from the green lane, crossed the stony
8334 road, and ascended the wooden steps to the railroad. A train for
8335 Coketown would come through presently, Mrs. Sparsit knew; so she
8336 understood Coketown to be her first place of destination.
8337
8338 In Mrs. Sparsit’s limp and streaming state, no extensive precautions were
8339 necessary to change her usual appearance; but, she stopped under the lee
8340 of the station wall, tumbled her shawl into a new shape, and put it on
8341 over her bonnet. So disguised she had no fear of being recognized when
8342 she followed up the railroad steps, and paid her money in the small
8343 office. Louisa sat waiting in a corner. Mrs. Sparsit sat waiting in
8344 another corner. Both listened to the thunder, which was loud, and to the
8345 rain, as it washed off the roof, and pattered on the parapets of the
8346 arches. Two or three lamps were rained out and blown out; so, both saw
8347 the lightning to advantage as it quivered and zigzagged on the iron
8348 tracks.
8349
8350 The seizure of the station with a fit of trembling, gradually deepening
8351 to a complaint of the heart, announced the train. Fire and steam, and
8352 smoke, and red light; a hiss, a crash, a bell, and a shriek; Louisa put
8353 into one carriage, Mrs. Sparsit put into another: the little station a
8354 desert speck in the thunderstorm.
8355
8356 Though her teeth chattered in her head from wet and cold, Mrs. Sparsit
8357 exulted hugely. The figure had plunged down the precipice, and she felt
8358 herself, as it were, attending on the body. Could she, who had been so
8359 active in the getting up of the funeral triumph, do less than exult?
8360 ‘She will be at Coketown long before him,’ thought Mrs. Sparsit, ‘though
8361 his horse is never so good. Where will she wait for him? And where will
8362 they go together? Patience. We shall see.’
8363
8364 The tremendous rain occasioned infinite confusion, when the train stopped
8365 at its destination. Gutters and pipes had burst, drains had overflowed,
8366 and streets were under water. In the first instant of alighting, Mrs.
8367 Sparsit turned her distracted eyes towards the waiting coaches, which
8368 were in great request. ‘She will get into one,’ she considered, ‘and
8369 will be away before I can follow in another. At all risks of being run
8370 over, I must see the number, and hear the order given to the coachman.’
8371
8372 But, Mrs. Sparsit was wrong in her calculation. Louisa got into no
8373 coach, and was already gone. The black eyes kept upon the
8374 railroad-carriage in which she had travelled, settled upon it a moment
8375 too late. The door not being opened after several minutes, Mrs. Sparsit
8376 passed it and repassed it, saw nothing, looked in, and found it empty.
8377 Wet through and through: with her feet squelching and squashing in her
8378 shoes whenever she moved; with a rash of rain upon her classical visage;
8379 with a bonnet like an over-ripe fig; with all her clothes spoiled; with
8380 damp impressions of every button, string, and hook-and-eye she wore,
8381 printed off upon her highly connected back; with a stagnant verdure on
8382 her general exterior, such as accumulates on an old park fence in a
8383 mouldy lane; Mrs. Sparsit had no resource but to burst into tears of
8384 bitterness and say, ‘I have lost her!’
8385
8386
8387
8388 CHAPTER XII
8389 DOWN
8390
8391
8392 THE national dustmen, after entertaining one another with a great many
8393 noisy little fights among themselves, had dispersed for the present, and
8394 Mr. Gradgrind was at home for the vacation.
8395
8396 He sat writing in the room with the deadly statistical clock, proving
8397 something no doubt—probably, in the main, that the Good Samaritan was a
8398 Bad Economist. The noise of the rain did not disturb him much; but it
8399 attracted his attention sufficiently to make him raise his head
8400 sometimes, as if he were rather remonstrating with the elements. When it
8401 thundered very loudly, he glanced towards Coketown, having it in his mind
8402 that some of the tall chimneys might be struck by lightning.
8403
8404 The thunder was rolling into distance, and the rain was pouring down like
8405 a deluge, when the door of his room opened. He looked round the lamp
8406 upon his table, and saw, with amazement, his eldest daughter.
8407
8408 ‘Louisa!’
8409
8410 ‘Father, I want to speak to you.’
8411
8412 ‘What is the matter? How strange you look! And good Heaven,’ said Mr.
8413 Gradgrind, wondering more and more, ‘have you come here exposed to this
8414 storm?’
8415
8416 She put her hands to her dress, as if she hardly knew. ‘Yes.’ Then she
8417 uncovered her head, and letting her cloak and hood fall where they might,
8418 stood looking at him: so colourless, so dishevelled, so defiant and
8419 despairing, that he was afraid of her.
8420
8421 ‘What is it? I conjure you, Louisa, tell me what is the matter.’
8422
8423 She dropped into a chair before him, and put her cold hand on his arm.
8424
8425 ‘Father, you have trained me from my cradle?’
8426
8427 ‘Yes, Louisa.’
8428
8429 ‘I curse the hour in which I was born to such a destiny.’
8430
8431 He looked at her in doubt and dread, vacantly repeating: ‘Curse the hour?
8432 Curse the hour?’
8433
8434 ‘How could you give me life, and take from me all the inappreciable
8435 things that raise it from the state of conscious death? Where are the
8436 graces of my soul? Where are the sentiments of my heart? What have you
8437 done, O father, what have you done, with the garden that should have
8438 bloomed once, in this great wilderness here!’
8439
8440 She struck herself with both her hands upon her bosom.
8441
8442 ‘If it had ever been here, its ashes alone would save me from the void in
8443 which my whole life sinks. I did not mean to say this; but, father, you
8444 remember the last time we conversed in this room?’
8445
8446 He had been so wholly unprepared for what he heard now, that it was with
8447 difficulty he answered, ‘Yes, Louisa.’
8448
8449 ‘What has risen to my lips now, would have risen to my lips then, if you
8450 had given me a moment’s help. I don’t reproach you, father. What you
8451 have never nurtured in me, you have never nurtured in yourself; but O! if
8452 you had only done so long ago, or if you had only neglected me, what a
8453 much better and much happier creature I should have been this day!’
8454
8455 On hearing this, after all his care, he bowed his head upon his hand and
8456 groaned aloud.
8457
8458 ‘Father, if you had known, when we were last together here, what even I
8459 feared while I strove against it—as it has been my task from infancy to
8460 strive against every natural prompting that has arisen in my heart; if
8461 you had known that there lingered in my breast, sensibilities,
8462 affections, weaknesses capable of being cherished into strength, defying
8463 all the calculations ever made by man, and no more known to his
8464 arithmetic than his Creator is,—would you have given me to the husband
8465 whom I am now sure that I hate?’
8466
8467 He said, ‘No. No, my poor child.’
8468
8469 ‘Would you have doomed me, at any time, to the frost and blight that have
8470 hardened and spoiled me? Would you have robbed me—for no one’s
8471 enrichment—only for the greater desolation of this world—of the
8472 immaterial part of my life, the spring and summer of my belief, my refuge
8473 from what is sordid and bad in the real things around me, my school in
8474 which I should have learned to be more humble and more trusting with
8475 them, and to hope in my little sphere to make them better?’
8476
8477 ‘O no, no. No, Louisa.’
8478
8479 ‘Yet, father, if I had been stone blind; if I had groped my way by my
8480 sense of touch, and had been free, while I knew the shapes and surfaces
8481 of things, to exercise my fancy somewhat, in regard to them; I should
8482 have been a million times wiser, happier, more loving, more contented,
8483 more innocent and human in all good respects, than I am with the eyes I
8484 have. Now, hear what I have come to say.’
8485
8486 He moved, to support her with his arm. She rising as he did so, they
8487 stood close together: she, with a hand upon his shoulder, looking fixedly
8488 in his face.
8489
8490 ‘With a hunger and thirst upon me, father, which have never been for a
8491 moment appeased; with an ardent impulse towards some region where rules,
8492 and figures, and definitions were not quite absolute; I have grown up,
8493 battling every inch of my way.’
8494
8495 ‘I never knew you were unhappy, my child.’
8496
8497 ‘Father, I always knew it. In this strife I have almost repulsed and
8498 crushed my better angel into a demon. What I have learned has left me
8499 doubting, misbelieving, despising, regretting, what I have not learned;
8500 and my dismal resource has been to think that life would soon go by, and
8501 that nothing in it could be worth the pain and trouble of a contest.’
8502
8503 ‘And you so young, Louisa!’ he said with pity.
8504
8505 ‘And I so young. In this condition, father—for I show you now, without
8506 fear or favour, the ordinary deadened state of my mind as I know it—you
8507 proposed my husband to me. I took him. I never made a pretence to him
8508 or you that I loved him. I knew, and, father, you knew, and he knew,
8509 that I never did. I was not wholly indifferent, for I had a hope of
8510 being pleasant and useful to Tom. I made that wild escape into something
8511 visionary, and have slowly found out how wild it was. But Tom had been
8512 the subject of all the little tenderness of my life; perhaps he became so
8513 because I knew so well how to pity him. It matters little now, except as
8514 it may dispose you to think more leniently of his errors.’
8515
8516 As her father held her in his arms, she put her other hand upon his other
8517 shoulder, and still looking fixedly in his face, went on.
8518
8519 ‘When I was irrevocably married, there rose up into rebellion against the
8520 tie, the old strife, made fiercer by all those causes of disparity which
8521 arise out of our two individual natures, and which no general laws shall
8522 ever rule or state for me, father, until they shall be able to direct the
8523 anatomist where to strike his knife into the secrets of my soul.’
8524
8525 ‘Louisa!’ he said, and said imploringly; for he well remembered what had
8526 passed between them in their former interview.
8527
8528 ‘I do not reproach you, father, I make no complaint. I am here with
8529 another object.’
8530
8531 ‘What can I do, child? Ask me what you will.’
8532
8533 ‘I am coming to it. Father, chance then threw into my way a new
8534 acquaintance; a man such as I had had no experience of; used to the
8535 world; light, polished, easy; making no pretences; avowing the low
8536 estimate of everything, that I was half afraid to form in secret;
8537 conveying to me almost immediately, though I don’t know how or by what
8538 degrees, that he understood me, and read my thoughts. I could not find
8539 that he was worse than I. There seemed to be a near affinity between us.
8540 I only wondered it should be worth his while, who cared for nothing else,
8541 to care so much for me.’
8542
8543 ‘For you, Louisa!’
8544
8545 Her father might instinctively have loosened his hold, but that he felt
8546 her strength departing from her, and saw a wild dilating fire in the eyes
8547 steadfastly regarding him.
8548
8549 ‘I say nothing of his plea for claiming my confidence. It matters very
8550 little how he gained it. Father, he did gain it. What you know of the
8551 story of my marriage, he soon knew, just as well.’
8552
8553 Her father’s face was ashy white, and he held her in both his arms.
8554
8555 ‘I have done no worse, I have not disgraced you. But if you ask me
8556 whether I have loved him, or do love him, I tell you plainly, father,
8557 that it may be so. I don’t know.’
8558
8559 She took her hands suddenly from his shoulders, and pressed them both
8560 upon her side; while in her face, not like itself—and in her figure,
8561 drawn up, resolute to finish by a last effort what she had to say—the
8562 feelings long suppressed broke loose.
8563
8564 ‘This night, my husband being away, he has been with me, declaring
8565 himself my lover. This minute he expects me, for I could release myself
8566 of his presence by no other means. I do not know that I am sorry, I do
8567 not know that I am ashamed, I do not know that I am degraded in my own
8568 esteem. All that I know is, your philosophy and your teaching will not
8569 save me. Now, father, you have brought me to this. Save me by some
8570 other means!’
8571
8572 He tightened his hold in time to prevent her sinking on the floor, but
8573 she cried out in a terrible voice, ‘I shall die if you hold me! Let me
8574 fall upon the ground!’ And he laid her down there, and saw the pride of
8575 his heart and the triumph of his system, lying, an insensible heap, at
8576 his feet.
8577
8578 * * * * *
8579
8580 END OF THE SECOND BOOK
8581
8582
8583
8584
8585 BOOK THE THIRD
8586 _GARNERING_
8587
8588
8589 CHAPTER I
8590 ANOTHER THING NEEDFUL
8591
8592
8593 LOUISA awoke from a torpor, and her eyes languidly opened on her old bed
8594 at home, and her old room. It seemed, at first, as if all that had
8595 happened since the days when these objects were familiar to her were the
8596 shadows of a dream, but gradually, as the objects became more real to her
8597 sight, the events became more real to her mind.
8598
8599 She could scarcely move her head for pain and heaviness, her eyes were
8600 strained and sore, and she was very weak. A curious passive inattention
8601 had such possession of her, that the presence of her little sister in the
8602 room did not attract her notice for some time. Even when their eyes had
8603 met, and her sister had approached the bed, Louisa lay for minutes
8604 looking at her in silence, and suffering her timidly to hold her passive
8605 hand, before she asked:
8606
8607 ‘When was I brought to this room?’
8608
8609 ‘Last night, Louisa.’
8610
8611 ‘Who brought me here?’
8612
8613 ‘Sissy, I believe.’
8614
8615 ‘Why do you believe so?’
8616
8617 ‘Because I found her here this morning. She didn’t come to my bedside to
8618 wake me, as she always does; and I went to look for her. She was not in
8619 her own room either; and I went looking for her all over the house, until
8620 I found her here taking care of you and cooling your head. Will you see
8621 father? Sissy said I was to tell him when you woke.’
8622
8623 ‘What a beaming face you have, Jane!’ said Louisa, as her young
8624 sister—timidly still—bent down to kiss her.
8625
8626 ‘Have I? I am very glad you think so. I am sure it must be Sissy’s
8627 doing.’
8628
8629 The arm Louisa had begun to twine around her neck, unbent itself. ‘You
8630 can tell father if you will.’ Then, staying her for a moment, she said,
8631 ‘It was you who made my room so cheerful, and gave it this look of
8632 welcome?’
8633
8634 ‘Oh no, Louisa, it was done before I came. It was—’
8635
8636 Louisa turned upon her pillow, and heard no more. When her sister had
8637 withdrawn, she turned her head back again, and lay with her face towards
8638 the door, until it opened and her father entered.
8639
8640 He had a jaded anxious look upon him, and his hand, usually steady,
8641 trembled in hers. He sat down at the side of the bed, tenderly asking
8642 how she was, and dwelling on the necessity of her keeping very quiet
8643 after her agitation and exposure to the weather last night. He spoke in
8644 a subdued and troubled voice, very different from his usual dictatorial
8645 manner; and was often at a loss for words.
8646
8647 ‘My dear Louisa. My poor daughter.’ He was so much at a loss at that
8648 place, that he stopped altogether. He tried again.
8649
8650 ‘My unfortunate child.’ The place was so difficult to get over, that he
8651 tried again.
8652
8653 ‘It would be hopeless for me, Louisa, to endeavour to tell you how
8654 overwhelmed I have been, and still am, by what broke upon me last night.
8655 The ground on which I stand has ceased to be solid under my feet. The
8656 only support on which I leaned, and the strength of which it seemed, and
8657 still does seem, impossible to question, has given way in an instant. I
8658 am stunned by these discoveries. I have no selfish meaning in what I
8659 say; but I find the shock of what broke upon me last night, to be very
8660 heavy indeed.’
8661
8662 She could give him no comfort herein. She had suffered the wreck of her
8663 whole life upon the rock.
8664
8665 ‘I will not say, Louisa, that if you had by any happy chance undeceived
8666 me some time ago, it would have been better for us both; better for your
8667 peace, and better for mine. For I am sensible that it may not have been
8668 a part of my system to invite any confidence of that kind. I had proved
8669 my—my system to myself, and I have rigidly administered it; and I must
8670 bear the responsibility of its failures. I only entreat you to believe,
8671 my favourite child, that I have meant to do right.’
8672
8673 He said it earnestly, and to do him justice he had. In gauging
8674 fathomless deeps with his little mean excise-rod, and in staggering over
8675 the universe with his rusty stiff-legged compasses, he had meant to do
8676 great things. Within the limits of his short tether he had tumbled
8677 about, annihilating the flowers of existence with greater singleness of
8678 purpose than many of the blatant personages whose company he kept.
8679
8680 ‘I am well assured of what you say, father. I know I have been your
8681 favourite child. I know you have intended to make me happy. I have
8682 never blamed you, and I never shall.’
8683
8684 He took her outstretched hand, and retained it in his.
8685
8686 ‘My dear, I have remained all night at my table, pondering again and
8687 again on what has so painfully passed between us. When I consider your
8688 character; when I consider that what has been known to me for hours, has
8689 been concealed by you for years; when I consider under what immediate
8690 pressure it has been forced from you at last; I come to the conclusion
8691 that I cannot but mistrust myself.’
8692
8693 He might have added more than all, when he saw the face now looking at
8694 him. He did add it in effect, perhaps, as he softly moved her scattered
8695 hair from her forehead with his hand. Such little actions, slight in
8696 another man, were very noticeable in him; and his daughter received them
8697 as if they had been words of contrition.
8698
8699 ‘But,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, slowly, and with hesitation, as well as with a
8700 wretched sense of happiness, ‘if I see reason to mistrust myself for the
8701 past, Louisa, I should also mistrust myself for the present and the
8702 future. To speak unreservedly to you, I do. I am far from feeling
8703 convinced now, however differently I might have felt only this time
8704 yesterday, that I am fit for the trust you repose in me; that I know how
8705 to respond to the appeal you have come home to make to me; that I have
8706 the right instinct—supposing it for the moment to be some quality of that
8707 nature—how to help you, and to set you right, my child.’
8708
8709 She had turned upon her pillow, and lay with her face upon her arm, so
8710 that he could not see it. All her wildness and passion had subsided;
8711 but, though softened, she was not in tears. Her father was changed in
8712 nothing so much as in the respect that he would have been glad to see her
8713 in tears.
8714
8715 ‘Some persons hold,’ he pursued, still hesitating, ‘that there is a
8716 wisdom of the Head, and that there is a wisdom of the Heart. I have not
8717 supposed so; but, as I have said, I mistrust myself now. I have supposed
8718 the head to be all-sufficient. It may not be all-sufficient; how can I
8719 venture this morning to say it is! If that other kind of wisdom should
8720 be what I have neglected, and should be the instinct that is wanted,
8721 Louisa—’
8722
8723 He suggested it very doubtfully, as if he were half unwilling to admit it
8724 even now. She made him no answer, lying before him on her bed, still
8725 half-dressed, much as he had seen her lying on the floor of his room last
8726 night.
8727
8728 ‘Louisa,’ and his hand rested on her hair again, ‘I have been absent from
8729 here, my dear, a good deal of late; and though your sister’s training has
8730 been pursued according to—the system,’ he appeared to come to that word
8731 with great reluctance always, ‘it has necessarily been modified by daily
8732 associations begun, in her case, at an early age. I ask you—ignorantly
8733 and humbly, my daughter—for the better, do you think?’
8734
8735 ‘Father,’ she replied, without stirring, ‘if any harmony has been
8736 awakened in her young breast that was mute in mine until it turned to
8737 discord, let her thank Heaven for it, and go upon her happier way, taking
8738 it as her greatest blessing that she has avoided my way.’
8739
8740 ‘O my child, my child!’ he said, in a forlorn manner, ‘I am an unhappy
8741 man to see you thus! What avails it to me that you do not reproach me,
8742 if I so bitterly reproach myself!’ He bent his head, and spoke low to
8743 her. ‘Louisa, I have a misgiving that some change may have been slowly
8744 working about me in this house, by mere love and gratitude: that what the
8745 Head had left undone and could not do, the Heart may have been doing
8746 silently. Can it be so?’
8747
8748 She made him no reply.
8749
8750 ‘I am not too proud to believe it, Louisa. How could I be arrogant, and
8751 you before me! Can it be so? Is it so, my dear?’ He looked upon her
8752 once more, lying cast away there; and without another word went out of
8753 the room. He had not been long gone, when she heard a light tread near
8754 the door, and knew that some one stood beside her.
8755
8756 She did not raise her head. A dull anger that she should be seen in her
8757 distress, and that the involuntary look she had so resented should come
8758 to this fulfilment, smouldered within her like an unwholesome fire. All
8759 closely imprisoned forces rend and destroy. The air that would be
8760 healthful to the earth, the water that would enrich it, the heat that
8761 would ripen it, tear it when caged up. So in her bosom even now; the
8762 strongest qualities she possessed, long turned upon themselves, became a
8763 heap of obduracy, that rose against a friend.
8764
8765 It was well that soft touch came upon her neck, and that she understood
8766 herself to be supposed to have fallen asleep. The sympathetic hand did
8767 not claim her resentment. Let it lie there, let it lie.
8768
8769 It lay there, warming into life a crowd of gentler thoughts; and she
8770 rested. As she softened with the quiet, and the consciousness of being
8771 so watched, some tears made their way into her eyes. The face touched
8772 hers, and she knew that there were tears upon it too, and she the cause
8773 of them.
8774
8775 As Louisa feigned to rouse herself, and sat up, Sissy retired, so that
8776 she stood placidly near the bedside.
8777
8778 ‘I hope I have not disturbed you. I have come to ask if you would let me
8779 stay with you?’
8780
8781 ‘Why should you stay with me? My sister will miss you. You are
8782 everything to her.’
8783
8784 ‘Am I?’ returned Sissy, shaking her head. ‘I would be something to you,
8785 if I might.’
8786
8787 ‘What?’ said Louisa, almost sternly.
8788
8789 ‘Whatever you want most, if I could be that. At all events, I would like
8790 to try to be as near it as I can. And however far off that may be, I
8791 will never tire of trying. Will you let me?’
8792
8793 ‘My father sent you to ask me.’
8794
8795 ‘No indeed,’ replied Sissy. ‘He told me that I might come in now, but he
8796 sent me away from the room this morning—or at least—’
8797
8798 She hesitated and stopped.
8799
8800 ‘At least, what?’ said Louisa, with her searching eyes upon her.
8801
8802 ‘I thought it best myself that I should be sent away, for I felt very
8803 uncertain whether you would like to find me here.’
8804
8805 ‘Have I always hated you so much?’
8806
8807 ‘I hope not, for I have always loved you, and have always wished that you
8808 should know it. But you changed to me a little, shortly before you left
8809 home. Not that I wondered at it. You knew so much, and I knew so
8810 little, and it was so natural in many ways, going as you were among other
8811 friends, that I had nothing to complain of, and was not at all hurt.’
8812
8813 Her colour rose as she said it modestly and hurriedly. Louisa understood
8814 the loving pretence, and her heart smote her.
8815
8816 ‘May I try?’ said Sissy, emboldened to raise her hand to the neck that
8817 was insensibly drooping towards her.
8818
8819 Louisa, taking down the hand that would have embraced her in another
8820 moment, held it in one of hers, and answered:
8821
8822 ‘First, Sissy, do you know what I am? I am so proud and so hardened, so
8823 confused and troubled, so resentful and unjust to every one and to
8824 myself, that everything is stormy, dark, and wicked to me. Does not that
8825 repel you?’
8826
8827 ‘No!’
8828
8829 ‘I am so unhappy, and all that should have made me otherwise is so laid
8830 waste, that if I had been bereft of sense to this hour, and instead of
8831 being as learned as you think me, had to begin to acquire the simplest
8832 truths, I could not want a guide to peace, contentment, honour, all the
8833 good of which I am quite devoid, more abjectly than I do. Does not that
8834 repel you?’
8835
8836 ‘No!’
8837
8838 In the innocence of her brave affection, and the brimming up of her old
8839 devoted spirit, the once deserted girl shone like a beautiful light upon
8840 the darkness of the other.
8841
8842 Louisa raised the hand that it might clasp her neck and join its fellow
8843 there. She fell upon her knees, and clinging to this stroller’s child
8844 looked up at her almost with veneration.
8845
8846 ‘Forgive me, pity me, help me! Have compassion on my great need, and let
8847 me lay this head of mine upon a loving heart!’
8848
8849 ‘O lay it here!’ cried Sissy. ‘Lay it here, my dear.’
8850
8851
8852
8853 CHAPTER II
8854 VERY RIDICULOUS
8855
8856
8857 MR. JAMES HARTHOUSE passed a whole night and a day in a state of so much
8858 hurry, that the World, with its best glass in his eye, would scarcely
8859 have recognized him during that insane interval, as the brother Jem of
8860 the honourable and jocular member. He was positively agitated. He
8861 several times spoke with an emphasis, similar to the vulgar manner. He
8862 went in and went out in an unaccountable way, like a man without an
8863 object. He rode like a highwayman. In a word, he was so horribly bored
8864 by existing circumstances, that he forgot to go in for boredom in the
8865 manner prescribed by the authorities.
8866
8867 After putting his horse at Coketown through the storm, as if it were a
8868 leap, he waited up all night: from time to time ringing his bell with the
8869 greatest fury, charging the porter who kept watch with delinquency in
8870 withholding letters or messages that could not fail to have been
8871 entrusted to him, and demanding restitution on the spot. The dawn
8872 coming, the morning coming, and the day coming, and neither message nor
8873 letter coming with either, he went down to the country house. There, the
8874 report was, Mr. Bounderby away, and Mrs. Bounderby in town. Left for
8875 town suddenly last evening. Not even known to be gone until receipt of
8876 message, importing that her return was not to be expected for the
8877 present.
8878
8879 In these circumstances he had nothing for it but to follow her to town.
8880 He went to the house in town. Mrs. Bounderby not there. He looked in at
8881 the Bank. Mr. Bounderby away and Mrs. Sparsit away. Mrs. Sparsit away?
8882 Who could have been reduced to sudden extremity for the company of that
8883 griffin!
8884
8885 ‘Well! I don’t know,’ said Tom, who had his own reasons for being uneasy
8886 about it. ‘She was off somewhere at daybreak this morning. She’s always
8887 full of mystery; I hate her. So I do that white chap; he’s always got
8888 his blinking eyes upon a fellow.’
8889
8890 ‘Where were you last night, Tom?’
8891
8892 ‘Where was I last night!’ said Tom. ‘Come! I like that. I was waiting
8893 for you, Mr. Harthouse, till it came down as _I_ never saw it come down
8894 before. Where was I too! Where were you, you mean.’
8895
8896 ‘I was prevented from coming—detained.’
8897
8898 ‘Detained!’ murmured Tom. ‘Two of us were detained. I was detained
8899 looking for you, till I lost every train but the mail. It would have
8900 been a pleasant job to go down by that on such a night, and have to walk
8901 home through a pond. I was obliged to sleep in town after all.’
8902
8903 ‘Where?’
8904
8905 ‘Where? Why, in my own bed at Bounderby’s.’
8906
8907 ‘Did you see your sister?’
8908
8909 ‘How the deuce,’ returned Tom, staring, ‘could I see my sister when she
8910 was fifteen miles off?’
8911
8912 Cursing these quick retorts of the young gentleman to whom he was so true
8913 a friend, Mr. Harthouse disembarrassed himself of that interview with the
8914 smallest conceivable amount of ceremony, and debated for the hundredth
8915 time what all this could mean? He made only one thing clear. It was,
8916 that whether she was in town or out of town, whether he had been
8917 premature with her who was so hard to comprehend, or she had lost
8918 courage, or they were discovered, or some mischance or mistake, at
8919 present incomprehensible, had occurred, he must remain to confront his
8920 fortune, whatever it was. The hotel where he was known to live when
8921 condemned to that region of blackness, was the stake to which he was
8922 tied. As to all the rest—What will be, will be.
8923
8924 ‘So, whether I am waiting for a hostile message, or an assignation, or a
8925 penitent remonstrance, or an impromptu wrestle with my friend Bounderby
8926 in the Lancashire manner—which would seem as likely as anything else in
8927 the present state of affairs—I’ll dine,’ said Mr. James Harthouse.
8928 ‘Bounderby has the advantage in point of weight; and if anything of a
8929 British nature is to come off between us, it may be as well to be in
8930 training.’
8931
8932 Therefore he rang the bell, and tossing himself negligently on a sofa,
8933 ordered ‘Some dinner at six—with a beefsteak in it,’ and got through the
8934 intervening time as well as he could. That was not particularly well;
8935 for he remained in the greatest perplexity, and, as the hours went on,
8936 and no kind of explanation offered itself, his perplexity augmented at
8937 compound interest.
8938
8939 However, he took affairs as coolly as it was in human nature to do, and
8940 entertained himself with the facetious idea of the training more than
8941 once. ‘It wouldn’t be bad,’ he yawned at one time, ‘to give the waiter
8942 five shillings, and throw him.’ At another time it occurred to him, ‘Or
8943 a fellow of about thirteen or fourteen stone might be hired by the hour.’
8944 But these jests did not tell materially on the afternoon, or his
8945 suspense; and, sooth to say, they both lagged fearfully.
8946
8947 It was impossible, even before dinner, to avoid often walking about in
8948 the pattern of the carpet, looking out of the window, listening at the
8949 door for footsteps, and occasionally becoming rather hot when any steps
8950 approached that room. But, after dinner, when the day turned to
8951 twilight, and the twilight turned to night, and still no communication
8952 was made to him, it began to be as he expressed it, ‘like the Holy Office
8953 and slow torture.’ However, still true to his conviction that
8954 indifference was the genuine high-breeding (the only conviction he had),
8955 he seized this crisis as the opportunity for ordering candles and a
8956 newspaper.
8957
8958 He had been trying in vain, for half an hour, to read this newspaper,
8959 when the waiter appeared and said, at once mysteriously and
8960 apologetically:
8961
8962 ‘Beg your pardon, sir. You’re wanted, sir, if you please.’
8963
8964 A general recollection that this was the kind of thing the Police said to
8965 the swell mob, caused Mr. Harthouse to ask the waiter in return, with
8966 bristling indignation, what the Devil he meant by ‘wanted’?
8967
8968 ‘Beg your pardon, sir. Young lady outside, sir, wishes to see you.’
8969
8970 ‘Outside? Where?’
8971
8972 ‘Outside this door, sir.’
8973
8974 Giving the waiter to the personage before mentioned, as a block-head duly
8975 qualified for that consignment, Mr. Harthouse hurried into the gallery.
8976 A young woman whom he had never seen stood there. Plainly dressed, very
8977 quiet, very pretty. As he conducted her into the room and placed a chair
8978 for her, he observed, by the light of the candles, that she was even
8979 prettier than he had at first believed. Her face was innocent and
8980 youthful, and its expression remarkably pleasant. She was not afraid of
8981 him, or in any way disconcerted; she seemed to have her mind entirely
8982 preoccupied with the occasion of her visit, and to have substituted that
8983 consideration for herself.
8984
8985 ‘I speak to Mr. Harthouse?’ she said, when they were alone.
8986
8987 ‘To Mr. Harthouse.’ He added in his mind, ‘And you speak to him with the
8988 most confiding eyes I ever saw, and the most earnest voice (though so
8989 quiet) I ever heard.’
8990
8991 ‘If I do not understand—and I do not, sir’—said Sissy, ‘what your honour
8992 as a gentleman binds you to, in other matters:’ the blood really rose in
8993 his face as she began in these words: ‘I am sure I may rely upon it to
8994 keep my visit secret, and to keep secret what I am going to say. I will
8995 rely upon it, if you will tell me I may so far trust—’
8996
8997 ‘You may, I assure you.’
8998
8999 ‘I am young, as you see; I am alone, as you see. In coming to you, sir,
9000 I have no advice or encouragement beyond my own hope.’ He thought, ‘But
9001 that is very strong,’ as he followed the momentary upward glance of her
9002 eyes. He thought besides, ‘This is a very odd beginning. I don’t see
9003 where we are going.’
9004
9005 ‘I think,’ said Sissy, ‘you have already guessed whom I left just now!’
9006
9007 ‘I have been in the greatest concern and uneasiness during the last
9008 four-and-twenty hours (which have appeared as many years),’ he returned,
9009 ‘on a lady’s account. The hopes I have been encouraged to form that you
9010 come from that lady, do not deceive me, I trust.’
9011
9012 ‘I left her within an hour.’
9013
9014 ‘At—!’
9015
9016 ‘At her father’s.’
9017
9018 Mr. Harthouse’s face lengthened in spite of his coolness, and his
9019 perplexity increased. ‘Then I certainly,’ he thought, ‘do _not_ see
9020 where we are going.’
9021
9022 ‘She hurried there last night. She arrived there in great agitation, and
9023 was insensible all through the night. I live at her father’s, and was
9024 with her. You may be sure, sir, you will never see her again as long as
9025 you live.’
9026
9027 Mr. Harthouse drew a long breath; and, if ever man found himself in the
9028 position of not knowing what to say, made the discovery beyond all
9029 question that he was so circumstanced. The child-like ingenuousness with
9030 which his visitor spoke, her modest fearlessness, her truthfulness which
9031 put all artifice aside, her entire forgetfulness of herself in her
9032 earnest quiet holding to the object with which she had come; all this,
9033 together with her reliance on his easily given promise—which in itself
9034 shamed him—presented something in which he was so inexperienced, and
9035 against which he knew any of his usual weapons would fall so powerless;
9036 that not a word could he rally to his relief.
9037
9038 At last he said:
9039
9040 ‘So startling an announcement, so confidently made, and by such lips, is
9041 really disconcerting in the last degree. May I be permitted to inquire,
9042 if you are charged to convey that information to me in those hopeless
9043 words, by the lady of whom we speak?’
9044
9045 ‘I have no charge from her.’
9046
9047 ‘The drowning man catches at the straw. With no disrespect for your
9048 judgment, and with no doubt of your sincerity, excuse my saying that I
9049 cling to the belief that there is yet hope that I am not condemned to
9050 perpetual exile from that lady’s presence.’
9051
9052 ‘There is not the least hope. The first object of my coming here, sir,
9053 is to assure you that you must believe that there is no more hope of your
9054 ever speaking with her again, than there would be if she had died when
9055 she came home last night.’
9056
9057 ‘Must believe? But if I can’t—or if I should, by infirmity of nature, be
9058 obstinate—and won’t—’
9059
9060 ‘It is still true. There is no hope.’
9061
9062 James Harthouse looked at her with an incredulous smile upon his lips;
9063 but her mind looked over and beyond him, and the smile was quite thrown
9064 away.
9065
9066 He bit his lip, and took a little time for consideration.
9067
9068 ‘Well! If it should unhappily appear,’ he said, ‘after due pains and
9069 duty on my part, that I am brought to a position so desolate as this
9070 banishment, I shall not become the lady’s persecutor. But you said you
9071 had no commission from her?’
9072
9073 ‘I have only the commission of my love for her, and her love for me. I
9074 have no other trust, than that I have been with her since she came home,
9075 and that she has given me her confidence. I have no further trust, than
9076 that I know something of her character and her marriage. O Mr.
9077 Harthouse, I think you had that trust too!’
9078
9079 He was touched in the cavity where his heart should have been—in that
9080 nest of addled eggs, where the birds of heaven would have lived if they
9081 had not been whistled away—by the fervour of this reproach.
9082
9083 ‘I am not a moral sort of fellow,’ he said, ‘and I never make any
9084 pretensions to the character of a moral sort of fellow. I am as immoral
9085 as need be. At the same time, in bringing any distress upon the lady who
9086 is the subject of the present conversation, or in unfortunately
9087 compromising her in any way, or in committing myself by any expression of
9088 sentiments towards her, not perfectly reconcilable with—in fact with—the
9089 domestic hearth; or in taking any advantage of her father’s being a
9090 machine, or of her brother’s being a whelp, or of her husband’s being a
9091 bear; I beg to be allowed to assure you that I have had no particularly
9092 evil intentions, but have glided on from one step to another with a
9093 smoothness so perfectly diabolical, that I had not the slightest idea the
9094 catalogue was half so long until I began to turn it over. Whereas I
9095 find,’ said Mr. James Harthouse, in conclusion, ‘that it is really in
9096 several volumes.’
9097
9098 Though he said all this in his frivolous way, the way seemed, for that
9099 once, a conscious polishing of but an ugly surface. He was silent for a
9100 moment; and then proceeded with a more self-possessed air, though with
9101 traces of vexation and disappointment that would not be polished out.
9102
9103 ‘After what has been just now represented to me, in a manner I find it
9104 impossible to doubt—I know of hardly any other source from which I could
9105 have accepted it so readily—I feel bound to say to you, in whom the
9106 confidence you have mentioned has been reposed, that I cannot refuse to
9107 contemplate the possibility (however unexpected) of my seeing the lady no
9108 more. I am solely to blame for the thing having come to this—and—and, I
9109 cannot say,’ he added, rather hard up for a general peroration, ‘that I
9110 have any sanguine expectation of ever becoming a moral sort of fellow, or
9111 that I have any belief in any moral sort of fellow whatever.’
9112
9113 Sissy’s face sufficiently showed that her appeal to him was not finished.
9114
9115 ‘You spoke,’ he resumed, as she raised her eyes to him again, ‘of your
9116 first object. I may assume that there is a second to be mentioned?’
9117
9118 ‘Yes.’
9119
9120 ‘Will you oblige me by confiding it?’
9121
9122 ‘Mr. Harthouse,’ returned Sissy, with a blending of gentleness and
9123 steadiness that quite defeated him, and with a simple confidence in his
9124 being bound to do what she required, that held him at a singular
9125 disadvantage, ‘the only reparation that remains with you, is to leave
9126 here immediately and finally. I am quite sure that you can mitigate in
9127 no other way the wrong and harm you have done. I am quite sure that it
9128 is the only compensation you have left it in your power to make. I do
9129 not say that it is much, or that it is enough; but it is something, and
9130 it is necessary. Therefore, though without any other authority than I
9131 have given you, and even without the knowledge of any other person than
9132 yourself and myself, I ask you to depart from this place to-night, under
9133 an obligation never to return to it.’
9134
9135 If she had asserted any influence over him beyond her plain faith in the
9136 truth and right of what she said; if she had concealed the least doubt or
9137 irresolution, or had harboured for the best purpose any reserve or
9138 pretence; if she had shown, or felt, the lightest trace of any
9139 sensitiveness to his ridicule or his astonishment, or any remonstrance he
9140 might offer; he would have carried it against her at this point. But he
9141 could as easily have changed a clear sky by looking at it in surprise, as
9142 affect her.
9143
9144 ‘But do you know,’ he asked, quite at a loss, ‘the extent of what you
9145 ask? You probably are not aware that I am here on a public kind of
9146 business, preposterous enough in itself, but which I have gone in for,
9147 and sworn by, and am supposed to be devoted to in quite a desperate
9148 manner? You probably are not aware of that, but I assure you it’s the
9149 fact.’
9150
9151 It had no effect on Sissy, fact or no fact.
9152
9153 ‘Besides which,’ said Mr. Harthouse, taking a turn or two across the
9154 room, dubiously, ‘it’s so alarmingly absurd. It would make a man so
9155 ridiculous, after going in for these fellows, to back out in such an
9156 incomprehensible way.’
9157
9158 ‘I am quite sure,’ repeated Sissy, ‘that it is the only reparation in
9159 your power, sir. I am quite sure, or I would not have come here.’
9160
9161 He glanced at her face, and walked about again. ‘Upon my soul, I don’t
9162 know what to say. So immensely absurd!’
9163
9164 It fell to his lot, now, to stipulate for secrecy.
9165
9166 ‘If I were to do such a very ridiculous thing,’ he said, stopping again
9167 presently, and leaning against the chimney-piece, ‘it could only be in
9168 the most inviolable confidence.’
9169
9170 ‘I will trust to you, sir,’ returned Sissy, ‘and you will trust to me.’
9171
9172 His leaning against the chimney-piece reminded him of the night with the
9173 whelp. It was the self-same chimney-piece, and somehow he felt as if
9174 _he_ were the whelp to-night. He could make no way at all.
9175
9176 ‘I suppose a man never was placed in a more ridiculous position,’ he
9177 said, after looking down, and looking up, and laughing, and frowning, and
9178 walking off, and walking back again. ‘But I see no way out of it. What
9179 will be, will be. _This_ will be, I suppose. I must take off myself, I
9180 imagine—in short, I engage to do it.’
9181
9182 Sissy rose. She was not surprised by the result, but she was happy in
9183 it, and her face beamed brightly.
9184
9185 ‘You will permit me to say,’ continued Mr. James Harthouse, ‘that I doubt
9186 if any other ambassador, or ambassadress, could have addressed me with
9187 the same success. I must not only regard myself as being in a very
9188 ridiculous position, but as being vanquished at all points. Will you
9189 allow me the privilege of remembering my enemy’s name?’
9190
9191 ‘_My_ name?’ said the ambassadress.
9192
9193 ‘The only name I could possibly care to know, to-night.’
9194
9195 ‘Sissy Jupe.’
9196
9197 ‘Pardon my curiosity at parting. Related to the family?’
9198
9199 ‘I am only a poor girl,’ returned Sissy. ‘I was separated from my
9200 father—he was only a stroller—and taken pity on by Mr. Gradgrind. I have
9201 lived in the house ever since.’
9202
9203 She was gone.
9204
9205 ‘It wanted this to complete the defeat,’ said Mr. James Harthouse,
9206 sinking, with a resigned air, on the sofa, after standing transfixed a
9207 little while. ‘The defeat may now be considered perfectly accomplished.
9208 Only a poor girl—only a stroller—only James Harthouse made nothing
9209 of—only James Harthouse a Great Pyramid of failure.’
9210
9211 The Great Pyramid put it into his head to go up the Nile. He took a pen
9212 upon the instant, and wrote the following note (in appropriate
9213 hieroglyphics) to his brother:
9214
9215 Dear Jack,—All up at Coketown. Bored out of the place, and going in
9216 for camels.
9217
9218 Affectionately,
9219 JEM.
9220
9221 He rang the bell.
9222
9223 ‘Send my fellow here.’
9224
9225 ‘Gone to bed, sir.’
9226
9227 ‘Tell him to get up, and pack up.’
9228
9229 He wrote two more notes. One, to Mr. Bounderby, announcing his
9230 retirement from that part of the country, and showing where he would be
9231 found for the next fortnight. The other, similar in effect, to Mr.
9232 Gradgrind. Almost as soon as the ink was dry upon their superscriptions,
9233 he had left the tall chimneys of Coketown behind, and was in a railway
9234 carriage, tearing and glaring over the dark landscape.
9235
9236 The moral sort of fellows might suppose that Mr. James Harthouse derived
9237 some comfortable reflections afterwards, from this prompt retreat, as one
9238 of his few actions that made any amends for anything, and as a token to
9239 himself that he had escaped the climax of a very bad business. But it
9240 was not so, at all. A secret sense of having failed and been
9241 ridiculous—a dread of what other fellows who went in for similar sorts of
9242 things, would say at his expense if they knew it—so oppressed him, that
9243 what was about the very best passage in his life was the one of all
9244 others he would not have owned to on any account, and the only one that
9245 made him ashamed of himself.
9246
9247
9248
9249 CHAPTER III
9250 VERY DECIDED
9251
9252
9253 THE indefatigable Mrs. Sparsit, with a violent cold upon her, her voice
9254 reduced to a whisper, and her stately frame so racked by continual
9255 sneezes that it seemed in danger of dismemberment, gave chase to her
9256 patron until she found him in the metropolis; and there, majestically
9257 sweeping in upon him at his hotel in St. James’s Street, exploded the
9258 combustibles with which she was charged, and blew up. Having executed
9259 her mission with infinite relish, this high-minded woman then fainted
9260 away on Mr. Bounderby’s coat-collar.
9261
9262 Mr. Bounderby’s first procedure was to shake Mrs. Sparsit off, and leave
9263 her to progress as she might through various stages of suffering on the
9264 floor. He next had recourse to the administration of potent
9265 restoratives, such as screwing the patient’s thumbs, smiting her hands,
9266 abundantly watering her face, and inserting salt in her mouth. When
9267 these attentions had recovered her (which they speedily did), he hustled
9268 her into a fast train without offering any other refreshment, and carried
9269 her back to Coketown more dead than alive.
9270
9271 Regarded as a classical ruin, Mrs. Sparsit was an interesting spectacle
9272 on her arrival at her journey’s end; but considered in any other light,
9273 the amount of damage she had by that time sustained was excessive, and
9274 impaired her claims to admiration. Utterly heedless of the wear and tear
9275 of her clothes and constitution, and adamant to her pathetic sneezes, Mr.
9276 Bounderby immediately crammed her into a coach, and bore her off to Stone
9277 Lodge.
9278
9279 ‘Now, Tom Gradgrind,’ said Bounderby, bursting into his father-in-law’s
9280 room late at night; ‘here’s a lady here—Mrs. Sparsit—you know Mrs.
9281 Sparsit—who has something to say to you that will strike you dumb.’
9282
9283 ‘You have missed my letter!’ exclaimed Mr. Gradgrind, surprised by the
9284 apparition.
9285
9286 ‘Missed your letter, sir!’ bawled Bounderby. ‘The present time is no
9287 time for letters. No man shall talk to Josiah Bounderby of Coketown
9288 about letters, with his mind in the state it’s in now.’
9289
9290 ‘Bounderby,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, in a tone of temperate remonstrance, ‘I
9291 speak of a very special letter I have written to you, in reference to
9292 Louisa.’
9293
9294 ‘Tom Gradgrind,’ replied Bounderby, knocking the flat of his hand several
9295 times with great vehemence on the table, ‘I speak of a very special
9296 messenger that has come to me, in reference to Louisa. Mrs. Sparsit,
9297 ma’am, stand forward!’
9298
9299 That unfortunate lady hereupon essaying to offer testimony, without any
9300 voice and with painful gestures expressive of an inflamed throat, became
9301 so aggravating and underwent so many facial contortions, that Mr.
9302 Bounderby, unable to bear it, seized her by the arm and shook her.
9303
9304 ‘If you can’t get it out, ma’am,’ said Bounderby, ‘leave _me_ to get it
9305 out. This is not a time for a lady, however highly connected, to be
9306 totally inaudible, and seemingly swallowing marbles. Tom Gradgrind, Mrs.
9307 Sparsit latterly found herself, by accident, in a situation to overhear a
9308 conversation out of doors between your daughter and your precious
9309 gentleman-friend, Mr. James Harthouse.’
9310
9311 ‘Indeed!’ said Mr. Gradgrind.
9312
9313 ‘Ah! Indeed!’ cried Bounderby. ‘And in that conversation—’
9314
9315 ‘It is not necessary to repeat its tenor, Bounderby. I know what
9316 passed.’
9317
9318 ‘You do? Perhaps,’ said Bounderby, staring with all his might at his so
9319 quiet and assuasive father-in-law, ‘you know where your daughter is at
9320 the present time!’
9321
9322 ‘Undoubtedly. She is here.’
9323
9324 ‘Here?’
9325
9326 ‘My dear Bounderby, let me beg you to restrain these loud out-breaks, on
9327 all accounts. Louisa is here. The moment she could detach herself from
9328 that interview with the person of whom you speak, and whom I deeply
9329 regret to have been the means of introducing to you, Louisa hurried here,
9330 for protection. I myself had not been at home many hours, when I
9331 received her—here, in this room. She hurried by the train to town, she
9332 ran from town to this house, through a raging storm, and presented
9333 herself before me in a state of distraction. Of course, she has remained
9334 here ever since. Let me entreat you, for your own sake and for hers, to
9335 be more quiet.’
9336
9337 Mr. Bounderby silently gazed about him for some moments, in every
9338 direction except Mrs. Sparsit’s direction; and then, abruptly turning
9339 upon the niece of Lady Scadgers, said to that wretched woman:
9340
9341 ‘Now, ma’am! We shall be happy to hear any little apology you may think
9342 proper to offer, for going about the country at express pace, with no
9343 other luggage than a Cock-and-a-Bull, ma’am!’
9344
9345 ‘Sir,’ whispered Mrs. Sparsit, ‘my nerves are at present too much shaken,
9346 and my health is at present too much impaired, in your service, to admit
9347 of my doing more than taking refuge in tears.’ (Which she did.)
9348
9349 ‘Well, ma’am,’ said Bounderby, ‘without making any observation to you
9350 that may not be made with propriety to a woman of good family, what I
9351 have got to add to that, is that there is something else in which it
9352 appears to me you may take refuge, namely, a coach. And the coach in
9353 which we came here being at the door, you’ll allow me to hand you down to
9354 it, and pack you home to the Bank: where the best course for you to
9355 pursue, will be to put your feet into the hottest water you can bear, and
9356 take a glass of scalding rum and butter after you get into bed.’ With
9357 these words, Mr. Bounderby extended his right hand to the weeping lady,
9358 and escorted her to the conveyance in question, shedding many plaintive
9359 sneezes by the way. He soon returned alone.
9360
9361 ‘Now, as you showed me in your face, Tom Gradgrind, that you wanted to
9362 speak to me,’ he resumed, ‘here I am. But, I am not in a very agreeable
9363 state, I tell you plainly: not relishing this business, even as it is,
9364 and not considering that I am at any time as dutifully and submissively
9365 treated by your daughter, as Josiah Bounderby of Coketown ought to be
9366 treated by his wife. You have your opinion, I dare say; and I have mine,
9367 I know. If you mean to say anything to me to-night, that goes against
9368 this candid remark, you had better let it alone.’
9369
9370 Mr. Gradgrind, it will be observed, being much softened, Mr. Bounderby
9371 took particular pains to harden himself at all points. It was his
9372 amiable nature.
9373
9374 ‘My dear Bounderby,’ Mr. Gradgrind began in reply.
9375
9376 ‘Now, you’ll excuse me,’ said Bounderby, ‘but I don’t want to be too
9377 dear. That, to start with. When I begin to be dear to a man, I
9378 generally find that his intention is to come over me. I am not speaking
9379 to you politely; but, as you are aware, I am _not_ polite. If you like
9380 politeness, you know where to get it. You have your gentleman-friends,
9381 you know, and they’ll serve you with as much of the article as you want.
9382 I don’t keep it myself.’
9383
9384 ‘Bounderby,’ urged Mr. Gradgrind, ‘we are all liable to mistakes—’
9385
9386 ‘I thought you couldn’t make ’em,’ interrupted Bounderby.
9387
9388 ‘Perhaps I thought so. But, I say we are all liable to mistakes and I
9389 should feel sensible of your delicacy, and grateful for it, if you would
9390 spare me these references to Harthouse. I shall not associate him in our
9391 conversation with your intimacy and encouragement; pray do not persist in
9392 connecting him with mine.’
9393
9394 ‘I never mentioned his name!’ said Bounderby.
9395
9396 ‘Well, well!’ returned Mr. Gradgrind, with a patient, even a submissive,
9397 air. And he sat for a little while pondering. ‘Bounderby, I see reason
9398 to doubt whether we have ever quite understood Louisa.’
9399
9400 ‘Who do you mean by We?’
9401
9402 ‘Let me say I, then,’ he returned, in answer to the coarsely blurted
9403 question; ‘I doubt whether I have understood Louisa. I doubt whether I
9404 have been quite right in the manner of her education.’
9405
9406 ‘There you hit it,’ returned Bounderby. ‘There I agree with you. You
9407 have found it out at last, have you? Education! I’ll tell you what
9408 education is—To be tumbled out of doors, neck and crop, and put upon the
9409 shortest allowance of everything except blows. That’s what _I_ call
9410 education.’
9411
9412 ‘I think your good sense will perceive,’ Mr. Gradgrind remonstrated in
9413 all humility, ‘that whatever the merits of such a system may be, it would
9414 be difficult of general application to girls.’
9415
9416 ‘I don’t see it at all, sir,’ returned the obstinate Bounderby.
9417
9418 ‘Well,’ sighed Mr. Gradgrind, ‘we will not enter into the question. I
9419 assure you I have no desire to be controversial. I seek to repair what
9420 is amiss, if I possibly can; and I hope you will assist me in a good
9421 spirit, Bounderby, for I have been very much distressed.’
9422
9423 ‘I don’t understand you, yet,’ said Bounderby, with determined obstinacy,
9424 ‘and therefore I won’t make any promises.’
9425
9426 ‘In the course of a few hours, my dear Bounderby,’ Mr. Gradgrind
9427 proceeded, in the same depressed and propitiatory manner, ‘I appear to
9428 myself to have become better informed as to Louisa’s character, than in
9429 previous years. The enlightenment has been painfully forced upon me, and
9430 the discovery is not mine. I think there are—Bounderby, you will be
9431 surprised to hear me say this—I think there are qualities in Louisa,
9432 which—which have been harshly neglected, and—and a little perverted.
9433 And—and I would suggest to you, that—that if you would kindly meet me in
9434 a timely endeavour to leave her to her better nature for a while—and to
9435 encourage it to develop itself by tenderness and consideration—it—it
9436 would be the better for the happiness of all of us. Louisa,’ said Mr.
9437 Gradgrind, shading his face with his hand, ‘has always been my favourite
9438 child.’
9439
9440 The blustrous Bounderby crimsoned and swelled to such an extent on
9441 hearing these words, that he seemed to be, and probably was, on the brink
9442 of a fit. With his very ears a bright purple shot with crimson, he pent
9443 up his indignation, however, and said:
9444
9445 ‘You’d like to keep her here for a time?’
9446
9447 ‘I—I had intended to recommend, my dear Bounderby, that you should allow
9448 Louisa to remain here on a visit, and be attended by Sissy (I mean of
9449 course Cecilia Jupe), who understands her, and in whom she trusts.’
9450
9451 ‘I gather from all this, Tom Gradgrind,’ said Bounderby, standing up with
9452 his hands in his pockets, ‘that you are of opinion that there’s what
9453 people call some incompatibility between Loo Bounderby and myself.’
9454
9455 ‘I fear there is at present a general incompatibility between Louisa,
9456 and—and—and almost all the relations in which I have placed her,’ was her
9457 father’s sorrowful reply.
9458
9459 ‘Now, look you here, Tom Gradgrind,’ said Bounderby the flushed,
9460 confronting him with his legs wide apart, his hands deeper in his
9461 pockets, and his hair like a hayfield wherein his windy anger was
9462 boisterous. ‘You have said your say; I am going to say mine. I am a
9463 Coketown man. I am Josiah Bounderby of Coketown. I know the bricks of
9464 this town, and I know the works of this town, and I know the chimneys of
9465 this town, and I know the smoke of this town, and I know the Hands of
9466 this town. I know ’em all pretty well. They’re real. When a man tells
9467 me anything about imaginative qualities, I always tell that man, whoever
9468 he is, that I know what he means. He means turtle soup and venison, with
9469 a gold spoon, and that he wants to be set up with a coach and six.
9470 That’s what your daughter wants. Since you are of opinion that she ought
9471 to have what she wants, I recommend you to provide it for her. Because,
9472 Tom Gradgrind, she will never have it from me.’
9473
9474 ‘Bounderby,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, ‘I hoped, after my entreaty, you would
9475 have taken a different tone.’
9476
9477 ‘Just wait a bit,’ retorted Bounderby; ‘you have said your say, I
9478 believe. I heard you out; hear me out, if you please. Don’t make
9479 yourself a spectacle of unfairness as well as inconsistency, because,
9480 although I am sorry to see Tom Gradgrind reduced to his present position,
9481 I should be doubly sorry to see him brought so low as that. Now, there’s
9482 an incompatibility of some sort or another, I am given to understand by
9483 you, between your daughter and me. I’ll give _you_ to understand, in
9484 reply to that, that there unquestionably is an incompatibility of the
9485 first magnitude—to be summed up in this—that your daughter don’t properly
9486 know her husband’s merits, and is not impressed with such a sense as
9487 would become her, by George! of the honour of his alliance. That’s plain
9488 speaking, I hope.’
9489
9490 ‘Bounderby,’ urged Mr. Gradgrind, ‘this is unreasonable.’
9491
9492 ‘Is it?’ said Bounderby. ‘I am glad to hear you say so. Because when
9493 Tom Gradgrind, with his new lights, tells me that what I say is
9494 unreasonable, I am convinced at once it must be devilish sensible. With
9495 your permission I am going on. You know my origin; and you know that for
9496 a good many years of my life I didn’t want a shoeing-horn, in consequence
9497 of not having a shoe. Yet you may believe or not, as you think proper,
9498 that there are ladies—born ladies—belonging to families—Families!—who
9499 next to worship the ground I walk on.’
9500
9501 He discharged this like a Rocket, at his father-in-law’s head.
9502
9503 ‘Whereas your daughter,’ proceeded Bounderby, ‘is far from being a born
9504 lady. That you know, yourself. Not that I care a pinch of candle-snuff
9505 about such things, for you are very well aware I don’t; but that such is
9506 the fact, and you, Tom Gradgrind, can’t change it. Why do I say this?’
9507
9508 ‘Not, I fear,’ observed Mr. Gradgrind, in a low voice, ‘to spare me.’
9509
9510 ‘Hear me out,’ said Bounderby, ‘and refrain from cutting in till your
9511 turn comes round. I say this, because highly connected females have been
9512 astonished to see the way in which your daughter has conducted herself,
9513 and to witness her insensibility. They have wondered how I have suffered
9514 it. And I wonder myself now, and I won’t suffer it.’
9515
9516 ‘Bounderby,’ returned Mr. Gradgrind, rising, ‘the less we say to-night
9517 the better, I think.’
9518
9519 ‘On the contrary, Tom Gradgrind, the more we say to-night, the better, I
9520 think. That is,’ the consideration checked him, ‘till I have said all I
9521 mean to say, and then I don’t care how soon we stop. I come to a
9522 question that may shorten the business. What do you mean by the proposal
9523 you made just now?’
9524
9525 ‘What do I mean, Bounderby?’
9526
9527 ‘By your visiting proposition,’ said Bounderby, with an inflexible jerk
9528 of the hayfield.
9529
9530 ‘I mean that I hope you may be induced to arrange in a friendly manner,
9531 for allowing Louisa a period of repose and reflection here, which may
9532 tend to a gradual alteration for the better in many respects.’
9533
9534 ‘To a softening down of your ideas of the incompatibility?’ said
9535 Bounderby.
9536
9537 ‘If you put it in those terms.’
9538
9539 ‘What made you think of this?’ said Bounderby.
9540
9541 ‘I have already said, I fear Louisa has not been understood. Is it
9542 asking too much, Bounderby, that you, so far her elder, should aid in
9543 trying to set her right? You have accepted a great charge of her; for
9544 better for worse, for—’
9545
9546 Mr. Bounderby may have been annoyed by the repetition of his own words to
9547 Stephen Blackpool, but he cut the quotation short with an angry start.
9548
9549 ‘Come!’ said he, ‘I don’t want to be told about that. I know what I took
9550 her for, as well as you do. Never you mind what I took her for; that’s
9551 my look out.’
9552
9553 ‘I was merely going on to remark, Bounderby, that we may all be more or
9554 less in the wrong, not even excepting you; and that some yielding on your
9555 part, remembering the trust you have accepted, may not only be an act of
9556 true kindness, but perhaps a debt incurred towards Louisa.’
9557
9558 ‘I think differently,’ blustered Bounderby. ‘I am going to finish this
9559 business according to my own opinions. Now, I don’t want to make a
9560 quarrel of it with you, Tom Gradgrind. To tell you the truth, I don’t
9561 think it would be worthy of my reputation to quarrel on such a subject.
9562 As to your gentleman-friend, he may take himself off, wherever he likes
9563 best. If he falls in my way, I shall tell him my mind; if he don’t fall
9564 in my way, I shan’t, for it won’t be worth my while to do it. As to your
9565 daughter, whom I made Loo Bounderby, and might have done better by
9566 leaving Loo Gradgrind, if she don’t come home to-morrow, by twelve
9567 o’clock at noon, I shall understand that she prefers to stay away, and I
9568 shall send her wearing apparel and so forth over here, and you’ll take
9569 charge of her for the future. What I shall say to people in general, of
9570 the incompatibility that led to my so laying down the law, will be this.
9571 I am Josiah Bounderby, and I had my bringing-up; she’s the daughter of
9572 Tom Gradgrind, and she had her bringing-up; and the two horses wouldn’t
9573 pull together. I am pretty well known to be rather an uncommon man, I
9574 believe; and most people will understand fast enough that it must be a
9575 woman rather out of the common, also, who, in the long run, would come up
9576 to my mark.’
9577
9578 ‘Let me seriously entreat you to reconsider this, Bounderby,’ urged Mr.
9579 Gradgrind, ‘before you commit yourself to such a decision.’
9580
9581 ‘I always come to a decision,’ said Bounderby, tossing his hat on: ‘and
9582 whatever I do, I do at once. I should be surprised at Tom Gradgrind’s
9583 addressing such a remark to Josiah Bounderby of Coketown, knowing what he
9584 knows of him, if I could be surprised by anything Tom Gradgrind did,
9585 after his making himself a party to sentimental humbug. I have given you
9586 my decision, and I have got no more to say. Good night!’
9587
9588 So Mr. Bounderby went home to his town house to bed. At five minutes
9589 past twelve o’clock next day, he directed Mrs. Bounderby’s property to be
9590 carefully packed up and sent to Tom Gradgrind’s; advertised his country
9591 retreat for sale by private contract; and resumed a bachelor life.
9592
9593
9594
9595 CHAPTER IV
9596 LOST
9597
9598
9599 THE robbery at the Bank had not languished before, and did not cease to
9600 occupy a front place in the attention of the principal of that
9601 establishment now. In boastful proof of his promptitude and activity, as
9602 a remarkable man, and a self-made man, and a commercial wonder more
9603 admirable than Venus, who had risen out of the mud instead of the sea, he
9604 liked to show how little his domestic affairs abated his business ardour.
9605 Consequently, in the first few weeks of his resumed bachelorhood, he even
9606 advanced upon his usual display of bustle, and every day made such a rout
9607 in renewing his investigations into the robbery, that the officers who
9608 had it in hand almost wished it had never been committed.
9609
9610 They were at fault too, and off the scent. Although they had been so
9611 quiet since the first outbreak of the matter, that most people really did
9612 suppose it to have been abandoned as hopeless, nothing new occurred. No
9613 implicated man or woman took untimely courage, or made a self-betraying
9614 step. More remarkable yet, Stephen Blackpool could not be heard of, and
9615 the mysterious old woman remained a mystery.
9616
9617 Things having come to this pass, and showing no latent signs of stirring
9618 beyond it, the upshot of Mr. Bounderby’s investigations was, that he
9619 resolved to hazard a bold burst. He drew up a placard, offering Twenty
9620 Pounds reward for the apprehension of Stephen Blackpool, suspected of
9621 complicity in the robbery of Coketown Bank on such a night; he described
9622 the said Stephen Blackpool by dress, complexion, estimated height, and
9623 manner, as minutely as he could; he recited how he had left the town, and
9624 in what direction he had been last seen going; he had the whole printed
9625 in great black letters on a staring broadsheet; and he caused the walls
9626 to be posted with it in the dead of night, so that it should strike upon
9627 the sight of the whole population at one blow.
9628
9629 The factory-bells had need to ring their loudest that morning to disperse
9630 the groups of workers who stood in the tardy daybreak, collected round
9631 the placards, devouring them with eager eyes. Not the least eager of the
9632 eyes assembled, were the eyes of those who could not read. These people,
9633 as they listened to the friendly voice that read aloud—there was always
9634 some such ready to help them—stared at the characters which meant so much
9635 with a vague awe and respect that would have been half ludicrous, if any
9636 aspect of public ignorance could ever be otherwise than threatening and
9637 full of evil. Many ears and eyes were busy with a vision of the matter
9638 of these placards, among turning spindles, rattling looms, and whirling
9639 wheels, for hours afterwards; and when the Hands cleared out again into
9640 the streets, there were still as many readers as before.
9641
9642 Slackbridge, the delegate, had to address his audience too that night;
9643 and Slackbridge had obtained a clean bill from the printer, and had
9644 brought it in his pocket. Oh, my friends and fellow-countrymen, the
9645 down-trodden operatives of Coketown, oh, my fellow-brothers and
9646 fellow-workmen and fellow-citizens and fellow-men, what a to-do was
9647 there, when Slackbridge unfolded what he called ‘that damning document,’
9648 and held it up to the gaze, and for the execration of the working-man
9649 community! ‘Oh, my fellow-men, behold of what a traitor in the camp of
9650 those great spirits who are enrolled upon the holy scroll of Justice and
9651 of Union, is appropriately capable! Oh, my prostrate friends, with the
9652 galling yoke of tyrants on your necks and the iron foot of despotism
9653 treading down your fallen forms into the dust of the earth, upon which
9654 right glad would your oppressors be to see you creeping on your bellies
9655 all the days of your lives, like the serpent in the garden—oh, my
9656 brothers, and shall I as a man not add, my sisters too, what do you say,
9657 _now_, of Stephen Blackpool, with a slight stoop in his shoulders and
9658 about five foot seven in height, as set forth in this degrading and
9659 disgusting document, this blighting bill, this pernicious placard, this
9660 abominable advertisement; and with what majesty of denouncement will you
9661 crush the viper, who would bring this stain and shame upon the God-like
9662 race that happily has cast him out for ever! Yes, my compatriots,
9663 happily cast him out and sent him forth! For you remember how he stood
9664 here before you on this platform; you remember how, face to face and foot
9665 to foot, I pursued him through all his intricate windings; you remember
9666 how he sneaked and slunk, and sidled, and splitted of straws, until, with
9667 not an inch of ground to which to cling, I hurled him out from amongst
9668 us: an object for the undying finger of scorn to point at, and for the
9669 avenging fire of every free and thinking mind to scorch and scar! And
9670 now, my friends—my labouring friends, for I rejoice and triumph in that
9671 stigma—my friends whose hard but honest beds are made in toil, and whose
9672 scanty but independent pots are boiled in hardship; and now, I say, my
9673 friends, what appellation has that dastard craven taken to himself, when,
9674 with the mask torn from his features, he stands before us in all his
9675 native deformity, a What? A thief! A plunderer! A proscribed fugitive,
9676 with a price upon his head; a fester and a wound upon the noble character
9677 of the Coketown operative! Therefore, my band of brothers in a sacred
9678 bond, to which your children and your children’s children yet unborn have
9679 set their infant hands and seals, I propose to you on the part of the
9680 United Aggregate Tribunal, ever watchful for your welfare, ever zealous
9681 for your benefit, that this meeting does Resolve: That Stephen Blackpool,
9682 weaver, referred to in this placard, having been already solemnly
9683 disowned by the community of Coketown Hands, the same are free from the
9684 shame of his misdeeds, and cannot as a class be reproached with his
9685 dishonest actions!’
9686
9687 Thus Slackbridge; gnashing and perspiring after a prodigious sort. A few
9688 stern voices called out ‘No!’ and a score or two hailed, with assenting
9689 cries of ‘Hear, hear!’ the caution from one man, ‘Slackbridge, y’or over
9690 hetter in’t; y’or a goen too fast!’ But these were pigmies against an
9691 army; the general assemblage subscribed to the gospel according to
9692 Slackbridge, and gave three cheers for him, as he sat demonstratively
9693 panting at them.
9694
9695 These men and women were yet in the streets, passing quietly to their
9696 homes, when Sissy, who had been called away from Louisa some minutes
9697 before, returned.
9698
9699 ‘Who is it?’ asked Louisa.
9700
9701 ‘It is Mr. Bounderby,’ said Sissy, timid of the name, ‘and your brother
9702 Mr. Tom, and a young woman who says her name is Rachael, and that you
9703 know her.’
9704
9705 ‘What do they want, Sissy dear?’
9706
9707 ‘They want to see you. Rachael has been crying, and seems angry.’
9708
9709 ‘Father,’ said Louisa, for he was present, ‘I cannot refuse to see them,
9710 for a reason that will explain itself. Shall they come in here?’
9711
9712 As he answered in the affirmative, Sissy went away to bring them. She
9713 reappeared with them directly. Tom was last; and remained standing in
9714 the obscurest part of the room, near the door.
9715
9716 ‘Mrs. Bounderby,’ said her husband, entering with a cool nod, ‘I don’t
9717 disturb you, I hope. This is an unseasonable hour, but here is a young
9718 woman who has been making statements which render my visit necessary.
9719 Tom Gradgrind, as your son, young Tom, refuses for some obstinate reason
9720 or other to say anything at all about those statements, good or bad, I am
9721 obliged to confront her with your daughter.’
9722
9723 ‘You have seen me once before, young lady,’ said Rachael, standing in
9724 front of Louisa.
9725
9726 Tom coughed.
9727
9728 ‘You have seen me, young lady,’ repeated Rachael, as she did not answer,
9729 ‘once before.’
9730
9731 Tom coughed again.
9732
9733 ‘I have.’
9734
9735 Rachael cast her eyes proudly towards Mr. Bounderby, and said, ‘Will you
9736 make it known, young lady, where, and who was there?’
9737
9738 ‘I went to the house where Stephen Blackpool lodged, on the night of his
9739 discharge from his work, and I saw you there. He was there too; and an
9740 old woman who did not speak, and whom I could scarcely see, stood in a
9741 dark corner. My brother was with me.’
9742
9743 ‘Why couldn’t you say so, young Tom?’ demanded Bounderby.
9744
9745 ‘I promised my sister I wouldn’t.’ Which Louisa hastily confirmed. ‘And
9746 besides,’ said the whelp bitterly, ‘she tells her own story so precious
9747 well—and so full—that what business had I to take it out of her mouth!’
9748
9749 ‘Say, young lady, if you please,’ pursued Rachael, ‘why, in an evil hour,
9750 you ever came to Stephen’s that night.’
9751
9752 ‘I felt compassion for him,’ said Louisa, her colour deepening, ‘and I
9753 wished to know what he was going to do, and wished to offer him
9754 assistance.’
9755
9756 ‘Thank you, ma’am,’ said Bounderby. ‘Much flattered and obliged.’
9757
9758 ‘Did you offer him,’ asked Rachael, ‘a bank-note?’
9759
9760 ‘Yes; but he refused it, and would only take two pounds in gold.’
9761
9762 Rachael cast her eyes towards Mr. Bounderby again.
9763
9764 ‘Oh, certainly!’ said Bounderby. ‘If you put the question whether your
9765 ridiculous and improbable account was true or not, I am bound to say it’s
9766 confirmed.’
9767
9768 ‘Young lady,’ said Rachael, ‘Stephen Blackpool is now named as a thief in
9769 public print all over this town, and where else! There have been a
9770 meeting to-night where he have been spoken of in the same shameful way.
9771 Stephen! The honestest lad, the truest lad, the best!’ Her indignation
9772 failed her, and she broke off sobbing.
9773
9774 ‘I am very, very sorry,’ said Louisa.
9775
9776 ‘Oh, young lady, young lady,’ returned Rachael, ‘I hope you may be, but I
9777 don’t know! I can’t say what you may ha’ done! The like of you don’t
9778 know us, don’t care for us, don’t belong to us. I am not sure why you
9779 may ha’ come that night. I can’t tell but what you may ha’ come wi’ some
9780 aim of your own, not mindin to what trouble you brought such as the poor
9781 lad. I said then, Bless you for coming; and I said it of my heart, you
9782 seemed to take so pitifully to him; but I don’t know now, I don’t know!’
9783
9784 Louisa could not reproach her for her unjust suspicions; she was so
9785 faithful to her idea of the man, and so afflicted.
9786
9787 ‘And when I think,’ said Rachael through her sobs, ‘that the poor lad was
9788 so grateful, thinkin you so good to him—when I mind that he put his hand
9789 over his hard-worken face to hide the tears that you brought up there—Oh,
9790 I hope you may be sorry, and ha’ no bad cause to be it; but I don’t know,
9791 I don’t know!’
9792
9793 ‘You’re a pretty article,’ growled the whelp, moving uneasily in his dark
9794 corner, ‘to come here with these precious imputations! You ought to be
9795 bundled out for not knowing how to behave yourself, and you would be by
9796 rights.’
9797
9798 She said nothing in reply; and her low weeping was the only sound that
9799 was heard, until Mr. Bounderby spoke.
9800
9801 ‘Come!’ said he, ‘you know what you have engaged to do. You had better
9802 give your mind to that; not this.’
9803
9804 ‘’Deed, I am loath,’ returned Rachael, drying her eyes, ‘that any here
9805 should see me like this; but I won’t be seen so again. Young lady, when
9806 I had read what’s put in print of Stephen—and what has just as much truth
9807 in it as if it had been put in print of you—I went straight to the Bank
9808 to say I knew where Stephen was, and to give a sure and certain promise
9809 that he should be here in two days. I couldn’t meet wi’ Mr. Bounderby
9810 then, and your brother sent me away, and I tried to find you, but you was
9811 not to be found, and I went back to work. Soon as I come out of the Mill
9812 to-night, I hastened to hear what was said of Stephen—for I know wi’
9813 pride he will come back to shame it!—and then I went again to seek Mr.
9814 Bounderby, and I found him, and I told him every word I knew; and he
9815 believed no word I said, and brought me here.’
9816
9817 ‘So far, that’s true enough,’ assented Mr. Bounderby, with his hands in
9818 his pockets and his hat on. ‘But I have known you people before to-day,
9819 you’ll observe, and I know you never die for want of talking. Now, I
9820 recommend you not so much to mind talking just now, as doing. You have
9821 undertaken to do something; all I remark upon that at present is, do it!’
9822
9823 ‘I have written to Stephen by the post that went out this afternoon, as I
9824 have written to him once before sin’ he went away,’ said Rachael; ‘and he
9825 will be here, at furthest, in two days.’
9826
9827 ‘Then, I’ll tell you something. You are not aware perhaps,’ retorted Mr.
9828 Bounderby, ‘that you yourself have been looked after now and then, not
9829 being considered quite free from suspicion in this business, on account
9830 of most people being judged according to the company they keep. The
9831 post-office hasn’t been forgotten either. What I’ll tell you is, that no
9832 letter to Stephen Blackpool has ever got into it. Therefore, what has
9833 become of yours, I leave you to guess. Perhaps you’re mistaken, and
9834 never wrote any.’
9835
9836 ‘He hadn’t been gone from here, young lady,’ said Rachael, turning
9837 appealingly to Louisa, ‘as much as a week, when he sent me the only
9838 letter I have had from him, saying that he was forced to seek work in
9839 another name.’
9840
9841 ‘Oh, by George!’ cried Bounderby, shaking his head, with a whistle, ‘he
9842 changes his name, does he! That’s rather unlucky, too, for such an
9843 immaculate chap. It’s considered a little suspicious in Courts of
9844 Justice, I believe, when an Innocent happens to have many names.’
9845
9846 ‘What,’ said Rachael, with the tears in her eyes again, ‘what, young
9847 lady, in the name of Mercy, was left the poor lad to do! The masters
9848 against him on one hand, the men against him on the other, he only wantin
9849 to work hard in peace, and do what he felt right. Can a man have no soul
9850 of his own, no mind of his own? Must he go wrong all through wi’ this
9851 side, or must he go wrong all through wi’ that, or else be hunted like a
9852 hare?’
9853
9854 ‘Indeed, indeed, I pity him from my heart,’ returned Louisa; ‘and I hope
9855 that he will clear himself.’
9856
9857 ‘You need have no fear of that, young lady. He is sure!’
9858
9859 ‘All the surer, I suppose,’ said Mr. Bounderby, ‘for your refusing to
9860 tell where he is? Eh?’
9861
9862 ‘He shall not, through any act of mine, come back wi’ the unmerited
9863 reproach of being brought back. He shall come back of his own accord to
9864 clear himself, and put all those that have injured his good character,
9865 and he not here for its defence, to shame. I have told him what has been
9866 done against him,’ said Rachael, throwing off all distrust as a rock
9867 throws of the sea, ‘and he will be here, at furthest, in two days.’
9868
9869 ‘Notwithstanding which,’ added Mr. Bounderby, ‘if he can be laid hold of
9870 any sooner, he shall have an earlier opportunity of clearing himself. As
9871 to you, I have nothing against you; what you came and told me turns out
9872 to be true, and I have given you the means of proving it to be true, and
9873 there’s an end of it. I wish you good night all! I must be off to look
9874 a little further into this.’
9875
9876 Tom came out of his corner when Mr. Bounderby moved, moved with him, kept
9877 close to him, and went away with him. The only parting salutation of
9878 which he delivered himself was a sulky ‘Good night, father!’ With a
9879 brief speech, and a scowl at his sister, he left the house.
9880
9881 Since his sheet-anchor had come home, Mr. Gradgrind had been sparing of
9882 speech. He still sat silent, when Louisa mildly said:
9883
9884 ‘Rachael, you will not distrust me one day, when you know me better.’
9885
9886 ‘It goes against me,’ Rachael answered, in a gentler manner, ‘to mistrust
9887 any one; but when I am so mistrusted—when we all are—I cannot keep such
9888 things quite out of my mind. I ask your pardon for having done you an
9889 injury. I don’t think what I said now. Yet I might come to think it
9890 again, wi’ the poor lad so wronged.’
9891
9892 ‘Did you tell him in your letter,’ inquired Sissy, ‘that suspicion seemed
9893 to have fallen upon him, because he had been seen about the Bank at
9894 night? He would then know what he would have to explain on coming back,
9895 and would be ready.’
9896
9897 ‘Yes, dear,’ she returned; ‘but I can’t guess what can have ever taken
9898 him there. He never used to go there. It was never in his way. His way
9899 was the same as mine, and not near it.’
9900
9901 Sissy had already been at her side asking her where she lived, and
9902 whether she might come to-morrow night, to inquire if there were news of
9903 him.
9904
9905 ‘I doubt,’ said Rachael, ‘if he can be here till next day.’
9906
9907 ‘Then I will come next night too,’ said Sissy.
9908
9909 When Rachael, assenting to this, was gone, Mr. Gradgrind lifted up his
9910 head, and said to his daughter:
9911
9912 ‘Louisa, my dear, I have never, that I know of, seen this man. Do you
9913 believe him to be implicated?’
9914
9915 ‘I think I have believed it, father, though with great difficulty. I do
9916 not believe it now.’
9917
9918 ‘That is to say, you once persuaded yourself to believe it, from knowing
9919 him to be suspected. His appearance and manner; are they so honest?’
9920
9921 ‘Very honest.’
9922
9923 ‘And her confidence not to be shaken! I ask myself,’ said Mr. Gradgrind,
9924 musing, ‘does the real culprit know of these accusations? Where is he?
9925 Who is he?’
9926
9927 His hair had latterly began to change its colour. As he leaned upon his
9928 hand again, looking gray and old, Louisa, with a face of fear and pity,
9929 hurriedly went over to him, and sat close at his side. Her eyes by
9930 accident met Sissy’s at the moment. Sissy flushed and started, and
9931 Louisa put her finger on her lip.
9932
9933 Next night, when Sissy returned home and told Louisa that Stephen was not
9934 come, she told it in a whisper. Next night again, when she came home
9935 with the same account, and added that he had not been heard of, she spoke
9936 in the same low frightened tone. From the moment of that interchange of
9937 looks, they never uttered his name, or any reference to him, aloud; nor
9938 ever pursued the subject of the robbery, when Mr. Gradgrind spoke of it.
9939
9940 The two appointed days ran out, three days and nights ran out, and
9941 Stephen Blackpool was not come, and remained unheard of. On the fourth
9942 day, Rachael, with unabated confidence, but considering her despatch to
9943 have miscarried, went up to the Bank, and showed her letter from him with
9944 his address, at a working colony, one of many, not upon the main road,
9945 sixty miles away. Messengers were sent to that place, and the whole town
9946 looked for Stephen to be brought in next day.
9947
9948 During this whole time the whelp moved about with Mr. Bounderby like his
9949 shadow, assisting in all the proceedings. He was greatly excited,
9950 horribly fevered, bit his nails down to the quick, spoke in a hard
9951 rattling voice, and with lips that were black and burnt up. At the hour
9952 when the suspected man was looked for, the whelp was at the station;
9953 offering to wager that he had made off before the arrival of those who
9954 were sent in quest of him, and that he would not appear.
9955
9956 The whelp was right. The messengers returned alone. Rachael’s letter
9957 had gone, Rachael’s letter had been delivered. Stephen Blackpool had
9958 decamped in that same hour; and no soul knew more of him. The only doubt
9959 in Coketown was, whether Rachael had written in good faith, believing
9960 that he really would come back, or warning him to fly. On this point
9961 opinion was divided.
9962
9963 Six days, seven days, far on into another week. The wretched whelp
9964 plucked up a ghastly courage, and began to grow defiant. ‘_Was_ the
9965 suspected fellow the thief? A pretty question! If not, where was the
9966 man, and why did he not come back?’
9967
9968 Where was the man, and why did he not come back? In the dead of night
9969 the echoes of his own words, which had rolled Heaven knows how far away
9970 in the daytime, came back instead, and abided by him until morning.
9971
9972
9973
9974 CHAPTER V
9975 FOUND
9976
9977
9978 DAY and night again, day and night again. No Stephen Blackpool. Where
9979 was the man, and why did he not come back?
9980
9981 Every night, Sissy went to Rachael’s lodging, and sat with her in her
9982 small neat room. All day, Rachael toiled as such people must toil,
9983 whatever their anxieties. The smoke-serpents were indifferent who was
9984 lost or found, who turned out bad or good; the melancholy mad elephants,
9985 like the Hard Fact men, abated nothing of their set routine, whatever
9986 happened. Day and night again, day and night again. The monotony was
9987 unbroken. Even Stephen Blackpool’s disappearance was falling into the
9988 general way, and becoming as monotonous a wonder as any piece of
9989 machinery in Coketown.
9990
9991 ‘I misdoubt,’ said Rachael, ‘if there is as many as twenty left in all
9992 this place, who have any trust in the poor dear lad now.’
9993
9994 She said it to Sissy, as they sat in her lodging, lighted only by the
9995 lamp at the street corner. Sissy had come there when it was already
9996 dark, to await her return from work; and they had since sat at the window
9997 where Rachael had found her, wanting no brighter light to shine on their
9998 sorrowful talk.
9999
10000 ‘If it hadn’t been mercifully brought about, that I was to have you to
10001 speak to,’ pursued Rachael, ‘times are, when I think my mind would not
10002 have kept right. But I get hope and strength through you; and you
10003 believe that though appearances may rise against him, he will be proved
10004 clear?’
10005
10006 ‘I do believe so,’ returned Sissy, ‘with my whole heart. I feel so
10007 certain, Rachael, that the confidence you hold in yours against all
10008 discouragement, is not like to be wrong, that I have no more doubt of him
10009 than if I had known him through as many years of trial as you have.’
10010
10011 ‘And I, my dear,’ said Rachel, with a tremble in her voice, ‘have known
10012 him through them all, to be, according to his quiet ways, so faithful to
10013 everything honest and good, that if he was never to be heard of more, and
10014 I was to live to be a hundred years old, I could say with my last breath,
10015 God knows my heart. I have never once left trusting Stephen Blackpool!’
10016
10017 ‘We all believe, up at the Lodge, Rachael, that he will be freed from
10018 suspicion, sooner or later.’
10019
10020 ‘The better I know it to be so believed there, my dear,’ said Rachael,
10021 ‘and the kinder I feel it that you come away from there, purposely to
10022 comfort me, and keep me company, and be seen wi’ me when I am not yet
10023 free from all suspicion myself, the more grieved I am that I should ever
10024 have spoken those mistrusting words to the young lady. And yet I—’
10025
10026 ‘You don’t mistrust her now, Rachael?’
10027
10028 ‘Now that you have brought us more together, no. But I can’t at all
10029 times keep out of my mind—’
10030
10031 Her voice so sunk into a low and slow communing with herself, that Sissy,
10032 sitting by her side, was obliged to listen with attention.
10033
10034 ‘I can’t at all times keep out of my mind, mistrustings of some one. I
10035 can’t think who ’tis, I can’t think how or why it may be done, but I
10036 mistrust that some one has put Stephen out of the way. I mistrust that
10037 by his coming back of his own accord, and showing himself innocent before
10038 them all, some one would be confounded, who—to prevent that—has stopped
10039 him, and put him out of the way.’
10040
10041 ‘That is a dreadful thought,’ said Sissy, turning pale.
10042
10043 ‘It _is_ a dreadful thought to think he may be murdered.’
10044
10045 Sissy shuddered, and turned paler yet.
10046
10047 ‘When it makes its way into my mind, dear,’ said Rachael, ‘and it will
10048 come sometimes, though I do all I can to keep it out, wi’ counting on to
10049 high numbers as I work, and saying over and over again pieces that I knew
10050 when I were a child—I fall into such a wild, hot hurry, that, however
10051 tired I am, I want to walk fast, miles and miles. I must get the better
10052 of this before bed-time. I’ll walk home wi’ you.’
10053
10054 ‘He might fall ill upon the journey back,’ said Sissy, faintly offering a
10055 worn-out scrap of hope; ‘and in such a case, there are many places on the
10056 road where he might stop.’
10057
10058 ‘But he is in none of them. He has been sought for in all, and he’s not
10059 there.’
10060
10061 ‘True,’ was Sissy’s reluctant admission.
10062
10063 ‘He’d walk the journey in two days. If he was footsore and couldn’t
10064 walk, I sent him, in the letter he got, the money to ride, lest he should
10065 have none of his own to spare.’
10066
10067 ‘Let us hope that to-morrow will bring something better, Rachael. Come
10068 into the air!’
10069
10070 Her gentle hand adjusted Rachael’s shawl upon her shining black hair in
10071 the usual manner of her wearing it, and they went out. The night being
10072 fine, little knots of Hands were here and there lingering at street
10073 corners; but it was supper-time with the greater part of them, and there
10074 were but few people in the streets.
10075
10076 ‘You’re not so hurried now, Rachael, and your hand is cooler.’
10077
10078 ‘I get better, dear, if I can only walk, and breathe a little fresh.
10079 ‘Times when I can’t, I turn weak and confused.’
10080
10081 ‘But you must not begin to fail, Rachael, for you may be wanted at any
10082 time to stand by Stephen. To-morrow is Saturday. If no news comes
10083 to-morrow, let us walk in the country on Sunday morning, and strengthen
10084 you for another week. Will you go?’
10085
10086 ‘Yes, dear.’
10087
10088 They were by this time in the street where Mr. Bounderby’s house stood.
10089 The way to Sissy’s destination led them past the door, and they were
10090 going straight towards it. Some train had newly arrived in Coketown,
10091 which had put a number of vehicles in motion, and scattered a
10092 considerable bustle about the town. Several coaches were rattling before
10093 them and behind them as they approached Mr. Bounderby’s, and one of the
10094 latter drew up with such briskness as they were in the act of passing the
10095 house, that they looked round involuntarily. The bright gaslight over
10096 Mr. Bounderby’s steps showed them Mrs. Sparsit in the coach, in an
10097 ecstasy of excitement, struggling to open the door; Mrs. Sparsit seeing
10098 them at the same moment, called to them to stop.
10099
10100 ‘It’s a coincidence,’ exclaimed Mrs. Sparsit, as she was released by the
10101 coachman. ‘It’s a Providence! Come out, ma’am!’ then said Mrs. Sparsit,
10102 to some one inside, ‘come out, or we’ll have you dragged out!’
10103
10104 Hereupon, no other than the mysterious old woman descended. Whom Mrs.
10105 Sparsit incontinently collared.
10106
10107 ‘Leave her alone, everybody!’ cried Mrs. Sparsit, with great energy.
10108 ‘Let nobody touch her. She belongs to me. Come in, ma’am!’ then said
10109 Mrs. Sparsit, reversing her former word of command. ‘Come in, ma’am, or
10110 we’ll have you dragged in!’
10111
10112 The spectacle of a matron of classical deportment, seizing an ancient
10113 woman by the throat, and hauling her into a dwelling-house, would have
10114 been under any circumstances, sufficient temptation to all true English
10115 stragglers so blest as to witness it, to force a way into that
10116 dwelling-house and see the matter out. But when the phenomenon was
10117 enhanced by the notoriety and mystery by this time associated all over
10118 the town with the Bank robbery, it would have lured the stragglers in,
10119 with an irresistible attraction, though the roof had been expected to
10120 fall upon their heads. Accordingly, the chance witnesses on the ground,
10121 consisting of the busiest of the neighbours to the number of some
10122 five-and-twenty, closed in after Sissy and Rachael, as they closed in
10123 after Mrs. Sparsit and her prize; and the whole body made a disorderly
10124 irruption into Mr. Bounderby’s dining-room, where the people behind lost
10125 not a moment’s time in mounting on the chairs, to get the better of the
10126 people in front.
10127
10128 ‘Fetch Mr. Bounderby down!’ cried Mrs. Sparsit. ‘Rachael, young woman;
10129 you know who this is?’
10130
10131 ‘It’s Mrs. Pegler,’ said Rachael.
10132
10133 ‘I should think it is!’ cried Mrs. Sparsit, exulting. ‘Fetch Mr.
10134 Bounderby. Stand away, everybody!’ Here old Mrs. Pegler, muffling
10135 herself up, and shrinking from observation, whispered a word of entreaty.
10136 ‘Don’t tell me,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, aloud. ‘I have told you twenty
10137 times, coming along, that I will _not_ leave you till I have handed you
10138 over to him myself.’
10139
10140 Mr. Bounderby now appeared, accompanied by Mr. Gradgrind and the whelp,
10141 with whom he had been holding conference up-stairs. Mr. Bounderby looked
10142 more astonished than hospitable, at sight of this uninvited party in his
10143 dining-room.
10144
10145 ‘Why, what’s the matter now!’ said he. ‘Mrs. Sparsit, ma’am?’
10146
10147 ‘Sir,’ explained that worthy woman, ‘I trust it is my good fortune to
10148 produce a person you have much desired to find. Stimulated by my wish to
10149 relieve your mind, sir, and connecting together such imperfect clues to
10150 the part of the country in which that person might be supposed to reside,
10151 as have been afforded by the young woman, Rachael, fortunately now
10152 present to identify, I have had the happiness to succeed, and to bring
10153 that person with me—I need not say most unwillingly on her part. It has
10154 not been, sir, without some trouble that I have effected this; but
10155 trouble in your service is to me a pleasure, and hunger, thirst, and cold
10156 a real gratification.’
10157
10158 Here Mrs. Sparsit ceased; for Mr. Bounderby’s visage exhibited an
10159 extraordinary combination of all possible colours and expressions of
10160 discomfiture, as old Mrs. Pegler was disclosed to his view.
10161
10162 ‘Why, what do you mean by this?’ was his highly unexpected demand, in
10163 great warmth. ‘I ask you, what do you mean by this, Mrs. Sparsit,
10164 ma’am?’
10165
10166 ‘Sir!’ exclaimed Mrs. Sparsit, faintly.
10167
10168 ‘Why don’t you mind your own business, ma’am?’ roared Bounderby. ‘How
10169 dare you go and poke your officious nose into my family affairs?’
10170
10171 This allusion to her favourite feature overpowered Mrs. Sparsit. She sat
10172 down stiffly in a chair, as if she were frozen; and with a fixed stare at
10173 Mr. Bounderby, slowly grated her mittens against one another, as if they
10174 were frozen too.
10175
10176 ‘My dear Josiah!’ cried Mrs. Pegler, trembling. ‘My darling boy! I am
10177 not to blame. It’s not my fault, Josiah. I told this lady over and over
10178 again, that I knew she was doing what would not be agreeable to you, but
10179 she would do it.’
10180
10181 ‘What did you let her bring you for? Couldn’t you knock her cap off, or
10182 her tooth out, or scratch her, or do something or other to her?’ asked
10183 Bounderby.
10184
10185 ‘My own boy! She threatened me that if I resisted her, I should be
10186 brought by constables, and it was better to come quietly than make that
10187 stir in such a’—Mrs. Pegler glanced timidly but proudly round the
10188 walls—‘such a fine house as this. Indeed, indeed, it is not my fault!
10189 My dear, noble, stately boy! I have always lived quiet, and secret,
10190 Josiah, my dear. I have never broken the condition once. I have never
10191 said I was your mother. I have admired you at a distance; and if I have
10192 come to town sometimes, with long times between, to take a proud peep at
10193 you, I have done it unbeknown, my love, and gone away again.’
10194
10195 Mr. Bounderby, with his hands in his pockets, walked in impatient
10196 mortification up and down at the side of the long dining-table, while the
10197 spectators greedily took in every syllable of Mrs. Pegler’s appeal, and
10198 at each succeeding syllable became more and more round-eyed. Mr.
10199 Bounderby still walking up and down when Mrs. Pegler had done, Mr.
10200 Gradgrind addressed that maligned old lady:
10201
10202 ‘I am surprised, madam,’ he observed with severity, ‘that in your old age
10203 you have the face to claim Mr. Bounderby for your son, after your
10204 unnatural and inhuman treatment of him.’
10205
10206 ‘_Me_ unnatural!’ cried poor old Mrs. Pegler. ‘_Me_ inhuman! To my dear
10207 boy?’
10208
10209 ‘Dear!’ repeated Mr. Gradgrind. ‘Yes; dear in his self-made prosperity,
10210 madam, I dare say. Not very dear, however, when you deserted him in his
10211 infancy, and left him to the brutality of a drunken grandmother.’
10212
10213 ‘_I_ deserted my Josiah!’ cried Mrs. Pegler, clasping her hands. ‘Now,
10214 Lord forgive you, sir, for your wicked imaginations, and for your scandal
10215 against the memory of my poor mother, who died in my arms before Josiah
10216 was born. May you repent of it, sir, and live to know better!’
10217
10218 She was so very earnest and injured, that Mr. Gradgrind, shocked by the
10219 possibility which dawned upon him, said in a gentler tone:
10220
10221 ‘Do you deny, then, madam, that you left your son to—to be brought up in
10222 the gutter?’
10223
10224 ‘Josiah in the gutter!’ exclaimed Mrs. Pegler. ‘No such a thing, sir.
10225 Never! For shame on you! My dear boy knows, and will give _you_ to
10226 know, that though he come of humble parents, he come of parents that
10227 loved him as dear as the best could, and never thought it hardship on
10228 themselves to pinch a bit that he might write and cipher beautiful, and
10229 I’ve his books at home to show it! Aye, have I!’ said Mrs. Pegler, with
10230 indignant pride. ‘And my dear boy knows, and will give _you_ to know,
10231 sir, that after his beloved father died, when he was eight years old, his
10232 mother, too, could pinch a bit, as it was her duty and her pleasure and
10233 her pride to do it, to help him out in life, and put him ’prentice. And
10234 a steady lad he was, and a kind master he had to lend him a hand, and
10235 well he worked his own way forward to be rich and thriving. And _I_’ll
10236 give you to know, sir—for this my dear boy won’t—that though his mother
10237 kept but a little village shop, he never forgot her, but pensioned me on
10238 thirty pound a year—more than I want, for I put by out of it—only making
10239 the condition that I was to keep down in my own part, and make no boasts
10240 about him, and not trouble him. And I never have, except with looking at
10241 him once a year, when he has never knowed it. And it’s right,’ said poor
10242 old Mrs. Pegler, in affectionate championship, ‘that I _should_ keep down
10243 in my own part, and I have no doubts that if I was here I should do a
10244 many unbefitting things, and I am well contented, and I can keep my pride
10245 in my Josiah to myself, and I can love for love’s own sake! And I am
10246 ashamed of you, sir,’ said Mrs. Pegler, lastly, ‘for your slanders and
10247 suspicions. And I never stood here before, nor never wanted to stand
10248 here when my dear son said no. And I shouldn’t be here now, if it hadn’t
10249 been for being brought here. And for shame upon you, Oh, for shame, to
10250 accuse me of being a bad mother to my son, with my son standing here to
10251 tell you so different!’
10252
10253 The bystanders, on and off the dining-room chairs, raised a murmur of
10254 sympathy with Mrs. Pegler, and Mr. Gradgrind felt himself innocently
10255 placed in a very distressing predicament, when Mr. Bounderby, who had
10256 never ceased walking up and down, and had every moment swelled larger and
10257 larger, and grown redder and redder, stopped short.
10258
10259 ‘I don’t exactly know,’ said Mr. Bounderby, ‘how I come to be favoured
10260 with the attendance of the present company, but I don’t inquire. When
10261 they’re quite satisfied, perhaps they’ll be so good as to disperse;
10262 whether they’re satisfied or not, perhaps they’ll be so good as to
10263 disperse. I’m not bound to deliver a lecture on my family affairs, I
10264 have not undertaken to do it, and I’m not a going to do it. Therefore
10265 those who expect any explanation whatever upon that branch of the
10266 subject, will be disappointed—particularly Tom Gradgrind, and he can’t
10267 know it too soon. In reference to the Bank robbery, there has been a
10268 mistake made, concerning my mother. If there hadn’t been
10269 over-officiousness it wouldn’t have been made, and I hate
10270 over-officiousness at all times, whether or no. Good evening!’
10271
10272 Although Mr. Bounderby carried it off in these terms, holding the door
10273 open for the company to depart, there was a blustering sheepishness upon
10274 him, at once extremely crestfallen and superlatively absurd. Detected as
10275 the Bully of humility, who had built his windy reputation upon lies, and
10276 in his boastfulness had put the honest truth as far away from him as if
10277 he had advanced the mean claim (there is no meaner) to tack himself on to
10278 a pedigree, he cut a most ridiculous figure. With the people filing off
10279 at the door he held, who he knew would carry what had passed to the whole
10280 town, to be given to the four winds, he could not have looked a Bully
10281 more shorn and forlorn, if he had had his ears cropped. Even that
10282 unlucky female, Mrs. Sparsit, fallen from her pinnacle of exultation into
10283 the Slough of Despond, was not in so bad a plight as that remarkable man
10284 and self-made Humbug, Josiah Bounderby of Coketown.
10285
10286 Rachael and Sissy, leaving Mrs. Pegler to occupy a bed at her son’s for
10287 that night, walked together to the gate of Stone Lodge and there parted.
10288 Mr. Gradgrind joined them before they had gone very far, and spoke with
10289 much interest of Stephen Blackpool; for whom he thought this signal
10290 failure of the suspicions against Mrs. Pegler was likely to work well.
10291
10292 As to the whelp; throughout this scene as on all other late occasions, he
10293 had stuck close to Bounderby. He seemed to feel that as long as
10294 Bounderby could make no discovery without his knowledge, he was so far
10295 safe. He never visited his sister, and had only seen her once since she
10296 went home: that is to say on the night when he still stuck close to
10297 Bounderby, as already related.
10298
10299 There was one dim unformed fear lingering about his sister’s mind, to
10300 which she never gave utterance, which surrounded the graceless and
10301 ungrateful boy with a dreadful mystery. The same dark possibility had
10302 presented itself in the same shapeless guise, this very day, to Sissy,
10303 when Rachael spoke of some one who would be confounded by Stephen’s
10304 return, having put him out of the way. Louisa had never spoken of
10305 harbouring any suspicion of her brother in connexion with the robbery,
10306 she and Sissy had held no confidence on the subject, save in that one
10307 interchange of looks when the unconscious father rested his gray head on
10308 his hand; but it was understood between them, and they both knew it.
10309 This other fear was so awful, that it hovered about each of them like a
10310 ghostly shadow; neither daring to think of its being near herself, far
10311 less of its being near the other.
10312
10313 And still the forced spirit which the whelp had plucked up, throve with
10314 him. If Stephen Blackpool was not the thief, let him show himself. Why
10315 didn’t he?
10316
10317 Another night. Another day and night. No Stephen Blackpool. Where was
10318 the man, and why did he not come back?
10319
10320
10321
10322 CHAPTER VI
10323 THE STARLIGHT
10324
10325
10326 THE Sunday was a bright Sunday in autumn, clear and cool, when early in
10327 the morning Sissy and Rachael met, to walk in the country.
10328
10329 As Coketown cast ashes not only on its own head but on the
10330 neighbourhood’s too—after the manner of those pious persons who do
10331 penance for their own sins by putting other people into sackcloth—it was
10332 customary for those who now and then thirsted for a draught of pure air,
10333 which is not absolutely the most wicked among the vanities of life, to
10334 get a few miles away by the railroad, and then begin their walk, or their
10335 lounge in the fields. Sissy and Rachael helped themselves out of the
10336 smoke by the usual means, and were put down at a station about midway
10337 between the town and Mr. Bounderby’s retreat.
10338
10339 Though the green landscape was blotted here and there with heaps of coal,
10340 it was green elsewhere, and there were trees to see, and there were larks
10341 singing (though it was Sunday), and there were pleasant scents in the
10342 air, and all was over-arched by a bright blue sky. In the distance one
10343 way, Coketown showed as a black mist; in another distance hills began to
10344 rise; in a third, there was a faint change in the light of the horizon
10345 where it shone upon the far-off sea. Under their feet, the grass was
10346 fresh; beautiful shadows of branches flickered upon it, and speckled it;
10347 hedgerows were luxuriant; everything was at peace. Engines at pits’
10348 mouths, and lean old horses that had worn the circle of their daily
10349 labour into the ground, were alike quiet; wheels had ceased for a short
10350 space to turn; and the great wheel of earth seemed to revolve without the
10351 shocks and noises of another time.
10352
10353 They walked on across the fields and down the shady lanes, sometimes
10354 getting over a fragment of a fence so rotten that it dropped at a touch
10355 of the foot, sometimes passing near a wreck of bricks and beams overgrown
10356 with grass, marking the site of deserted works. They followed paths and
10357 tracks, however slight. Mounds where the grass was rank and high, and
10358 where brambles, dock-weed, and such-like vegetation, were confusedly
10359 heaped together, they always avoided; for dismal stories were told in
10360 that country of the old pits hidden beneath such indications.
10361
10362 The sun was high when they sat down to rest. They had seen no one, near
10363 or distant, for a long time; and the solitude remained unbroken. ‘It is
10364 so still here, Rachael, and the way is so untrodden, that I think we must
10365 be the first who have been here all the summer.’
10366
10367 As Sissy said it, her eyes were attracted by another of those rotten
10368 fragments of fence upon the ground. She got up to look at it. ‘And yet
10369 I don’t know. This has not been broken very long. The wood is quite
10370 fresh where it gave way. Here are footsteps too.—O Rachael!’
10371
10372 She ran back, and caught her round the neck. Rachael had already started
10373 up.
10374
10375 ‘What is the matter?’
10376
10377 ‘I don’t know. There is a hat lying in the grass.’ They went forward
10378 together. Rachael took it up, shaking from head to foot. She broke into
10379 a passion of tears and lamentations: Stephen Blackpool was written in his
10380 own hand on the inside.
10381
10382 ‘O the poor lad, the poor lad! He has been made away with. He is lying
10383 murdered here!’
10384
10385 ‘Is there—has the hat any blood upon it?’ Sissy faltered.
10386
10387 They were afraid to look; but they did examine it, and found no mark of
10388 violence, inside or out. It had been lying there some days, for rain and
10389 dew had stained it, and the mark of its shape was on the grass where it
10390 had fallen. They looked fearfully about them, without moving, but could
10391 see nothing more. ‘Rachael,’ Sissy whispered, ‘I will go on a little by
10392 myself.’
10393
10394 She had unclasped her hand, and was in the act of stepping forward, when
10395 Rachael caught her in both arms with a scream that resounded over the
10396 wide landscape. Before them, at their very feet, was the brink of a
10397 black ragged chasm hidden by the thick grass. They sprang back, and fell
10398 upon their knees, each hiding her face upon the other’s neck.
10399
10400 ‘O, my good Lord! He’s down there! Down there!’ At first this, and her
10401 terrific screams, were all that could be got from Rachael, by any tears,
10402 by any prayers, by any representations, by any means. It was impossible
10403 to hush her; and it was deadly necessary to hold her, or she would have
10404 flung herself down the shaft.
10405
10406 ‘Rachael, dear Rachael, good Rachael, for the love of Heaven, not these
10407 dreadful cries! Think of Stephen, think of Stephen, think of Stephen!’
10408
10409 By an earnest repetition of this entreaty, poured out in all the agony of
10410 such a moment, Sissy at last brought her to be silent, and to look at her
10411 with a tearless face of stone.
10412
10413 ‘Rachael, Stephen may be living. You wouldn’t leave him lying maimed at
10414 the bottom of this dreadful place, a moment, if you could bring help to
10415 him?’
10416
10417 ‘No, no, no!’
10418
10419 ‘Don’t stir from here, for his sake! Let me go and listen.’
10420
10421 She shuddered to approach the pit; but she crept towards it on her hands
10422 and knees, and called to him as loud as she could call. She listened,
10423 but no sound replied. She called again and listened; still no answering
10424 sound. She did this, twenty, thirty times. She took a little clod of
10425 earth from the broken ground where he had stumbled, and threw it in. She
10426 could not hear it fall.
10427
10428 The wide prospect, so beautiful in its stillness but a few minutes ago,
10429 almost carried despair to her brave heart, as she rose and looked all
10430 round her, seeing no help. ‘Rachael, we must lose not a moment. We must
10431 go in different directions, seeking aid. You shall go by the way we have
10432 come, and I will go forward by the path. Tell any one you see, and every
10433 one what has happened. Think of Stephen, think of Stephen!’
10434
10435 She knew by Rachael’s face that she might trust her now. And after
10436 standing for a moment to see her running, wringing her hands as she ran,
10437 she turned and went upon her own search; she stopped at the hedge to tie
10438 her shawl there as a guide to the place, then threw her bonnet aside, and
10439 ran as she had never run before.
10440
10441 Run, Sissy, run, in Heaven’s name! Don’t stop for breath. Run, run!
10442 Quickening herself by carrying such entreaties in her thoughts, she ran
10443 from field to field, and lane to lane, and place to place, as she had
10444 never run before; until she came to a shed by an engine-house, where two
10445 men lay in the shade, asleep on straw.
10446
10447 First to wake them, and next to tell them, all so wild and breathless as
10448 she was, what had brought her there, were difficulties; but they no
10449 sooner understood her than their spirits were on fire like hers. One of
10450 the men was in a drunken slumber, but on his comrade’s shouting to him
10451 that a man had fallen down the Old Hell Shaft, he started out to a pool
10452 of dirty water, put his head in it, and came back sober.
10453
10454 With these two men she ran to another half-a-mile further, and with that
10455 one to another, while they ran elsewhere. Then a horse was found; and
10456 she got another man to ride for life or death to the railroad, and send a
10457 message to Louisa, which she wrote and gave him. By this time a whole
10458 village was up: and windlasses, ropes, poles, candles, lanterns, all
10459 things necessary, were fast collecting and being brought into one place,
10460 to be carried to the Old Hell Shaft.
10461
10462 It seemed now hours and hours since she had left the lost man lying in
10463 the grave where he had been buried alive. She could not bear to remain
10464 away from it any longer—it was like deserting him—and she hurried swiftly
10465 back, accompanied by half-a-dozen labourers, including the drunken man
10466 whom the news had sobered, and who was the best man of all. When they
10467 came to the Old Hell Shaft, they found it as lonely as she had left it.
10468 The men called and listened as she had done, and examined the edge of the
10469 chasm, and settled how it had happened, and then sat down to wait until
10470 the implements they wanted should come up.
10471
10472 Every sound of insects in the air, every stirring of the leaves, every
10473 whisper among these men, made Sissy tremble, for she thought it was a cry
10474 at the bottom of the pit. But the wind blew idly over it, and no sound
10475 arose to the surface, and they sat upon the grass, waiting and waiting.
10476 After they had waited some time, straggling people who had heard of the
10477 accident began to come up; then the real help of implements began to
10478 arrive. In the midst of this, Rachael returned; and with her party there
10479 was a surgeon, who brought some wine and medicines. But, the expectation
10480 among the people that the man would be found alive was very slight
10481 indeed.
10482
10483 There being now people enough present to impede the work, the sobered man
10484 put himself at the head of the rest, or was put there by the general
10485 consent, and made a large ring round the Old Hell Shaft, and appointed
10486 men to keep it. Besides such volunteers as were accepted to work, only
10487 Sissy and Rachael were at first permitted within this ring; but, later in
10488 the day, when the message brought an express from Coketown, Mr. Gradgrind
10489 and Louisa, and Mr. Bounderby, and the whelp, were also there.
10490
10491 The sun was four hours lower than when Sissy and Rachael had first sat
10492 down upon the grass, before a means of enabling two men to descend
10493 securely was rigged with poles and ropes. Difficulties had arisen in the
10494 construction of this machine, simple as it was; requisites had been found
10495 wanting, and messages had had to go and return. It was five o’clock in
10496 the afternoon of the bright autumnal Sunday, before a candle was sent
10497 down to try the air, while three or four rough faces stood crowded close
10498 together, attentively watching it: the man at the windlass lowering as
10499 they were told. The candle was brought up again, feebly burning, and
10500 then some water was cast in. Then the bucket was hooked on; and the
10501 sobered man and another got in with lights, giving the word ‘Lower away!’
10502
10503 As the rope went out, tight and strained, and the windlass creaked, there
10504 was not a breath among the one or two hundred men and women looking on,
10505 that came as it was wont to come. The signal was given and the windlass
10506 stopped, with abundant rope to spare. Apparently so long an interval
10507 ensued with the men at the windlass standing idle, that some women
10508 shrieked that another accident had happened! But the surgeon who held
10509 the watch, declared five minutes not to have elapsed yet, and sternly
10510 admonished them to keep silence. He had not well done speaking, when the
10511 windlass was reversed and worked again. Practised eyes knew that it did
10512 not go as heavily as it would if both workmen had been coming up, and
10513 that only one was returning.
10514
10515 The rope came in tight and strained; and ring after ring was coiled upon
10516 the barrel of the windlass, and all eyes were fastened on the pit. The
10517 sobered man was brought up and leaped out briskly on the grass. There
10518 was an universal cry of ‘Alive or dead?’ and then a deep, profound hush.
10519
10520 When he said ‘Alive!’ a great shout arose and many eyes had tears in
10521 them.
10522
10523 ‘But he’s hurt very bad,’ he added, as soon as he could make himself
10524 heard again. ‘Where’s doctor? He’s hurt so very bad, sir, that we donno
10525 how to get him up.’
10526
10527 They all consulted together, and looked anxiously at the surgeon, as he
10528 asked some questions, and shook his head on receiving the replies. The
10529 sun was setting now; and the red light in the evening sky touched every
10530 face there, and caused it to be distinctly seen in all its rapt suspense.
10531
10532 The consultation ended in the men returning to the windlass, and the
10533 pitman going down again, carrying the wine and some other small matters
10534 with him. Then the other man came up. In the meantime, under the
10535 surgeon’s directions, some men brought a hurdle, on which others made a
10536 thick bed of spare clothes covered with loose straw, while he himself
10537 contrived some bandages and slings from shawls and handkerchiefs. As
10538 these were made, they were hung upon an arm of the pitman who had last
10539 come up, with instructions how to use them: and as he stood, shown by the
10540 light he carried, leaning his powerful loose hand upon one of the poles,
10541 and sometimes glancing down the pit, and sometimes glancing round upon
10542 the people, he was not the least conspicuous figure in the scene. It was
10543 dark now, and torches were kindled.
10544
10545 It appeared from the little this man said to those about him, which was
10546 quickly repeated all over the circle, that the lost man had fallen upon a
10547 mass of crumbled rubbish with which the pit was half choked up, and that
10548 his fall had been further broken by some jagged earth at the side. He
10549 lay upon his back with one arm doubled under him, and according to his
10550 own belief had hardly stirred since he fell, except that he had moved his
10551 free hand to a side pocket, in which he remembered to have some bread and
10552 meat (of which he had swallowed crumbs), and had likewise scooped up a
10553 little water in it now and then. He had come straight away from his
10554 work, on being written to, and had walked the whole journey; and was on
10555 his way to Mr. Bounderby’s country house after dark, when he fell. He
10556 was crossing that dangerous country at such a dangerous time, because he
10557 was innocent of what was laid to his charge, and couldn’t rest from
10558 coming the nearest way to deliver himself up. The Old Hell Shaft, the
10559 pitman said, with a curse upon it, was worthy of its bad name to the
10560 last; for though Stephen could speak now, he believed it would soon be
10561 found to have mangled the life out of him.
10562
10563 When all was ready, this man, still taking his last hurried charges from
10564 his comrades and the surgeon after the windlass had begun to lower him,
10565 disappeared into the pit. The rope went out as before, the signal was
10566 made as before, and the windlass stopped. No man removed his hand from
10567 it now. Every one waited with his grasp set, and his body bent down to
10568 the work, ready to reverse and wind in. At length the signal was given,
10569 and all the ring leaned forward.
10570
10571 For, now, the rope came in, tightened and strained to its utmost as it
10572 appeared, and the men turned heavily, and the windlass complained. It
10573 was scarcely endurable to look at the rope, and think of its giving way.
10574 But, ring after ring was coiled upon the barrel of the windlass safely,
10575 and the connecting chains appeared, and finally the bucket with the two
10576 men holding on at the sides—a sight to make the head swim, and oppress
10577 the heart—and tenderly supporting between them, slung and tied within,
10578 the figure of a poor, crushed, human creature.
10579
10580 A low murmur of pity went round the throng, and the women wept aloud, as
10581 this form, almost without form, was moved very slowly from its iron
10582 deliverance, and laid upon the bed of straw. At first, none but the
10583 surgeon went close to it. He did what he could in its adjustment on the
10584 couch, but the best that he could do was to cover it. That gently done,
10585 he called to him Rachael and Sissy. And at that time the pale, worn,
10586 patient face was seen looking up at the sky, with the broken right hand
10587 lying bare on the outside of the covering garments, as if waiting to be
10588 taken by another hand.
10589
10590 They gave him drink, moistened his face with water, and administered some
10591 drops of cordial and wine. Though he lay quite motionless looking up at
10592 the sky, he smiled and said, ‘Rachael.’ She stooped down on the grass at
10593 his side, and bent over him until her eyes were between his and the sky,
10594 for he could not so much as turn them to look at her.
10595
10596 ‘Rachael, my dear.’
10597
10598 She took his hand. He smiled again and said, ‘Don’t let ’t go.’
10599
10600 ‘Thou’rt in great pain, my own dear Stephen?’
10601
10602 ‘I ha’ been, but not now. I ha’ been—dreadful, and dree, and long, my
10603 dear—but ’tis ower now. Ah, Rachael, aw a muddle! Fro’ first to last, a
10604 muddle!’
10605
10606 The spectre of his old look seemed to pass as he said the word.
10607
10608 ‘I ha’ fell into th’ pit, my dear, as have cost wi’in the knowledge o’
10609 old fok now livin, hundreds and hundreds o’ men’s lives—fathers, sons,
10610 brothers, dear to thousands an’ thousands, an’ keeping ’em fro’ want and
10611 hunger. I ha’ fell into a pit that ha’ been wi’ th’ Firedamp crueller
10612 than battle. I ha’ read on ’t in the public petition, as onny one may
10613 read, fro’ the men that works in pits, in which they ha’ pray’n and
10614 pray’n the lawmakers for Christ’s sake not to let their work be murder to
10615 ’em, but to spare ’em for th’ wives and children that they loves as well
10616 as gentlefok loves theirs. When it were in work, it killed wi’out need;
10617 when ’tis let alone, it kills wi’out need. See how we die an’ no need,
10618 one way an’ another—in a muddle—every day!’
10619
10620 He faintly said it, without any anger against any one. Merely as the
10621 truth.
10622
10623 ‘Thy little sister, Rachael, thou hast not forgot her. Thou’rt not like
10624 to forget her now, and me so nigh her. Thou know’st—poor, patient,
10625 suff’rin, dear—how thou didst work for her, seet’n all day long in her
10626 little chair at thy winder, and how she died, young and misshapen, awlung
10627 o’ sickly air as had’n no need to be, an’ awlung o’ working people’s
10628 miserable homes. A muddle! Aw a muddle!’
10629
10630 Louisa approached him; but he could not see her, lying with his face
10631 turned up to the night sky.
10632
10633 ‘If aw th’ things that tooches us, my dear, was not so muddled, I
10634 should’n ha’ had’n need to coom heer. If we was not in a muddle among
10635 ourseln, I should’n ha’ been, by my own fellow weavers and workin’
10636 brothers, so mistook. If Mr. Bounderby had ever know’d me right—if he’d
10637 ever know’d me at aw—he would’n ha’ took’n offence wi’ me. He would’n
10638 ha’ suspect’n me. But look up yonder, Rachael! Look aboove!’
10639
10640 Following his eyes, she saw that he was gazing at a star.
10641
10642 [Picture: Stephen Blackpool recovered from the Old Hell Shaft]
10643
10644 ‘It ha’ shined upon me,’ he said reverently, ‘in my pain and trouble down
10645 below. It ha’ shined into my mind. I ha’ look’n at ’t and thowt o’
10646 thee, Rachael, till the muddle in my mind have cleared awa, above a bit,
10647 I hope. If soom ha’ been wantin’ in unnerstan’in me better, I, too, ha’
10648 been wantin’ in unnerstan’in them better. When I got thy letter, I
10649 easily believen that what the yoong ledy sen and done to me, and what her
10650 brother sen and done to me, was one, and that there were a wicked plot
10651 betwixt ’em. When I fell, I were in anger wi’ her, an’ hurryin on t’ be
10652 as onjust t’ her as oothers was t’ me. But in our judgments, like as in
10653 our doins, we mun bear and forbear. In my pain an’ trouble, lookin up
10654 yonder,—wi’ it shinin on me—I ha’ seen more clear, and ha’ made it my
10655 dyin prayer that aw th’ world may on’y coom toogether more, an’ get a
10656 better unnerstan’in o’ one another, than when I were in ’t my own weak
10657 seln.’
10658
10659 Louisa hearing what he said, bent over him on the opposite side to
10660 Rachael, so that he could see her.
10661
10662 ‘You ha’ heard?’ he said, after a few moments’ silence. ‘I ha’ not
10663 forgot you, ledy.’
10664
10665 ‘Yes, Stephen, I have heard you. And your prayer is mine.’
10666
10667 ‘You ha’ a father. Will yo tak’ a message to him?’
10668
10669 ‘He is here,’ said Louisa, with dread. ‘Shall I bring him to you?’
10670
10671 ‘If yo please.’
10672
10673 Louisa returned with her father. Standing hand-in-hand, they both looked
10674 down upon the solemn countenance.
10675
10676 ‘Sir, yo will clear me an’ mak my name good wi’ aw men. This I leave to
10677 yo.’
10678
10679 Mr. Gradgrind was troubled and asked how?
10680
10681 ‘Sir,’ was the reply: ‘yor son will tell yo how. Ask him. I mak no
10682 charges: I leave none ahint me: not a single word. I ha’ seen an’ spok’n
10683 wi’ yor son, one night. I ask no more o’ yo than that yo clear me—an’ I
10684 trust to yo to do ’t.’
10685
10686 The bearers being now ready to carry him away, and the surgeon being
10687 anxious for his removal, those who had torches or lanterns, prepared to
10688 go in front of the litter. Before it was raised, and while they were
10689 arranging how to go, he said to Rachael, looking upward at the star:
10690
10691 ‘Often as I coom to myseln, and found it shinin’ on me down there in my
10692 trouble, I thowt it were the star as guided to Our Saviour’s home. I
10693 awmust think it be the very star!’
10694
10695 They lifted him up, and he was overjoyed to find that they were about to
10696 take him in the direction whither the star seemed to him to lead.
10697
10698 ‘Rachael, beloved lass! Don’t let go my hand. We may walk toogether
10699 t’night, my dear!’
10700
10701 ‘I will hold thy hand, and keep beside thee, Stephen, all the way.’
10702
10703 ‘Bless thee! Will soombody be pleased to coover my face!’
10704
10705 They carried him very gently along the fields, and down the lanes, and
10706 over the wide landscape; Rachael always holding the hand in hers. Very
10707 few whispers broke the mournful silence. It was soon a funeral
10708 procession. The star had shown him where to find the God of the poor;
10709 and through humility, and sorrow, and forgiveness, he had gone to his
10710 Redeemer’s rest.
10711
10712
10713
10714 CHAPTER VII
10715 WHELP-HUNTING
10716
10717
10718 BEFORE the ring formed round the Old Hell Shaft was broken, one figure
10719 had disappeared from within it. Mr. Bounderby and his shadow had not
10720 stood near Louisa, who held her father’s arm, but in a retired place by
10721 themselves. When Mr. Gradgrind was summoned to the couch, Sissy,
10722 attentive to all that happened, slipped behind that wicked shadow—a sight
10723 in the horror of his face, if there had been eyes there for any sight but
10724 one—and whispered in his ear. Without turning his head, he conferred
10725 with her a few moments, and vanished. Thus the whelp had gone out of the
10726 circle before the people moved.
10727
10728 When the father reached home, he sent a message to Mr. Bounderby’s,
10729 desiring his son to come to him directly. The reply was, that Mr.
10730 Bounderby having missed him in the crowd, and seeing nothing of him
10731 since, had supposed him to be at Stone Lodge.
10732
10733 ‘I believe, father,’ said Louisa, ‘he will not come back to town
10734 to-night.’ Mr. Gradgrind turned away, and said no more.
10735
10736 In the morning, he went down to the Bank himself as soon as it was
10737 opened, and seeing his son’s place empty (he had not the courage to look
10738 in at first) went back along the street to meet Mr. Bounderby on his way
10739 there. To whom he said that, for reasons he would soon explain, but
10740 entreated not then to be asked for, he had found it necessary to employ
10741 his son at a distance for a little while. Also, that he was charged with
10742 the duty of vindicating Stephen Blackpool’s memory, and declaring the
10743 thief. Mr. Bounderby quite confounded, stood stock-still in the street
10744 after his father-in-law had left him, swelling like an immense
10745 soap-bubble, without its beauty.
10746
10747 Mr. Gradgrind went home, locked himself in his room, and kept it all that
10748 day. When Sissy and Louisa tapped at his door, he said, without opening
10749 it, ‘Not now, my dears; in the evening.’ On their return in the evening,
10750 he said, ‘I am not able yet—to-morrow.’ He ate nothing all day, and had
10751 no candle after dark; and they heard him walking to and fro late at
10752 night.
10753
10754 But, in the morning he appeared at breakfast at the usual hour, and took
10755 his usual place at the table. Aged and bent he looked, and quite bowed
10756 down; and yet he looked a wiser man, and a better man, than in the days
10757 when in this life he wanted nothing—but Facts. Before he left the room,
10758 he appointed a time for them to come to him; and so, with his gray head
10759 drooping, went away.
10760
10761 ‘Dear father,’ said Louisa, when they kept their appointment, ‘you have
10762 three young children left. They will be different, I will be different
10763 yet, with Heaven’s help.’
10764
10765 She gave her hand to Sissy, as if she meant with her help too.
10766
10767 ‘Your wretched brother,’ said Mr. Gradgrind. ‘Do you think he had
10768 planned this robbery, when he went with you to the lodging?’
10769
10770 ‘I fear so, father. I know he had wanted money very much, and had spent
10771 a great deal.’
10772
10773 ‘The poor man being about to leave the town, it came into his evil brain
10774 to cast suspicion on him?’
10775
10776 ‘I think it must have flashed upon him while he sat there, father. For I
10777 asked him to go there with me. The visit did not originate with him.’
10778
10779 ‘He had some conversation with the poor man. Did he take him aside?’
10780
10781 ‘He took him out of the room. I asked him afterwards, why he had done
10782 so, and he made a plausible excuse; but since last night, father, and
10783 when I remember the circumstances by its light, I am afraid I can imagine
10784 too truly what passed between them.’
10785
10786 ‘Let me know,’ said her father, ‘if your thoughts present your guilty
10787 brother in the same dark view as mine.’
10788
10789 ‘I fear, father,’ hesitated Louisa, ‘that he must have made some
10790 representation to Stephen Blackpool—perhaps in my name, perhaps in his
10791 own—which induced him to do in good faith and honesty, what he had never
10792 done before, and to wait about the Bank those two or three nights before
10793 he left the town.’
10794
10795 ‘Too plain!’ returned the father. ‘Too plain!’
10796
10797 He shaded his face, and remained silent for some moments. Recovering
10798 himself, he said:
10799
10800 ‘And now, how is he to be found? How is he to be saved from justice? In
10801 the few hours that I can possibly allow to elapse before I publish the
10802 truth, how is he to be found by us, and only by us? Ten thousand pounds
10803 could not effect it.’
10804
10805 ‘Sissy has effected it, father.’
10806
10807 He raised his eyes to where she stood, like a good fairy in his house,
10808 and said in a tone of softened gratitude and grateful kindness, ‘It is
10809 always you, my child!’
10810
10811 ‘We had our fears,’ Sissy explained, glancing at Louisa, ‘before
10812 yesterday; and when I saw you brought to the side of the litter last
10813 night, and heard what passed (being close to Rachael all the time), I
10814 went to him when no one saw, and said to him, “Don’t look at me. See
10815 where your father is. Escape at once, for his sake and your own!” He
10816 was in a tremble before I whispered to him, and he started and trembled
10817 more then, and said, “Where can I go? I have very little money, and I
10818 don’t know who will hide me!” I thought of father’s old circus. I have
10819 not forgotten where Mr. Sleary goes at this time of year, and I read of
10820 him in a paper only the other day. I told him to hurry there, and tell
10821 his name, and ask Mr. Sleary to hide him till I came. “I’ll get to him
10822 before the morning,” he said. And I saw him shrink away among the
10823 people.’
10824
10825 ‘Thank Heaven!’ exclaimed his father. ‘He may be got abroad yet.’
10826
10827 It was the more hopeful as the town to which Sissy had directed him was
10828 within three hours’ journey of Liverpool, whence he could be swiftly
10829 dispatched to any part of the world. But, caution being necessary in
10830 communicating with him—for there was a greater danger every moment of his
10831 being suspected now, and nobody could be sure at heart but that Mr.
10832 Bounderby himself, in a bullying vein of public zeal, might play a Roman
10833 part—it was consented that Sissy and Louisa should repair to the place in
10834 question, by a circuitous course, alone; and that the unhappy father,
10835 setting forth in an opposite direction, should get round to the same
10836 bourne by another and wider route. It was further agreed that he should
10837 not present himself to Mr. Sleary, lest his intentions should be
10838 mistrusted, or the intelligence of his arrival should cause his son to
10839 take flight anew; but, that the communication should be left to Sissy and
10840 Louisa to open; and that they should inform the cause of so much misery
10841 and disgrace, of his father’s being at hand and of the purpose for which
10842 they had come. When these arrangements had been well considered and were
10843 fully understood by all three, it was time to begin to carry them into
10844 execution. Early in the afternoon, Mr. Gradgrind walked direct from his
10845 own house into the country, to be taken up on the line by which he was to
10846 travel; and at night the remaining two set forth upon their different
10847 course, encouraged by not seeing any face they knew.
10848
10849 The two travelled all night, except when they were left, for odd numbers
10850 of minutes, at branch-places, up illimitable flights of steps, or down
10851 wells—which was the only variety of those branches—and, early in the
10852 morning, were turned out on a swamp, a mile or two from the town they
10853 sought. From this dismal spot they were rescued by a savage old
10854 postilion, who happened to be up early, kicking a horse in a fly: and so
10855 were smuggled into the town by all the back lanes where the pigs lived:
10856 which, although not a magnificent or even savoury approach, was, as is
10857 usual in such cases, the legitimate highway.
10858
10859 The first thing they saw on entering the town was the skeleton of
10860 Sleary’s Circus. The company had departed for another town more than
10861 twenty miles off, and had opened there last night. The connection
10862 between the two places was by a hilly turnpike-road, and the travelling
10863 on that road was very slow. Though they took but a hasty breakfast, and
10864 no rest (which it would have been in vain to seek under such anxious
10865 circumstances), it was noon before they began to find the bills of
10866 Sleary’s Horse-riding on barns and walls, and one o’clock when they
10867 stopped in the market-place.
10868
10869 A Grand Morning Performance by the Riders, commencing at that very hour,
10870 was in course of announcement by the bellman as they set their feet upon
10871 the stones of the street. Sissy recommended that, to avoid making
10872 inquiries and attracting attention in the town, they should present
10873 themselves to pay at the door. If Mr. Sleary were taking the money, he
10874 would be sure to know her, and would proceed with discretion. If he were
10875 not, he would be sure to see them inside; and, knowing what he had done
10876 with the fugitive, would proceed with discretion still.
10877
10878 Therefore, they repaired, with fluttering hearts, to the well-remembered
10879 booth. The flag with the inscription SLEARY’S HORSE-RIDING was there;
10880 and the Gothic niche was there; but Mr. Sleary was not there. Master
10881 Kidderminster, grown too maturely turfy to be received by the wildest
10882 credulity as Cupid any more, had yielded to the invincible force of
10883 circumstances (and his beard), and, in the capacity of a man who made
10884 himself generally useful, presided on this occasion over the
10885 exchequer—having also a drum in reserve, on which to expend his leisure
10886 moments and superfluous forces. In the extreme sharpness of his look out
10887 for base coin, Mr. Kidderminster, as at present situated, never saw
10888 anything but money; so Sissy passed him unrecognised, and they went in.
10889
10890 The Emperor of Japan, on a steady old white horse stencilled with black
10891 spots, was twirling five wash-hand basins at once, as it is the favourite
10892 recreation of that monarch to do. Sissy, though well acquainted with his
10893 Royal line, had no personal knowledge of the present Emperor, and his
10894 reign was peaceful. Miss Josephine Sleary, in her celebrated graceful
10895 Equestrian Tyrolean Flower Act, was then announced by a new clown (who
10896 humorously said Cauliflower Act), and Mr. Sleary appeared, leading her
10897 in.
10898
10899 Mr. Sleary had only made one cut at the Clown with his long whip-lash,
10900 and the Clown had only said, ‘If you do it again, I’ll throw the horse at
10901 you!’ when Sissy was recognised both by father and daughter. But they
10902 got through the Act with great self-possession; and Mr. Sleary, saving
10903 for the first instant, conveyed no more expression into his locomotive
10904 eye than into his fixed one. The performance seemed a little long to
10905 Sissy and Louisa, particularly when it stopped to afford the Clown an
10906 opportunity of telling Mr. Sleary (who said ‘Indeed, sir!’ to all his
10907 observations in the calmest way, and with his eye on the house) about two
10908 legs sitting on three legs looking at one leg, when in came four legs,
10909 and laid hold of one leg, and up got two legs, caught hold of three legs,
10910 and threw ’em at four legs, who ran away with one leg. For, although an
10911 ingenious Allegory relating to a butcher, a three-legged stool, a dog,
10912 and a leg of mutton, this narrative consumed time; and they were in great
10913 suspense. At last, however, little fair-haired Josephine made her
10914 curtsey amid great applause; and the Clown, left alone in the ring, had
10915 just warmed himself, and said, ‘Now _I_’ll have a turn!’ when Sissy was
10916 touched on the shoulder, and beckoned out.
10917
10918 She took Louisa with her; and they were received by Mr. Sleary in a very
10919 little private apartment, with canvas sides, a grass floor, and a wooden
10920 ceiling all aslant, on which the box company stamped their approbation,
10921 as if they were coming through. ‘Thethilia,’ said Mr. Sleary, who had
10922 brandy and water at hand, ‘it doth me good to thee you. You wath alwayth
10923 a favourite with uth, and you’ve done uth credith thinth the old timeth
10924 I’m thure. You mutht thee our people, my dear, afore we thpeak of
10925 bithnith, or they’ll break their hearth—ethpethially the women. Here’th
10926 Jothphine hath been and got married to E. W. B. Childerth, and thee hath
10927 got a boy, and though he’th only three yearth old, he thtickth on to any
10928 pony you can bring againtht him. He’th named The Little Wonder of
10929 Thcolathtic Equitation; and if you don’t hear of that boy at Athley’th,
10930 you’ll hear of him at Parith. And you recollect Kidderminthter, that
10931 wath thought to be rather thweet upon yourthelf? Well. He’th married
10932 too. Married a widder. Old enough to be hith mother. Thee wath
10933 Tightrope, thee wath, and now thee’th nothing—on accounth of fat.
10934 They’ve got two children, tho we’re thtrong in the Fairy bithnith and the
10935 Nurthery dodge. If you wath to thee our Children in the Wood, with their
10936 father and mother both a dyin’ on a horthe—their uncle a retheiving of
10937 ’em ath hith wardth, upon a horthe—themthelvth both a goin’ a
10938 black-berryin’ on a horthe—and the Robinth a coming in to cover ’em with
10939 leavth, upon a horthe—you’d thay it wath the completetht thing ath ever
10940 you thet your eyeth on! And you remember Emma Gordon, my dear, ath wath
10941 a’motht a mother to you? Of courthe you do; I needn’t athk. Well!
10942 Emma, thee lotht her huthband. He wath throw’d a heavy back-fall off a
10943 Elephant in a thort of a Pagoda thing ath the Thultan of the Indieth, and
10944 he never got the better of it; and thee married a thecond time—married a
10945 Cheethemonger ath fell in love with her from the front—and he’th a
10946 Overtheer and makin’ a fortun.’
10947
10948 These various changes, Mr. Sleary, very short of breath now, related with
10949 great heartiness, and with a wonderful kind of innocence, considering
10950 what a bleary and brandy-and-watery old veteran he was. Afterwards he
10951 brought in Josephine, and E. W. B. Childers (rather deeply lined in the
10952 jaws by daylight), and the Little Wonder of Scholastic Equitation, and in
10953 a word, all the company. Amazing creatures they were in Louisa’s eyes,
10954 so white and pink of complexion, so scant of dress, and so demonstrative
10955 of leg; but it was very agreeable to see them crowding about Sissy, and
10956 very natural in Sissy to be unable to refrain from tears.
10957
10958 ‘There! Now Thethilia hath kithd all the children, and hugged all the
10959 women, and thaken handth all round with all the men, clear, every one of
10960 you, and ring in the band for the thecond part!’
10961
10962 As soon as they were gone, he continued in a low tone. ‘Now, Thethilia,
10963 I don’t athk to know any thecreth, but I thuppothe I may conthider thith
10964 to be Mith Thquire.’
10965
10966 ‘This is his sister. Yes.’
10967
10968 ‘And t’other on’th daughter. That’h what I mean. Hope I thee you well,
10969 mith. And I hope the Thquire’th well?’
10970
10971 ‘My father will be here soon,’ said Louisa, anxious to bring him to the
10972 point. ‘Is my brother safe?’
10973
10974 ‘Thafe and thound!’ he replied. ‘I want you jutht to take a peep at the
10975 Ring, mith, through here. Thethilia, you know the dodgeth; find a
10976 thpy-hole for yourthelf.’
10977
10978 They each looked through a chink in the boards.
10979
10980 ‘That’h Jack the Giant Killer—piethe of comic infant bithnith,’ said
10981 Sleary. ‘There’th a property-houthe, you thee, for Jack to hide in;
10982 there’th my Clown with a thauthepan-lid and a thpit, for Jack’th
10983 thervant; there’th little Jack himthelf in a thplendid thoot of armour;
10984 there’th two comic black thervanth twithe ath big ath the houthe, to
10985 thtand by it and to bring it in and clear it; and the Giant (a very
10986 ecthpenthive bathket one), he an’t on yet. Now, do you thee ’em all?’
10987
10988 ‘Yes,’ they both said.
10989
10990 ‘Look at ’em again,’ said Sleary, ‘look at ’em well. You thee em all?
10991 Very good. Now, mith;’ he put a form for them to sit on; ‘I have my
10992 opinionth, and the Thquire your father hath hith. I don’t want to know
10993 what your brother’th been up to; ith better for me not to know. All I
10994 thay ith, the Thquire hath thtood by Thethilia, and I’ll thtand by the
10995 Thquire. Your brother ith one them black thervanth.’
10996
10997 Louisa uttered an exclamation, partly of distress, partly of
10998 satisfaction.
10999
11000 ‘Ith a fact,’ said Sleary, ‘and even knowin’ it, you couldn’t put your
11001 finger on him. Let the Thquire come. I thall keep your brother here
11002 after the performanth. I thant undreth him, nor yet wath hith paint off.
11003 Let the Thquire come here after the performanth, or come here yourthelf
11004 after the performanth, and you thall find your brother, and have the
11005 whole plathe to talk to him in. Never mind the lookth of him, ath long
11006 ath he’th well hid.’
11007
11008 Louisa, with many thanks and with a lightened load, detained Mr. Sleary
11009 no longer then. She left her love for her brother, with her eyes full of
11010 tears; and she and Sissy went away until later in the afternoon.
11011
11012 Mr. Gradgrind arrived within an hour afterwards. He too had encountered
11013 no one whom he knew; and was now sanguine with Sleary’s assistance, of
11014 getting his disgraced son to Liverpool in the night. As neither of the
11015 three could be his companion without almost identifying him under any
11016 disguise, he prepared a letter to a correspondent whom he could trust,
11017 beseeching him to ship the bearer off at any cost, to North or South
11018 America, or any distant part of the world to which he could be the most
11019 speedily and privately dispatched.
11020
11021 This done, they walked about, waiting for the Circus to be quite vacated;
11022 not only by the audience, but by the company and by the horses. After
11023 watching it a long time, they saw Mr. Sleary bring out a chair and sit
11024 down by the side-door, smoking; as if that were his signal that they
11025 might approach.
11026
11027 ‘Your thervant, Thquire,’ was his cautious salutation as they passed in.
11028 ‘If you want me you’ll find me here. You muthn’t mind your thon having a
11029 comic livery on.’
11030
11031 They all three went in; and Mr. Gradgrind sat down forlorn, on the
11032 Clown’s performing chair in the middle of the ring. On one of the back
11033 benches, remote in the subdued light and the strangeness of the place,
11034 sat the villainous whelp, sulky to the last, whom he had the misery to
11035 call his son.
11036
11037 In a preposterous coat, like a beadle’s, with cuffs and flaps exaggerated
11038 to an unspeakable extent; in an immense waistcoat, knee-breeches, buckled
11039 shoes, and a mad cocked hat; with nothing fitting him, and everything of
11040 coarse material, moth-eaten and full of holes; with seams in his black
11041 face, where fear and heat had started through the greasy composition
11042 daubed all over it; anything so grimly, detestably, ridiculously shameful
11043 as the whelp in his comic livery, Mr. Gradgrind never could by any other
11044 means have believed in, weighable and measurable fact though it was. And
11045 one of his model children had come to this!
11046
11047 At first the whelp would not draw any nearer, but persisted in remaining
11048 up there by himself. Yielding at length, if any concession so sullenly
11049 made can be called yielding, to the entreaties of Sissy—for Louisa he
11050 disowned altogether—he came down, bench by bench, until he stood in the
11051 sawdust, on the verge of the circle, as far as possible, within its
11052 limits from where his father sat.
11053
11054 ‘How was this done?’ asked the father.
11055
11056 ‘How was what done?’ moodily answered the son.
11057
11058 ‘This robbery,’ said the father, raising his voice upon the word.
11059
11060 ‘I forced the safe myself over night, and shut it up ajar before I went
11061 away. I had had the key that was found, made long before. I dropped it
11062 that morning, that it might be supposed to have been used. I didn’t take
11063 the money all at once. I pretended to put my balance away every night,
11064 but I didn’t. Now you know all about it.’
11065
11066 ‘If a thunderbolt had fallen on me,’ said the father, ‘it would have
11067 shocked me less than this!’
11068
11069 ‘I don’t see why,’ grumbled the son. ‘So many people are employed in
11070 situations of trust; so many people, out of so many, will be dishonest.
11071 I have heard you talk, a hundred times, of its being a law. How can _I_
11072 help laws? You have comforted others with such things, father. Comfort
11073 yourself!’
11074
11075 The father buried his face in his hands, and the son stood in his
11076 disgraceful grotesqueness, biting straw: his hands, with the black partly
11077 worn away inside, looking like the hands of a monkey. The evening was
11078 fast closing in; and from time to time, he turned the whites of his eyes
11079 restlessly and impatiently towards his father. They were the only parts
11080 of his face that showed any life or expression, the pigment upon it was
11081 so thick.
11082
11083 ‘You must be got to Liverpool, and sent abroad.’
11084
11085 ‘I suppose I must. I can’t be more miserable anywhere,’ whimpered the
11086 whelp, ‘than I have been here, ever since I can remember. That’s one
11087 thing.’
11088
11089 Mr. Gradgrind went to the door, and returned with Sleary, to whom he
11090 submitted the question, How to get this deplorable object away?
11091
11092 ‘Why, I’ve been thinking of it, Thquire. There’th not muth time to
11093 lothe, tho you muth thay yeth or no. Ith over twenty mileth to the rail.
11094 There’th a coath in half an hour, that goeth _to_ the rail, ‘purpothe to
11095 cath the mail train. That train will take him right to Liverpool.’
11096
11097 ‘But look at him,’ groaned Mr. Gradgrind. ‘Will any coach—’
11098
11099 ‘I don’t mean that he thould go in the comic livery,’ said Sleary. ‘Thay
11100 the word, and I’ll make a Jothkin of him, out of the wardrobe, in five
11101 minutes.’
11102
11103 ‘I don’t understand,’ said Mr. Gradgrind.
11104
11105 ‘A Jothkin—a Carter. Make up your mind quick, Thquire. There’ll be beer
11106 to feth. I’ve never met with nothing but beer ath’ll ever clean a comic
11107 blackamoor.’
11108
11109 Mr. Gradgrind rapidly assented; Mr. Sleary rapidly turned out from a box,
11110 a smock frock, a felt hat, and other essentials; the whelp rapidly
11111 changed clothes behind a screen of baize; Mr. Sleary rapidly brought
11112 beer, and washed him white again.
11113
11114 ‘Now,’ said Sleary, ‘come along to the coath, and jump up behind; I’ll go
11115 with you there, and they’ll thuppothe you one of my people. Thay
11116 farewell to your family, and tharp’th the word.’ With which he
11117 delicately retired.
11118
11119 ‘Here is your letter,’ said Mr. Gradgrind. ‘All necessary means will be
11120 provided for you. Atone, by repentance and better conduct, for the
11121 shocking action you have committed, and the dreadful consequences to
11122 which it has led. Give me your hand, my poor boy, and may God forgive
11123 you as I do!’
11124
11125 The culprit was moved to a few abject tears by these words and their
11126 pathetic tone. But, when Louisa opened her arms, he repulsed her afresh.
11127
11128 ‘Not you. I don’t want to have anything to say to you!’
11129
11130 ‘O Tom, Tom, do we end so, after all my love!’
11131
11132 ‘After all your love!’ he returned, obdurately. ‘Pretty love! Leaving
11133 old Bounderby to himself, and packing my best friend Mr. Harthouse off,
11134 and going home just when I was in the greatest danger. Pretty love that!
11135 Coming out with every word about our having gone to that place, when you
11136 saw the net was gathering round me. Pretty love that! You have
11137 regularly given me up. You never cared for me.’
11138
11139 ‘Tharp’th the word!’ said Sleary, at the door.
11140
11141 They all confusedly went out: Louisa crying to him that she forgave him,
11142 and loved him still, and that he would one day be sorry to have left her
11143 so, and glad to think of these her last words, far away: when some one
11144 ran against them. Mr. Gradgrind and Sissy, who were both before him
11145 while his sister yet clung to his shoulder, stopped and recoiled.
11146
11147 For, there was Bitzer, out of breath, his thin lips parted, his thin
11148 nostrils distended, his white eyelashes quivering, his colourless face
11149 more colourless than ever, as if he ran himself into a white heat, when
11150 other people ran themselves into a glow. There he stood, panting and
11151 heaving, as if he had never stopped since the night, now long ago, when
11152 he had run them down before.
11153
11154 ‘I’m sorry to interfere with your plans,’ said Bitzer, shaking his head,
11155 ‘but I can’t allow myself to be done by horse-riders. I must have young
11156 Mr. Tom; he mustn’t be got away by horse-riders; here he is in a smock
11157 frock, and I must have him!’
11158
11159 By the collar, too, it seemed. For, so he took possession of him.
11160
11161
11162
11163 CHAPTER VIII
11164 PHILOSOPHICAL
11165
11166
11167 THEY went back into the booth, Sleary shutting the door to keep intruders
11168 out. Bitzer, still holding the paralysed culprit by the collar, stood in
11169 the Ring, blinking at his old patron through the darkness of the
11170 twilight.
11171
11172 ‘Bitzer,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, broken down, and miserably submissive to
11173 him, ‘have you a heart?’
11174
11175 ‘The circulation, sir,’ returned Bitzer, smiling at the oddity of the
11176 question, ‘couldn’t be carried on without one. No man, sir, acquainted
11177 with the facts established by Harvey relating to the circulation of the
11178 blood, can doubt that I have a heart.’
11179
11180 ‘Is it accessible,’ cried Mr. Gradgrind, ‘to any compassionate
11181 influence?’
11182
11183 ‘It is accessible to Reason, sir,’ returned the excellent young man.
11184 ‘And to nothing else.’
11185
11186 They stood looking at each other; Mr. Gradgrind’s face as white as the
11187 pursuer’s.
11188
11189 ‘What motive—even what motive in reason—can you have for preventing the
11190 escape of this wretched youth,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, ‘and crushing his
11191 miserable father? See his sister here. Pity us!’
11192
11193 ‘Sir,’ returned Bitzer, in a very business-like and logical manner,
11194 ‘since you ask me what motive I have in reason, for taking young Mr. Tom
11195 back to Coketown, it is only reasonable to let you know. I have
11196 suspected young Mr. Tom of this bank-robbery from the first. I had had
11197 my eye upon him before that time, for I knew his ways. I have kept my
11198 observations to myself, but I have made them; and I have got ample proofs
11199 against him now, besides his running away, and besides his own
11200 confession, which I was just in time to overhear. I had the pleasure of
11201 watching your house yesterday morning, and following you here. I am
11202 going to take young Mr. Tom back to Coketown, in order to deliver him
11203 over to Mr. Bounderby. Sir, I have no doubt whatever that Mr. Bounderby
11204 will then promote me to young Mr. Tom’s situation. And I wish to have
11205 his situation, sir, for it will be a rise to me, and will do me good.’
11206
11207 ‘If this is solely a question of self-interest with you—’ Mr. Gradgrind
11208 began.
11209
11210 ‘I beg your pardon for interrupting you, sir,’ returned Bitzer; ‘but I am
11211 sure you know that the whole social system is a question of
11212 self-interest. What you must always appeal to, is a person’s
11213 self-interest. It’s your only hold. We are so constituted. I was
11214 brought up in that catechism when I was very young, sir, as you are
11215 aware.’
11216
11217 ‘What sum of money,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, ‘will you set against your
11218 expected promotion?’
11219
11220 ‘Thank you, sir,’ returned Bitzer, ‘for hinting at the proposal; but I
11221 will not set any sum against it. Knowing that your clear head would
11222 propose that alternative, I have gone over the calculations in my mind;
11223 and I find that to compound a felony, even on very high terms indeed,
11224 would not be as safe and good for me as my improved prospects in the
11225 Bank.’
11226
11227 ‘Bitzer,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, stretching out his hands as though he would
11228 have said, See how miserable I am! ‘Bitzer, I have but one chance left
11229 to soften you. You were many years at my school. If, in remembrance of
11230 the pains bestowed upon you there, you can persuade yourself in any
11231 degree to disregard your present interest and release my son, I entreat
11232 and pray you to give him the benefit of that remembrance.’
11233
11234 ‘I really wonder, sir,’ rejoined the old pupil in an argumentative
11235 manner, ‘to find you taking a position so untenable. My schooling was
11236 paid for; it was a bargain; and when I came away, the bargain ended.’
11237
11238 It was a fundamental principle of the Gradgrind philosophy that
11239 everything was to be paid for. Nobody was ever on any account to give
11240 anybody anything, or render anybody help without purchase. Gratitude was
11241 to be abolished, and the virtues springing from it were not to be. Every
11242 inch of the existence of mankind, from birth to death, was to be a
11243 bargain across a counter. And if we didn’t get to Heaven that way, it
11244 was not a politico-economical place, and we had no business there.
11245
11246 ‘I don’t deny,’ added Bitzer, ‘that my schooling was cheap. But that
11247 comes right, sir. I was made in the cheapest market, and have to dispose
11248 of myself in the dearest.’
11249
11250 He was a little troubled here, by Louisa and Sissy crying.
11251
11252 ‘Pray don’t do that,’ said he, ‘it’s of no use doing that: it only
11253 worries. You seem to think that I have some animosity against young Mr.
11254 Tom; whereas I have none at all. I am only going, on the reasonable
11255 grounds I have mentioned, to take him back to Coketown. If he was to
11256 resist, I should set up the cry of Stop thief! But, he won’t resist, you
11257 may depend upon it.’
11258
11259 Mr. Sleary, who with his mouth open and his rolling eye as immovably
11260 jammed in his head as his fixed one, had listened to these doctrines with
11261 profound attention, here stepped forward.
11262
11263 ‘Thquire, you know perfectly well, and your daughter knowth perfectly
11264 well (better than you, becauthe I thed it to her), that I didn’t know
11265 what your thon had done, and that I didn’t want to know—I thed it wath
11266 better not, though I only thought, then, it wath thome thkylarking.
11267 However, thith young man having made it known to be a robbery of a bank,
11268 why, that’h a theriouth thing; muth too theriouth a thing for me to
11269 compound, ath thith young man hath very properly called it.
11270 Conthequently, Thquire, you muthn’t quarrel with me if I take thith young
11271 man’th thide, and thay he’th right and there’th no help for it. But I
11272 tell you what I’ll do, Thquire; I’ll drive your thon and thith young man
11273 over to the rail, and prevent expothure here. I can’t conthent to do
11274 more, but I’ll do that.’
11275
11276 Fresh lamentations from Louisa, and deeper affliction on Mr. Gradgrind’s
11277 part, followed this desertion of them by their last friend. But, Sissy
11278 glanced at him with great attention; nor did she in her own breast
11279 misunderstand him. As they were all going out again, he favoured her
11280 with one slight roll of his movable eye, desiring her to linger behind.
11281 As he locked the door, he said excitedly:
11282
11283 ‘The Thquire thtood by you, Thethilia, and I’ll thtand by the Thquire.
11284 More than that: thith ith a prethiouth rathcal, and belongth to that
11285 bluthtering Cove that my people nearly pitht out o’ winder. It’ll be a
11286 dark night; I’ve got a horthe that’ll do anything but thpeak; I’ve got a
11287 pony that’ll go fifteen mile an hour with Childerth driving of him; I’ve
11288 got a dog that’ll keep a man to one plathe four-and-twenty hourth. Get a
11289 word with the young Thquire. Tell him, when he theeth our horthe begin
11290 to danthe, not to be afraid of being thpilt, but to look out for a
11291 pony-gig coming up. Tell him, when he theeth that gig clothe by, to jump
11292 down, and it’ll take him off at a rattling pathe. If my dog leth thith
11293 young man thtir a peg on foot, I give him leave to go. And if my horthe
11294 ever thtirth from that thpot where he beginth a danthing, till the
11295 morning—I don’t know him?—Tharp’th the word!’
11296
11297 The word was so sharp, that in ten minutes Mr. Childers, sauntering about
11298 the market-place in a pair of slippers, had his cue, and Mr. Sleary’s
11299 equipage was ready. It was a fine sight, to behold the learned dog
11300 barking round it, and Mr. Sleary instructing him, with his one
11301 practicable eye, that Bitzer was the object of his particular attentions.
11302 Soon after dark they all three got in and started; the learned dog (a
11303 formidable creature) already pinning Bitzer with his eye, and sticking
11304 close to the wheel on his side, that he might be ready for him in the
11305 event of his showing the slightest disposition to alight.
11306
11307 The other three sat up at the inn all night in great suspense. At eight
11308 o’clock in the morning Mr. Sleary and the dog reappeared: both in high
11309 spirits.
11310
11311 ‘All right, Thquire!’ said Mr. Sleary, ‘your thon may be aboard-a-thip by
11312 thith time. Childerth took him off, an hour and a half after we left
11313 there latht night. The horthe danthed the polka till he wath dead beat
11314 (he would have walthed if he hadn’t been in harneth), and then I gave him
11315 the word and he went to thleep comfortable. When that prethiouth young
11316 Rathcal thed he’d go for’ard afoot, the dog hung on to hith
11317 neck-hankercher with all four legth in the air and pulled him down and
11318 rolled him over. Tho he come back into the drag, and there he that,
11319 ’till I turned the horthe’th head, at half-patht thixth thith morning.’
11320
11321 Mr. Gradgrind overwhelmed him with thanks, of course; and hinted as
11322 delicately as he could, at a handsome remuneration in money.
11323
11324 ‘I don’t want money mythelf, Thquire; but Childerth ith a family man, and
11325 if you wath to like to offer him a five-pound note, it mightn’t be
11326 unactheptable. Likewithe if you wath to thtand a collar for the dog, or
11327 a thet of bellth for the horthe, I thould be very glad to take ’em.
11328 Brandy and water I alwayth take.’ He had already called for a glass, and
11329 now called for another. ‘If you wouldn’t think it going too far,
11330 Thquire, to make a little thpread for the company at about three and
11331 thixth ahead, not reckoning Luth, it would make ’em happy.’
11332
11333 All these little tokens of his gratitude, Mr. Gradgrind very willingly
11334 undertook to render. Though he thought them far too slight, he said, for
11335 such a service.
11336
11337 ‘Very well, Thquire; then, if you’ll only give a Horthe-riding, a
11338 bethpeak, whenever you can, you’ll more than balanthe the account. Now,
11339 Thquire, if your daughter will ethcuthe me, I thould like one parting
11340 word with you.’
11341
11342 Louisa and Sissy withdrew into an adjoining room; Mr. Sleary, stirring
11343 and drinking his brandy and water as he stood, went on:
11344
11345 ‘Thquire,—you don’t need to be told that dogth ith wonderful animalth.’
11346
11347 ‘Their instinct,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, ‘is surprising.’
11348
11349 ‘Whatever you call it—and I’m bletht if _I_ know what to call it’—said
11350 Sleary, ‘it ith athtonithing. The way in whith a dog’ll find you—the
11351 dithtanthe he’ll come!’
11352
11353 ‘His scent,’ said Mr. Gradgrind, ‘being so fine.’
11354
11355 ‘I’m bletht if I know what to call it,’ repeated Sleary, shaking his
11356 head, ‘but I have had dogth find me, Thquire, in a way that made me think
11357 whether that dog hadn’t gone to another dog, and thed, “You don’t happen
11358 to know a perthon of the name of Thleary, do you? Perthon of the name of
11359 Thleary, in the Horthe-Riding way—thtout man—game eye?” And whether that
11360 dog mightn’t have thed, “Well, I can’t thay I know him mythelf, but I
11361 know a dog that I think would be likely to be acquainted with him.” And
11362 whether that dog mightn’t have thought it over, and thed, “Thleary,
11363 Thleary! O yeth, to be thure! A friend of mine menthioned him to me at
11364 one time. I can get you hith addreth directly.” In conthequenth of my
11365 being afore the public, and going about tho muth, you thee, there mutht
11366 be a number of dogth acquainted with me, Thquire, that _I_ don’t know!’
11367
11368 Mr. Gradgrind seemed to be quite confounded by this speculation.
11369
11370 ‘Any way,’ said Sleary, after putting his lips to his brandy and water,
11371 ‘ith fourteen month ago, Thquire, thinthe we wath at Chethter. We wath
11372 getting up our Children in the Wood one morning, when there cometh into
11373 our Ring, by the thtage door, a dog. He had travelled a long way, he
11374 wath in a very bad condithon, he wath lame, and pretty well blind. He
11375 went round to our children, one after another, as if he wath a theeking
11376 for a child he know’d; and then he come to me, and throwd hithelf up
11377 behind, and thtood on hith two forelegth, weak ath he wath, and then he
11378 wagged hith tail and died. Thquire, that dog wath Merrylegth.’
11379
11380 ‘Sissy’s father’s dog!’
11381
11382 ‘Thethilia’th father’th old dog. Now, Thquire, I can take my oath, from
11383 my knowledge of that dog, that that man wath dead—and buried—afore that
11384 dog come back to me. Joth’phine and Childerth and me talked it over a
11385 long time, whether I thould write or not. But we agreed, “No. There’th
11386 nothing comfortable to tell; why unthettle her mind, and make her
11387 unhappy?” Tho, whether her father bathely detherted her; or whether he
11388 broke hith own heart alone, rather than pull her down along with him;
11389 never will be known, now, Thquire, till—no, not till we know how the
11390 dogth findth uth out!’
11391
11392 ‘She keeps the bottle that he sent her for, to this hour; and she will
11393 believe in his affection to the last moment of her life,’ said Mr.
11394 Gradgrind.
11395
11396 ‘It theemth to prethent two thingth to a perthon, don’t it, Thquire?’
11397 said Mr. Sleary, musing as he looked down into the depths of his brandy
11398 and water: ‘one, that there ith a love in the world, not all
11399 Thelf-interetht after all, but thomething very different; t’other, that
11400 it bath a way of ith own of calculating or not calculating, whith
11401 thomehow or another ith at leatht ath hard to give a name to, ath the
11402 wayth of the dogth ith!’
11403
11404 Mr. Gradgrind looked out of window, and made no reply. Mr. Sleary
11405 emptied his glass and recalled the ladies.
11406
11407 ‘Thethilia my dear, kith me and good-bye! Mith Thquire, to thee you
11408 treating of her like a thithter, and a thithter that you trutht and
11409 honour with all your heart and more, ith a very pretty thight to me. I
11410 hope your brother may live to be better detherving of you, and a greater
11411 comfort to you. Thquire, thake handth, firtht and latht! Don’t be croth
11412 with uth poor vagabondth. People mutht be amuthed. They can’t be
11413 alwayth a learning, nor yet they can’t be alwayth a working, they an’t
11414 made for it. You _mutht_ have uth, Thquire. Do the withe thing and the
11415 kind thing too, and make the betht of uth; not the wurtht!’
11416
11417 ‘And I never thought before,’ said Mr. Sleary, putting his head in at the
11418 door again to say it, ‘that I wath tho muth of a Cackler!’
11419
11420
11421
11422 CHAPTER IX
11423 FINAL
11424
11425
11426 IT is a dangerous thing to see anything in the sphere of a vain
11427 blusterer, before the vain blusterer sees it himself. Mr. Bounderby felt
11428 that Mrs. Sparsit had audaciously anticipated him, and presumed to be
11429 wiser than he. Inappeasably indignant with her for her triumphant
11430 discovery of Mrs. Pegler, he turned this presumption, on the part of a
11431 woman in her dependent position, over and over in his mind, until it
11432 accumulated with turning like a great snowball. At last he made the
11433 discovery that to discharge this highly connected female—to have it in
11434 his power to say, ‘She was a woman of family, and wanted to stick to me,
11435 but I wouldn’t have it, and got rid of her’—would be to get the utmost
11436 possible amount of crowning glory out of the connection, and at the same
11437 time to punish Mrs. Sparsit according to her deserts.
11438
11439 Filled fuller than ever, with this great idea, Mr. Bounderby came in to
11440 lunch, and sat himself down in the dining-room of former days, where his
11441 portrait was. Mrs. Sparsit sat by the fire, with her foot in her cotton
11442 stirrup, little thinking whither she was posting.
11443
11444 Since the Pegler affair, this gentlewoman had covered her pity for Mr.
11445 Bounderby with a veil of quiet melancholy and contrition. In virtue
11446 thereof, it had become her habit to assume a woful look, which woful look
11447 she now bestowed upon her patron.
11448
11449 ‘What’s the matter now, ma’am?’ said Mr. Bounderby, in a very short,
11450 rough way.
11451
11452 ‘Pray, sir,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit, ‘do not bite my nose off.’
11453
11454 ‘Bite your nose off, ma’am?’ repeated Mr. Bounderby. ‘_Your_ nose!’
11455 meaning, as Mrs. Sparsit conceived, that it was too developed a nose for
11456 the purpose. After which offensive implication, he cut himself a crust
11457 of bread, and threw the knife down with a noise.
11458
11459 Mrs. Sparsit took her foot out of her stirrup, and said, ‘Mr. Bounderby,
11460 sir!’
11461
11462 ‘Well, ma’am?’ retorted Mr. Bounderby. ‘What are you staring at?’
11463
11464 ‘May I ask, sir,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, ‘have you been ruffled this
11465 morning?’
11466
11467 ‘Yes, ma’am.’
11468
11469 ‘May I inquire, sir,’ pursued the injured woman, ‘whether _I_ am the
11470 unfortunate cause of your having lost your temper?’
11471
11472 ‘Now, I’ll tell you what, ma’am,’ said Bounderby, ‘I am not come here to
11473 be bullied. A female may be highly connected, but she can’t be permitted
11474 to bother and badger a man in my position, and I am not going to put up
11475 with it.’ (Mr. Bounderby felt it necessary to get on: foreseeing that if
11476 he allowed of details, he would be beaten.)
11477
11478 Mrs. Sparsit first elevated, then knitted, her Coriolanian eyebrows;
11479 gathered up her work into its proper basket; and rose.
11480
11481 ‘Sir,’ said she, majestically. ‘It is apparent to me that I am in your
11482 way at present. I will retire to my own apartment.’
11483
11484 ‘Allow me to open the door, ma’am.’
11485
11486 ‘Thank you, sir; I can do it for myself.’
11487
11488 ‘You had better allow me, ma’am,’ said Bounderby, passing her, and
11489 getting his hand upon the lock; ‘because I can take the opportunity of
11490 saying a word to you, before you go. Mrs. Sparsit, ma’am, I rather think
11491 you are cramped here, do you know? It appears to me, that, under my
11492 humble roof, there’s hardly opening enough for a lady of your genius in
11493 other people’s affairs.’
11494
11495 Mrs. Sparsit gave him a look of the darkest scorn, and said with great
11496 politeness, ‘Really, sir?’
11497
11498 ‘I have been thinking it over, you see, since the late affairs have
11499 happened, ma’am,’ said Bounderby; ‘and it appears to my poor judgment—’
11500
11501 ‘Oh! Pray, sir,’ Mrs. Sparsit interposed, with sprightly cheerfulness,
11502 ‘don’t disparage your judgment. Everybody knows how unerring Mr.
11503 Bounderby’s judgment is. Everybody has had proofs of it. It must be the
11504 theme of general conversation. Disparage anything in yourself but your
11505 judgment, sir,’ said Mrs. Sparsit, laughing.
11506
11507 Mr. Bounderby, very red and uncomfortable, resumed:
11508
11509 ‘It appears to me, ma’am, I say, that a different sort of establishment
11510 altogether would bring out a lady of _your_ powers. Such an
11511 establishment as your relation, Lady Scadgers’s, now. Don’t you think
11512 you might find some affairs there, ma’am, to interfere with?’
11513
11514 ‘It never occurred to me before, sir,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit; ‘but now
11515 you mention it, should think it highly probable.’
11516
11517 ‘Then suppose you try, ma’am,’ said Bounderby, laying an envelope with a
11518 cheque in it in her little basket. ‘You can take your own time for
11519 going, ma’am; but perhaps in the meanwhile, it will be more agreeable to
11520 a lady of your powers of mind, to eat her meals by herself, and not to be
11521 intruded upon. I really ought to apologise to you—being only Josiah
11522 Bounderby of Coketown—for having stood in your light so long.’
11523
11524 ‘Pray don’t name it, sir,’ returned Mrs. Sparsit. ‘If that portrait
11525 could speak, sir—but it has the advantage over the original of not
11526 possessing the power of committing itself and disgusting others,—it would
11527 testify, that a long period has elapsed since I first habitually
11528 addressed it as the picture of a Noodle. Nothing that a Noodle does, can
11529 awaken surprise or indignation; the proceedings of a Noodle can only
11530 inspire contempt.’
11531
11532 Thus saying, Mrs. Sparsit, with her Roman features like a medal struck to
11533 commemorate her scorn of Mr. Bounderby, surveyed him fixedly from head to
11534 foot, swept disdainfully past him, and ascended the staircase. Mr.
11535 Bounderby closed the door, and stood before the fire; projecting himself
11536 after his old explosive manner into his portrait—and into futurity.
11537
11538 * * * * *
11539
11540 Into how much of futurity? He saw Mrs. Sparsit fighting out a daily
11541 fight at the points of all the weapons in the female armoury, with the
11542 grudging, smarting, peevish, tormenting Lady Scadgers, still laid up in
11543 bed with her mysterious leg, and gobbling her insufficient income down by
11544 about the middle of every quarter, in a mean little airless lodging, a
11545 mere closet for one, a mere crib for two; but did he see more? Did he
11546 catch any glimpse of himself making a show of Bitzer to strangers, as the
11547 rising young man, so devoted to his master’s great merits, who had won
11548 young Tom’s place, and had almost captured young Tom himself, in the
11549 times when by various rascals he was spirited away? Did he see any faint
11550 reflection of his own image making a vain-glorious will, whereby
11551 five-and-twenty Humbugs, past five-and-fifty years of age, each taking
11552 upon himself the name, Josiah Bounderby of Coketown, should for ever dine
11553 in Bounderby Hall, for ever lodge in Bounderby buildings, for ever attend
11554 a Bounderby chapel, for ever go to sleep under a Bounderby chaplain, for
11555 ever be supported out of a Bounderby estate, and for ever nauseate all
11556 healthy stomachs, with a vast amount of Bounderby balderdash and bluster?
11557 Had he any prescience of the day, five years to come, when Josiah
11558 Bounderby of Coketown was to die of a fit in the Coketown street, and
11559 this same precious will was to begin its long career of quibble, plunder,
11560 false pretences, vile example, little service and much law? Probably
11561 not. Yet the portrait was to see it all out.
11562
11563 Here was Mr. Gradgrind on the same day, and in the same hour, sitting
11564 thoughtful in his own room. How much of futurity did _he_ see? Did he
11565 see himself, a white-haired decrepit man, bending his hitherto inflexible
11566 theories to appointed circumstances; making his facts and figures
11567 subservient to Faith, Hope, and Charity; and no longer trying to grind
11568 that Heavenly trio in his dusty little mills? Did he catch sight of
11569 himself, therefore much despised by his late political associates? Did
11570 he see them, in the era of its being quite settled that the national
11571 dustmen have only to do with one another, and owe no duty to an
11572 abstraction called a People, ‘taunting the honourable gentleman’ with
11573 this and with that and with what not, five nights a-week, until the small
11574 hours of the morning? Probably he had that much foreknowledge, knowing
11575 his men.
11576
11577 * * * * *
11578
11579 Here was Louisa on the night of the same day, watching the fire as in
11580 days of yore, though with a gentler and a humbler face. How much of the
11581 future might arise before _her_ vision? Broadsides in the streets,
11582 signed with her father’s name, exonerating the late Stephen Blackpool,
11583 weaver, from misplaced suspicion, and publishing the guilt of his own
11584 son, with such extenuation as his years and temptation (he could not
11585 bring himself to add, his education) might beseech; were of the Present.
11586 So, Stephen Blackpool’s tombstone, with her father’s record of his death,
11587 was almost of the Present, for she knew it was to be. These things she
11588 could plainly see. But, how much of the Future?
11589
11590 A working woman, christened Rachael, after a long illness once again
11591 appearing at the ringing of the Factory bell, and passing to and fro at
11592 the set hours, among the Coketown Hands; a woman of pensive beauty,
11593 always dressed in black, but sweet-tempered and serene, and even
11594 cheerful; who, of all the people in the place, alone appeared to have
11595 compassion on a degraded, drunken wretch of her own sex, who was
11596 sometimes seen in the town secretly begging of her, and crying to her; a
11597 woman working, ever working, but content to do it, and preferring to do
11598 it as her natural lot, until she should be too old to labour any more?
11599 Did Louisa see this? Such a thing was to be.
11600
11601 A lonely brother, many thousands of miles away, writing, on paper blotted
11602 with tears, that her words had too soon come true, and that all the
11603 treasures in the world would be cheaply bartered for a sight of her dear
11604 face? At length this brother coming nearer home, with hope of seeing
11605 her, and being delayed by illness; and then a letter, in a strange hand,
11606 saying ‘he died in hospital, of fever, such a day, and died in penitence
11607 and love of you: his last word being your name’? Did Louisa see these
11608 things? Such things were to be.
11609
11610 Herself again a wife—a mother—lovingly watchful of her children, ever
11611 careful that they should have a childhood of the mind no less than a
11612 childhood of the body, as knowing it to be even a more beautiful thing,
11613 and a possession, any hoarded scrap of which, is a blessing and happiness
11614 to the wisest? Did Louisa see this? Such a thing was never to be.
11615
11616 But, happy Sissy’s happy children loving her; all children loving her;
11617 she, grown learned in childish lore; thinking no innocent and pretty
11618 fancy ever to be despised; trying hard to know her humbler
11619 fellow-creatures, and to beautify their lives of machinery and reality
11620 with those imaginative graces and delights, without which the heart of
11621 infancy will wither up, the sturdiest physical manhood will be morally
11622 stark death, and the plainest national prosperity figures can show, will
11623 be the Writing on the Wall,—she holding this course as part of no
11624 fantastic vow, or bond, or brotherhood, or sisterhood, or pledge, or
11625 covenant, or fancy dress, or fancy fair; but simply as a duty to be
11626 done,—did Louisa see these things of herself? These things were to be.
11627
11628 Dear reader! It rests with you and me, whether, in our two fields of
11629 action, similar things shall be or not. Let them be! We shall sit with
11630 lighter bosoms on the hearth, to see the ashes of our fires turn gray and
11631 cold.
11632